summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 12:19:25 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-01-22 12:19:25 -0800
commite781b687c27570926b555e6d22cb4af365c98065 (patch)
tree101b3429967c2f166dd3e8cce7245d4026a6efbb
parentc6bd0ef79a5c5f7e3ee438aa0e3559f92da82370 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/66623-0.txt6786
-rw-r--r--old/66623-0.zipbin124399 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66623-h.zipbin267315 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66623-h/66623-h.htm7978
-rw-r--r--old/66623-h/images/cover.jpgbin118038 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66623-h/images/i_colophon.jpgbin22640 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/66623-h/images/i_title.jpgbin31892 -> 0 bytes
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 14764 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..7feffdb
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #66623 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/66623)
diff --git a/old/66623-0.txt b/old/66623-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index fd32514..0000000
--- a/old/66623-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,6786 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Road to Bunker Hill, by Shirley
-Barker
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The Road to Bunker Hill
-
-Author: Shirley Barker
-
-Release Date: October 27, 2021 [eBook #66623]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was
- produced from images made available by the HathiTrust
- Digital Library.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL ***
-
-
-
-
-
-THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL
-
-
-
-
-_Books by_ SHIRLEY BARKER
-
-
-_For Younger Readers_
-
- THE TROJAN HORSE
- THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL
-
-
-_Poetry_
-
- THE DARK HILLS UNDER
- A LAND AND A PEOPLE
-
-
-_Novels_
-
- PEACE, MY DAUGHTERS
- RIVERS PARTING
- FIRE AND THE HAMMER
- TOMORROW THE NEW MOON
- LIZA BOWE
- SWEAR BY APOLLO
- THE LAST GENTLEMAN
- CORNER OF THE MOON
-
-
-
-
- SHIRLEY BARKER
-
- The Road
- to
- Bunker Hill
-
- DUELL, SLOAN AND PEARCE
- New York
-
-
-
-
-Copyright © 1962 by Shirley Barker
-
-All rights reserved. No part of this book in excess of five hundred
-words may be reproduced in any form without permission in writing from
-the publisher.
-
-_First edition_
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
-_Affiliate of_
-
-MEREDITH PRESS
-
-_Des Moines & New York_
-
-Library of Congress Catalogue Card Number: 62-12175
-
-
- Manufactured in the United States of America for Meredith Press
- Van Rees Press · New York
-
-
-
-
-_For_
-
-ESTHER DOANE OSMAN
-
-
-
-
-_Contents_
-
-
- 1. A Night to Be Young 3
-
- 2. In Readiness to March 13
-
- 3. Two to Begin 23
-
- 4. The Courage to Go and the Feet to Get Him There 33
-
- 5. The Great Ipswich Fright 42
-
- 6. Fun While It Lasted 53
-
- 7. Off to the Wars in Boston 63
-
- 8. Saved by a Pipe-smoking Man 75
-
- 9. No Clouds on Bunker Hill 87
-
- 10. A Tryst with the Enemy 101
-
- 11. A Great Secret 113
-
- 12. Thunder in the Air 125
-
- 13. The World Turned Upside Down 136
-
- 14. The Young May Die 147
-
- 15. A Terrible Black Day 160
-
- 16. Hanging and Wiving 170
-
-
-
-
-THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter One_
-
-A NIGHT TO BE YOUNG
-
-
-“Nothing ever happens in this town,” said Eben Poore, dangling his long
-legs over the edge of the wharf, and looking down river to the open
-sea. The sky was pale, almost white above the long sand bar of Plum
-Island, he noticed, but the streets were growing dark behind him, and
-twilight had begun to gather round the warehouses and tall-masted ships
-by the waterside.
-
-“No,” agreed Dick Moody, “nothing ever happens in Newburyport. Wish
-we could have a ‘tea party’ like they had in Boston a spell back. I’d
-sure enough be glad to rig up like an Indian and heave a chest of bohea
-overside.”
-
-“I guess all the merchants know better than to bring it in,” said
-Johnny Pettengall. “Nobody’d drink the stuff. We got no name o’ being a
-Tory town.”
-
-Johnny was older than the other boys, seventeen past. He had his own
-gun and drilled with the militia on muster days.
-
-“But something has happened in Newburyport,” he went on, “though I
-don’t suppose it would mean very much to either o’ you.”
-
-“What did happen?” asked Dick lazily. “Somebody’s cat kitten, or
-Indian Joe take too much rum and do a war dance in Queen Street again?”
-
-Johnny shook his head and smiled. “Sally Rose Townsend’s back,” he said.
-
-The other boys sat up, and their faces brightened.
-
-“I don’t care much for girls,” said Eben, picking a piece of long brown
-seaweed from the dock’s end and shredding it in his fingers. “But Sally
-Rose is different. Maybe it’s her hair.”
-
-“Having gold-colored hair never hurt a girl none,” declared Johnny,
-with the air of a man who knew about such things, a man grown. “But
-with Sally Rose--well, it’s the way she smiles, I think.”
-
-“I like Kitty better,” said Dick stoutly. “Sally Rose is always
-grinning--at everybody. When Kitty smiles, there’s some sense to
-it--when she’s pleased, or you tell her a joke.”
-
-“What’s Sally Rose doing in Newburyport this time o’ year?” asked Eben.
-“She comes in the summer to visit Granny Greenleaf and her cousin
-Kitty, but it’s still early spring--April nineteenth, for I took me a
-look at the almanac this morning. See, there’s the first log raft from
-New Hampshire just tied up today.”
-
-The other boys looked where he pointed. Through the gathering darkness
-they saw that a drift of shaggy logs covered the whole surface of a
-little cove nearby. Lanterns flashed here and there, and a dim shouting
-echoed among the narrow lanes and small brick houses beside the river.
-The lumbermen who had brought the raft down from the great forests
-farther up the Merrimack, were moving about it now, making everything
-fast for the night.
-
-“It’s been a warm spring,” said Johnny, smiling quietly to himself.
-
-Dick shivered and turned up the collar of his homespun jacket. “Maybe
-it has,” he said, “but it’s cold enough tonight to freeze your
-gizzard. Hope there won’t be a frost, with the apple trees already
-budded and most o’ the fields plowed. But what’s that got to do with
-Sally Rose? Her father keeps a tavern in Charlestown, shops and houses
-all round, and the seasons don’t matter. Spring don’t mean nothing
-there.”
-
-“There’s a lot stirring round Charlestown this spring, Sally Rose
-says,” continued Johnny. “Looks like the British soldiers in Boston
-might be ’most ready to come out and fight. We been expecting it, and
-we got plenty o’ powder laid by, at Concord and a few places more.
-Might need to use it any time now. Sally Rose’s father thought she’d be
-safer here.”
-
-“Did she tell you that?” asked Eben quickly. “You’ve talked with her
-then?”
-
-“Yes, I talked with her,” said Johnny. He turned his dark head a little
-and looked up the hill at the lighted town behind them, starlight over
-the dormer windows set high in the rooftops, the church steeple white
-against the night sky. He seemed to be watching for something. He did
-not say any more.
-
-A group of sailors swaggered by, jesting and laughing, on their way to
-the Wolfe Tavern after grog. The spring wind brought a salt smell up
-from the river, a fish smell, and the clean scent of pine logs from the
-raft in the cove. One lone candle burned in the window of a counting
-house nearby and showed them a figure hunched over a tall desk and open
-ledger. Dick pointed suddenly toward it.
-
-“Shiver my jib and start my planks if I’d want to be a counting-house
-clerk!” he exclaimed. Dick was apprenticed to his uncle in the
-ship-building trade, but what he wanted was to go to sea. Eben, an
-orphan, did chores at a boardinghouse in Chandler’s Lane, and Johnny
-helped his father on their farm below the town, a farm known for its
-poor soil and salt hay.
-
-Before anyone could answer him, a girl’s laugh rang out, somewhere in
-the shadowy streets above.
-
-“That’s Sally Rose!” cried Eben. “I’d know her laugh in Jamaicy--if
-I was to hear it there! She--she--you knew she was coming down here,
-Johnny! You knew!”
-
-“Yes, I knew,” said Johnny. There was a light in his eye, a reflection
-from the counting-house candle, perhaps. “She said she and Kit might
-take a walk this way, if Granny Greenleaf would let them out.”
-
-“Well, Granny did,” cried Dick, “for she’s coming, and Kitty with her.
-Look there!”
-
-Two girls came tripping gaily toward them, their full skirts sweeping
-the rutted lane, little white shawls drawn about their shoulders, their
-hair brushed back from their faces and falling in curls behind. One
-girl’s hair was soft brown, and the other’s yellow like Indian corn.
-
-The boys stood up. Johnny went forward. “I been waiting for you, Sally
-Rose,” he said.
-
-Sally Rose walked slowly toward him, her head lifted, her eyes shining.
-She put out both her hands. “My, you’re handsome, Johnny,” she said.
-“I’d forgotten how handsome you were. We don’t have lads like you in
-Charlestown, you know.”
-
-Johnny gripped both her hands against the front of his jacket and took
-a deep breath. The other boys looked embarrassed. Eben stared down at
-his feet. He suddenly realized that they were bare, bare and not very
-clean. He owned a pair of shoes, of course, but he only wore them on
-Sundays and in the wintertime.
-
-“Glad you came back, Sally Rose,” he said, not looking at her.
-
-“Oh, thank you, Eben,” she answered sweetly. “I’m so glad that you’re
-glad.”
-
-Johnny opened his eyes wide and gave Eben an unfriendly stare.
-
-“Hey, Kit,” said Dick, “I haven’t seen you since--”
-
-The brown-haired girl smiled. “You’d have seen me if you’d looked,” she
-said. “I passed you by the ropewalk last Friday afternoon. I was going
-to Polly Little’s to bring home some tulip bulbs for Granny. I waved to
-you, but you wouldn’t see me. You were too busy cleaning a tar barrel.”
-
-Dick looked down at the worn planks of Somerby’s Wharf. It was dark
-beside the river now, and the only light came from the windowpanes of
-the small houses along the street.
-
-“I’m sorry, Kitty,” he said.
-
-“It doesn’t matter, Dick,” she answered. Her blue eyes smiled at him.
-Her voice sounded soothing and kind.
-
-The five of them stood there, silent in the spring night and the sharp
-sea wind. Johnny shifted his feet uneasily. Even Sally Rose did not
-know what to do or say.
-
-Finally Eben spoke. His voice quavered a little, harsh, and
-self-conscious, and high. “If I had a shilling,” he said, “I’d ask you
-all to come up to the Wolfe Tavern and have a glass of beer.”
-
-Dick snorted. “Lot of good a shilling would do you there!” he said.
-“Ma’am Davenport’s real strict. She won’t sell drink to lads of
-thirteen.”
-
-Eben wilted for a moment. Then Sally Rose smiled at him, and he squared
-his shoulders and stood up taller than before.
-
-“I don’t care for the taste of beer,” she said. “Perhaps I see too much
-of it in Father’s tavern as it passes over the board. But thank you,
-Eben. It was a kind thought.”
-
-She turned to Johnny, and her voice grew low and soft. “Will there be a
-moon?” she asked.
-
-He answered her gruffly. “Not till later. Much later, after the bells
-have rung curfew; after you girls are home abed.”
-
-“Oh--?” answered Sally Rose provocatively.
-
-“Well, here we are, Sally Rose,” said Kitty in a brisk tone, “You said
-you wanted to come down to the river.”
-
-She looked out at the dark flowing stream with the river barges and
-fishing smacks and deep-sea-going ships moored on its quiet surface,
-lanterns in their rigging, their tall masts reared against the sky, and
-their sails furled tight. Ships home from Virginia and the Barbados,
-from all over the world, maybe; their holds full of sugar and rice and
-wine, silks and laces and oil, India muslins, and French knickknacks,
-and gunpowder out of Holland--even if they carried no tea. Try as they
-would, the King’s laws hadn’t been able to interfere too much with
-trade.
-
-“Now that you’re here,” she went on, “what do you want to do?”
-
-“We could go for a walk through the marshes, Plum Island way,” said
-Sally Rose, looking at Johnny.
-
-“All of us?” he asked her. Kitty and Eben and Dick ought to know that
-he meant for them to go away and leave him alone with Sally Rose. But
-they didn’t go.
-
-“We could all go back to our house and have plum cake and buttermilk,”
-suggested Kitty. “Granny cut a new plum cake yesterday.”
-
-Eben’s voice rose high and shrill again. “We could play hide-and-seek,”
-he announced boldly.
-
-Sally Rose giggled. Then she clapped a hand over her mouth.
-
-“That’s only for young ’uns,” muttered Dick. “I be too big for that
-now.”
-
-But suddenly Kitty defended the idea.
-
-“You’re right, of course, Dick,” she said wistfully. “But then, don’t
-you sometimes hate to feel you’re getting too big for the things that
-used to be fun? Eben’s the youngest of us, and he finished school more
-than a year ago. Soon we’ll be grown and married, with houses and
-children, and we won’t be able to run out after dark like this, and
-walk by the river, and watch for the moon. We’ll have to stay in, and
-rock babies, and split firewood, and see that the doors are locked
-and the table set for breakfast. It’ll come on us all so soon now.”
-She looked at Johnny appealingly. “Let’s have one last play night--one
-night to be young--before we grow too old.”
-
-Johnny’s eyes widened suddenly, and his mouth curved in a smile. Sally
-Rose had a cluster of apple buds pinned on her bodice, and their
-sweetness hovered all about. It made him feel sad, and happy, and
-unsettled as a girl, ready to agree to anything, even Kitty’s daft
-notion.
-
-“Right enough, Kit,” he said. “For one more night, we’ll be young.
-We’ll play hide-and-seek, if we never do again. I’ll count first, and
-the rest of you hide. This’ll be goal, this empty rum keg here.”
-
-He sat down on the rum keg and buried his face in his hands.
-“Ten--fifteen--twenty--” he began slowly.
-
-With a little squeal, Sally Rose picked up her skirts and ran to hide
-behind a pile of lobster crates in a far corner. The others hesitated a
-moment.
-
-“Forty-five--fifty--” went on Johnny, still very slow.
-
-They scattered then. Eben crawled under a ship’s boat, broken and lying
-sideways on the wharf. Dick ran into a doorway across the lane. Kitty
-waited until she had barely time to crouch down behind a pile of wooden
-boxes marked with a black “W. I.”--West India goods.
-
-“Ninety-five--one hundred--here I come!” Johnny shouted. He stood up
-and peered around him, but only for a moment. In almost no time at
-all he found Sally Rose, but it was a little longer before he pulled
-her out from behind the lobster crates. Perhaps he had peeked through
-his fingers, Kitty thought, so that he knew where to look. Perhaps he
-kissed Sally Rose before they were in plain sight again.
-
-Anyway, it was now Sally Rose’s turn to count, and she found Dick with
-little trouble.
-
-But after that they really did seem to be young again, and entered
-into the spirit of the game. Gradually the counting got slower, and the
-hiding places farther and farther away. Then Sally Rose and Kitty hid
-together behind a heap of mackerel nets, and Eben found them both at
-the same time.
-
-“Tie find! Now which of you’s to count and go seek?” asked Dick,
-putting up his head in the sharp wind. “Just about once more, and
-’twill be curfew time, and we’ll have to go home.”
-
-“I’ll count,” offered Kitty.
-
-“No, let me,” said Sally Rose.
-
-“How about me having a turn?”
-
-It was a strange voice that spoke, a boy’s voice, quiet and cool, but
-with a mocking note of laughter in it.
-
-They turned around suddenly and stared. There on the wharf behind them
-stood a tall fellow not much older than Johnny, with a lean face, sharp
-gray eyes, and sun-bleached hair. He wore cowhide boots and a loose
-hunting shirt over moosehide breeches. He carried a long pole with an
-iron barb on the end, such as the lumbermen used to break up log jams
-and herd the great rafts down the river.
-
-“I’m know I’m a stranger here,” he went on, “but I ain’t poison. I been
-watching you awhile. I’d like a hand in the game.”
-
-“You came down river with the logs?” asked Dick slowly.
-
-The stranger nodded. “Aye, clear from the falls at Derryfield. A fellow
-can be lonely--away from his own town at night--first time away.” The
-sharpness went out of his eyes, and he looked younger, almost like a
-little boy.
-
-“Of course you can play,” cried Kitty, sympathy in her voice. “I’ve
-been lonely, too, sometimes, when I went to visit Sally Rose in
-Charlestown, and I know what it’s like. He can count this time, can’t
-he, Sally Rose?”
-
-“Of course he can,” said Sally Rose, smiling at the strange lad,
-flicking her lashes.
-
-Dick and Eben looked crestfallen. Johnny kicked the side of the rum
-keg. “Didn’t know backwoodsmen could count,” he sneered. “Tell us what
-your name is, if you want to play.”
-
-The stranger narrowed his eyes, then he opened them wide and smiled
-innocently. “My name’s Tom Trask,” he said, “and I can count.” He
-put his head down in the crook of his arm, but they did not hear the
-familiar “Ten--fifteen--twenty--”
-
-After a moment, thinking he might be counting to himself, they started
-to straggle away. Kitty did not watch where the others went to. Seconds
-mattered at a time like this. She slipped behind a row of tar barrels
-at the corner of the counting house and stood there, listening to the
-water as it sucked at the piles underneath, to the sound of singing and
-fiddle music where the sailors were making merry on the deck of a ship
-moored a hundred yards off shore.
-
-Suddenly the voice of the young logger from up the Merrimack whipped
-out like the command of the captain to the volunteers who drilled on
-Frog Pond green come muster day.
-
-“Ten--ten--double ten--forty-five--fifteen!”
-
-He reached his hundred all at once, leaped from the keg, and ran
-straight toward her, toward her, Kitty Greenleaf, of the High Street
-in Newburyport, who had never seen him before tonight. He ran to her,
-around the tar barrels, around the corner of the counting house. In
-a moment he had put his arms about her and kissed her on the mouth,
-kissed her hard.
-
-Not used to such sudden attack, not used to kissing any lad at all,
-except in kissing games where everybody looked on and laughed, or
-when Dick bade her a shy good night sometimes by the garden wall, she
-struggled, and sputtered, and pulled away.
-
-She wiped her mouth and looked up. “What--what did you do that for?”
-she gasped.
-
-The gray eyes were smiling down at her, there in the chilly spring
-dark, the thin mouth crooked upward in a smile.
-
-“Like I said, a lad’s lonely in a strange town at night.”
-
-Before she could answer, she heard a soft little laugh beside them. She
-turned about. There stood Sally Rose. Sally Rose flickered her long
-lashes and opened her hazel eyes very wide.
-
-“There’s no need for you to be lonely,” she trilled. “My, but you’re a
-handsome lad! We’ve none such handsome lads in Charlestown.”
-
-Tom Trask eyed her coldly. His mouth was still smiling, but his eyes
-looked sharp and unfriendly in the candlelight that shone through the
-dusty panes of the counting-house window behind his head.
-
-“Charlestown can’t be much of a place,” he retorted, “though I wouldn’t
-know, for my business never took me there, and ’tisn’t likely to.
-But--” He paused a moment, and his head lifted a little. “Up the
-Merrimack we got prettier girls than you. Maybe a score.”
-
-Sally Rose’s eyes flashed, and she tossed her curls. “I don’t care
-what’s up the Merrimack. I look pretty enough in Charlestown! Pretty
-enough to please Captain Gerald Malory of the Twenty-third!”
-
-The logger did not answer her. He turned around and walked slowly down
-the wharf. Kitty could hear the ring of the iron nails in the soles of
-his country boots as he strode away.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Two_
-
-IN READINESS TO MARCH
-
-
-“Insolent plowboy!” exclaimed Sally Rose haughtily. She stood in front
-of the mirror wreathed with gilt cupids, her palms flat on the mahogany
-dressing table, and stared at her own reflection, curls loosened and
-falling over the shoulders of her white cambric night robe, her eyes
-narrowed and glinting coldly in the candlelight. Then the coldness
-dissolved away, and she giggled.
-
-Kitty, lying sprawled on the patchwork counterpane that covered the
-great four-poster bed, giggled too, uncertainly. Sally Rose had moods
-that changed so fast she was never able to keep up with them. So, as
-usual, she didn’t try, but spoke her mind in her turn.
-
-“He wasn’t a plowboy, he was a logger,” she said. “Maybe the owner of a
-whole forest as big as this parish. Some of them are, you know, those
-up-country lads. And he was too smart for you, Sally Rose. He knew you
-were making fun of him.”
-
-Sally Rose sat down on the counterpane and hugged her knees. She looked
-thoughtful. “Yes, he knew,” she said. “But when I said the same thing
-to Johnny Pettengall, Johnny thought I meant it. Inside, I almost
-laughed myself to death. I wonder why I couldn’t fool that backwoods
-boy, when I could fool Johnny.”
-
-“Maybe because he’s older,” suggested Kitty. “He looked older, anyway.”
-She got up, went to the chest, and blew the candle out.
-
-“Yes,” reflected Sally Rose, “older, but not really a man--not so much
-as twenty.”
-
-“Is that how old he is?” Kitty demanded. “Come on now, Sally Rose. Tell
-me all about him.”
-
-“About who?” asked Sally Rose. “The logger? Tom Trask was his name, he
-said. I don’t know anything about Tom Trask, except that I caught him
-kissing you. I wonder why you didn’t stop him. If Granny finds out--”
-
-“I didn’t have time to stop him,” retorted Kitty severely. “And don’t
-try to change the subject. The ‘him’ I want to know about is that
-British officer. Captain Malory of the Twenty-third.”
-
-“Oh!” exclaimed Sally Rose uneasily. She, too, left the bed, and went
-to stand between the patchwork curtains at the window. It was nearly
-midnight. Late moonrise silvered the sky over Plum Island, and the
-young leaves stirred restlessly in the sea wind, hiding the quiet
-darkness of Granny’s crocus and daffodil beds in the garden below.
-
-“You know you really want to tell me about him,” continued Kitty. “You
-always want to tell me about the lads you’ve taken a fancy to.”
-
-Sally Rose did not turn, and when she answered, her voice was very
-quiet, with none of the usual merry undertones that made it so
-charming. “Oh, but this is different, Kitty. You guessed right--he is
-twenty. And Father says he’s an enemy.” She laughed ruefully. “In fact,
-Father says he’s a damned lobsterback, and I mustn’t see him again. But
-I sent him a note to tell him where I was going, and maybe.... But how
-did you know he was British? You only heard me say his name.”
-
-Kitty could feel her face burn in the darkness. She still felt ashamed,
-though it hadn’t been her fault, really.
-
-“I read it in a letter,” she said with some stiffness, “the letter your
-father wrote to Granny, telling her why he was sending you here. I went
-down to meet the postrider, and when he handed me a letter addressed to
-C. Greenleaf, I never thought that it was for Granny instead of me, and
-so I read it. Of course she’s Catherine, too.”
-
-“What did Father say?” asked Sally Rose. Her voice had a worried sound.
-
-“It began, ‘My dear,’ instead of ‘Dear Mother’--that’s why I didn’t
-know it was for Gran, and I kept on reading. He said ‘I’m worried about
-our little girl.’”
-
-Kitty paused, and Sally Rose did not question her any further just
-then. Both girls looked through the window, over the roofs of the town,
-at the wide dark waters of the Merrimack flowing seaward.
-
-Fifteen years ago, about this time of the year, Caleb Greenleaf had
-taken his wife, Becky, and his married sister, Anne Townsend, for a
-little jaunt on the river in the April sunshine. The young mothers had
-left their baby girls with Granny Greenleaf, and gone happily aboard
-his small fishing boat, and no one had foreseen the sudden mad wind,
-the squall of snow that would engulf them. Afterwards, Granny had
-brought up orphan Kitty, but Job Townsend had taken his motherless
-daughter back to Charlestown to his own people. The tragedy had brought
-him close to his mother-in-law, however, so that he still addressed her
-as ‘My dear,’ and spoke of ‘our little girl,’ and there had been much
-going back and forth between them.
-
-For a long moment now, the girls stared at the dark river. Kitty was
-the first to take her eyes away. She did not refer to the old, sad
-loss, of which she knew they were both thinking.
-
-“Your father wrote that he was sending you to stay with us for a
-while,” she said quietly, “to get you away from that British officer
-you’ve been stealing out with. He said this--this enemy--puts on a
-homespun shirt and leather breeches, pretends to be one of our lads,
-and goes wherever he likes, on all the roads round Boston.”
-
-Sally Rose gave a soft little laugh. “Yes,” she said, “Gerry does that
-sometimes. But I like him better when he wears his scarlet coat and his
-sword. He’s sure handsome enough to make any girl forget about Johnny
-Pettengall.”
-
-There was a prideful note in Sally Rose’s voice as she shook back her
-yellow hair.
-
-“But he’s British, Sally Rose! He’s one of the King’s men who’ve
-captured Boston, and closed the port, and made so much trouble for the
-people who live there. Dick says they’ll march out and start shooting
-at us any day now. You’d be better off with a New England lad--even
-that logger.”
-
-Sally Rose sighed. “I know,” she said. “Wars are hard on a girl, Kit. I
-know I’m supposed to hate the British, but how can I, when they are so
-handsome--when they have such gallant manners! I’ll bet wars don’t mean
-a thing to those cupids round the mirror. Love doesn’t know Whig from
-Tory. But why does he have to be--”
-
-Three sharp taps sounded on the other side of the bedroom wall.
-
-“Granny’s cane!” cried Kit softly, lowering her voice to a whisper.
-“That means we’re keeping her awake. But there’s so much I want to
-hear. How you met this Gerry, and--”
-
-“Hush!” breathed Sally Rose, remembering Granny’s outbursts of
-short-lived peppery wrath. “I’ll tell you tomorrow.”
-
-They slipped into bed and lay quiet, side by side, arms relaxed on the
-counterpane, watching the moonlight along the wall. First Kitty turned
-over and sighed. A few minutes later Sally Rose did the same. Finally
-Kitty sat up and punched her pillow. “I can’t sleep,” she said.
-
-“Neither can I,” said Sally Rose. “I feel as if something were going to
-happen.”
-
-Below them in the town the church bells began to ring.
-
-They rang and rang, and kept on ringing. Kitty could see them in her
-mind, tossing wildly in their belfry, high over Market Square. She
-sat up higher in bed. Sally Rose sat up, too, and reached out for her
-cousin’s hand.
-
-“It must be a house afire,” said Kitty. “Can’t be a ship in trouble.
-The wind isn’t that strong.”
-
-She jumped out of bed and ran to the window, but no hot glare lit
-the sky, only the cold pale light of the April moon. Now a noise of
-shouting broke out in Fish Street, growing louder every minute. Lights
-flickered behind the windowpanes of the small wooden houses all about,
-and went on burning, steady and strong. Shadows moved across them.
-People were getting up.
-
-Kitty turned from the window. “Let’s get dressed!” she cried. “Maybe
-Granny will let us go and see what it’s all about.” But Sally Rose was
-already fastening her petticoat.
-
-Pulling large winter shawls about them to hide half-buttoned bodices
-and yawning plackets, they tiptoed into the hall, but Granny had got
-there ahead of them. She stood at the top of the stairs, small, and
-neat, and wizened, looking as if she were ready to go to church on a
-Sunday morning, her costume complete, even to gold eardrops and a chip
-bonnet with ostrich plumes. She had a lighted candle in one hand, and
-her cane, which she carried but seldom used, in the other. She opened
-her mouth to speak to them, but was interrupted by a heavy knocking on
-the front door and a man’s voice shouting for Timothy.
-
-Timothy Coffin, Granny’s hired man who tended the garden and split the
-firewood, came tumbling down from his tiny attic chamber. Gnarled and
-weathered, not much younger than his employer, his arms were half in,
-half out of his woolen jacket, and he carried an old flintlock, like
-himself, a veteran of the siege of Louisburg thirty years ago.
-
-“Git out o’ my way, women,” he shouted, as he tore past them. “I’ll bet
-it’s them varmints. I knowed they was about to strike!”
-
-Granny peered after him in bewilderment, as he fumbled with the lock of
-the heavy front door.
-
-“Does he mean the Indians?” she asked. “When I was a girl I used to
-hear stories--but it seems they’re too scarce hereabout to cause any
-trouble now.”
-
-Timothy finally got the door open and stood there, listening to a
-hoarse excited voice that spoke in the dark outside. Suddenly he turned
-around.
-
-“I’m off, Ma’am Greenleaf!” he called to Granny. “Them British dogs has
-struck at last. I signed the pledge for a Minuteman. I swore to hold
-myself in readiness to march whenever I be ordered. An’ I be ordered
-now.”
-
-“If you’re going far, you’d better take some food with you,” said
-Granny smartly. “Take all the bread in the cupboard, and the cold
-chicken--”
-
-“And the plum cake,” interrupted Kitty. “We cut a plum cake yesterday.”
-
-“Where are you going, Timothy? Where did the ‘British dogs’ strike?”
-asked Sally Rose, her eyes looking large in her white face.
-
-Timothy did not answer her. Instead he ducked into the kitchen. The
-front door yawned open, and through it they could hear the terrible
-clamor of the bells, the lift of excited voices as the townspeople
-hastened by.
-
-“Come, girls,” said Granny. “I aim to learn what this commotion is all
-about.”
-
-They followed her out of the house and along High Street, past the Frog
-Pond and the new training green laid out where the windmill used to be.
-
-A crowd had gathered in front of the Wolfe Tavern, and they paused at
-the outskirts of it. Torches flared all about, lighting up the portrait
-of General Wolfe that hung on a pole near the tavern door, flickering
-on the windowpanes along Fish Street and on the startled faces of the
-Newburyport folk. Fashionable flounced ladies stood side by side with
-barefooted fishwives from Flatiron Point, while toddlers clung to their
-skirts, and urchins raced here and there, shouting with shrill voices,
-as if they played some sort of exciting game. Most of the men were
-gathered round the tavern’s high front steps, and new arrivals kept
-elbowing their way forward every minute. The throng bristled everywhere
-with gun barrels; a flintlock, a fowling piece, an old queen’s arm.
-
-“There’s Johnny,” said Sally Rose suddenly, and sure enough, Kitty
-craned her neck and saw him standing with the other men, his hands
-gripping a heavy musket. He was watching the tavern door intently. He
-did not look their way.
-
-“What’s going on here?” demanded Granny in a querulous tone. Everybody
-seemed to be talking at once, but nobody answered her.
-
-A man wearing a blue coat and carrying a sword came out of the tavern
-and stood still at the top of the steps, looking round him. He held
-up his hand. The urchins stopped shouting. The bells down the street
-pealed a time or two and then were silent. The voices of the crowd died
-away. A sudden burst of spring wind lifted a heap of dead leaves from
-the gutter and swirled it high in the face of the round white moon.
-
-The man on the steps began to speak. “Men o’ the Port,” he called out,
-in a voice that was low and deep, a voice that without lifting or
-straining itself could be heard in all the streets and lanes nearby,
-“New England blood’s been spilt, as some o’ you know. But for them that
-don’t, I’ll read the word the postrider brought.” He waved a paper
-aloft, then held it square in front of him.
-
-“‘To all friends of American Liberty, let it be known! This morning
-before break of day, a brigade consisting of some twelve hundred
-redcoats ... marched to Lexington ... and on to Concord Bridge. Many
-were slain both sides, and the roads are bloody. Another brigade is now
-upon the march from Boston!’”
-
-He put the paper down. “Men o’ the Port, such as signed the pledge,
-‘We do enlist ourselves as Minutemen and do engage that we will hold
-ourselves in readiness to march!’ All such men to the training green!
-Fall in by companies! Come, lads! Up the hill!”
-
-With a cheer the men surged up Fish Street, shoulders hunched and heads
-thrust forward, their guns gripped in their hands. With cries of dismay
-and alarm the women began to trail after them. Granny stood still,
-leaning on her cane.
-
-“There’s Dick and Eben,” cried Kitty. “Dick!” She lifted her voice.
-“Dick, come here and tell me where they are going. Dick, are you going
-too?”
-
-But Dick and Eben were hurrying after the Minutemen. They looked at the
-girls and waved, and then ran on.
-
-“Ah, here’s Mr. Cary,” Granny exclaimed. “Now we’ll see what all this
-uproar is likely to lead to.” She trotted over to the minister who was
-moving swiftly up the street, his wig not quite straight, and the linen
-bands at his throat somewhat disordered. “Mr. Cary, tell me now, what
-does all this mean?”
-
-The minister paused, adjusted his wig, and mopped his brow with a lawn
-handkerchief. “I’m afraid it means war, Madame Greenleaf. It was bound
-to come. They’ve oppressed us too far. But about this latest outrage--I
-myself talked with the postrider, and he was there and saw it all. A
-frightful slaughter!” He looked at the girls and lowered his voice, but
-they heard him all the same.
-
-“He says that when he left, the whole rout was fleeing back towards
-Boston, but he heard Captain Parker say that if they mean to have a
-war, let it begin here. ’Twould seem they so mean, and that it has
-begun.”
-
-“Who were the redcoats?” asked Sally Rose in a small tremulous voice.
-“Did he say if it was the Twenty-third?”
-
-Mr. Cary looked at her sharply. “Who knows one redcoat from another,
-and what does it matter?” he demanded. “But I believe he did mention
-the Twenty-third. It seems they were not in the thickest of the
-engagement, but posted out to help their fellow scoundrels home to
-Boston.”
-
-Sally Rose let her breath escape in a little sigh of relief. Granny
-tapped her cane on a granite horse block nearby to get Mr. Carey’s
-attention again.
-
-“Well, what do our lads think to do about it? Why get folks out of bed
-in the middle of the night? Must we fortify the Port and barricade
-ourselves in our houses because there’s been a fuss in Lexington? Are
-the British headed for Frog Pond Green?”
-
-Mr. Cary started to smile and then bit his lip. “Hardly that, but our
-companies will assemble and march from there. The word’s been passed
-for such men as are able to bear arms to make their way to Cambridge
-with all speed.”
-
-“Huh!” said Granny. “Cambridge is a good ways off. I hope Timothy took
-the plum cake. Come, girls! Now that I’ve satisfied my mind, I’m going
-home.”
-
-“Oh no, Gran,” pleaded Sally Rose, composed and sure of herself again,
-now that she felt reasonably certain her British Gerry had come to no
-harm. “I want to go up to the green and see them off. It’ll hearten
-them to have us there, to have us wave them good luck as they march
-away.”
-
-“Nonsense!” snapped Granny. “The lads will have other things on their
-minds. They got no time now for yellow hair.”
-
-The squeal of a fife and the solemn throb of a beating drum broke
-through the shouts of the crowd on the training green.
-
-“But I don’t want to go back to bed,” pouted Sally Rose.
-
-“And why did you think you were going back to bed, miss?” Granny
-demanded. “Parson Cary says there’s a war begun. That means we’ll into
-the attic and try to find those bullet molds I put away when I hoped
-we wouldn’t need them any more. They haven’t been used since your
-grandfather’s time, but I think likely they’re still there.”
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Three_
-
-TWO TO BEGIN
-
-
-“I told you they’d fight,” said the young man grimly, biting the end
-of a cartridge and letting a thin stream of black powder dribble into
-the pan of his flintlock. He knelt at the tail gate of the farm wagon
-that rattled and swayed from side to side as Sergeant Higgs of the
-Twenty-third drove it pell-mell down the Charlestown Road.
-
-His hat was gone and his red coat in tatters. His white breeches were
-stained with gunpowder and the blood of the wounded men who lay on
-the floor of the wagon; stained, too, with the gray earth of this
-unfamiliar country, so unlike the ruddy loam of his native Devonshire.
-
-“I told you they’d fight,” he repeated. “I been amongst ’em, and I
-know.”
-
-Nobody answered him, but he heard the roar of musket fire back in the
-hills, the roar of flames from a burning house in a grove of crooked
-trees a few yards away. He thought impatiently that it had never taken
-him so long to load before.
-
-“Shut your pan. Charge with your cartridge. Draw your hammer,” he
-muttered, as his fingers moved swiftly along the reeking barrel. No
-old hand at this business of soldiering, he felt reassured to find the
-phrases of the British Arms Manual fall so readily from his tongue.
-
-The cart rocked and rumbled down a narrow track at the edge of the salt
-marshes. Moors, clay pits, and scrubby oak trees stretched to the foot
-of the hillside on his left. To his right, in the middle of the river,
-he could see the lights on board the man-o’-war _Somerset_, and beyond
-them, the low roofs and steeples of Boston. Would he ever present arms
-on Boston Common again, or offer his own arms in another sort of way to
-the pretty girls who went walking there? He began to doubt it now.
-
-“Run down your cartridge. Withdraw your rammer.” He was ready at last.
-He lifted the gun and pointed it horizontally, pointed it, pulled the
-ten-pound trigger, and at the same instant stiffened his body against
-the powerful recoil.
-
-Then he heard a triumphant roar as the gun went off, sending its charge
-of powder and ball in the direction of the pursuing Yankees. Hooray!
-Sometimes it merely sparked and fizzled in the pan. God send he had hit
-somebody!
-
-“The Yankees don’t fire like that, lad,” he heard a voice mutter.
-
-Turning his head in surprise, he looked down at a battered veteran who
-crouched a few feet away, dabbing at a shoulder wound.
-
-“What do you mean?” he demanded. There wasn’t enough of the man’s
-uniform left to tell whether he was an officer or not. Best be safe and
-address him so. His voice had a ring of authority, for all it came so
-weakly from his throat.
-
-“I know.” The older man smiled through bluish lips. “You fire as you
-were taught, and so do I. Did you ever engage with the Rebels before?”
-
-“Not exactly, sir,” said Gerry Malory of the Twenty-third. “I’ve gone
-amongst them somewhat--‘incognito,’ one might say.”
-
-“Ah! Detailed for spy duty, perhaps?”
-
-Gerry felt his face flush. I talk too much, he thought.
-
-The dusk was drawing in thickly now, with a little fog winding up from
-the river. Flashes of light burst out on the road behind him, like
-fireflies in a hawthorn thicket, all the way back towards Cambridge
-where the relief regiments under Lord Percy were trying to cover
-the rout of the troops that had charged so proudly that morning on
-Lexington Green.
-
-He heard a whoosh in the dull air behind them. “Duck, lads,” he cried,
-and flung himself down on the floor of the cart. The whoosh turned to
-a shrill whistle and then to a scream as it passed overhead. Then came
-a thud and a splash as the heavy ball fell harmlessly on the sludgy
-ground.
-
-Gerry lifted his head. “Drive like the devil, Sergeant,” he shouted.
-“Once we get over Charlestown Neck, we’re as safe as the Tower of
-London. They’ll never follow us under the guns of our own ships.”
-
-“Causeway’s just ahead!” shouted back Sergeant Higgs, whipping the
-horses.
-
-Gerry stood up and looked around him. They were well down on the narrow
-neck of wasteland now, between the wide, sea-flowing mouths of the
-Charles and the Mystic. He could smell the salt air and feel the cool
-wind on his hot face. Groups of weary red-coated men straggled into the
-marsh grass to let them drive through. How many had preceded him into
-safety, how many were left in the running fight behind, he couldn’t
-tell. But he saw campfires on the smooth green hills above Charlestown
-village, and he thought longingly of the farms and orchards there, a
-little more longingly of the Bay and Beagle Tavern and a girl called
-Sally Rose.
-
-“Not detailed for spy duty?” asked the veteran persistently.
-
-Gerry looked down at him, and he was enough of a soldier to realize
-that the wounded man wanted to engage in conversation in order to
-forget his pain. He seated himself on the floor of the wagon and
-answered evasively.
-
-“No, but I go about sometimes. I like to know what kind of men the
-Rebels are, and what their country is like. Maybe walk out with a girl
-and play a prank or two. I be West Country-bred, and not too fond
-o’ towns and barracks life.” Then he thought of a way to shift the
-attention to another matter. “But what were you saying about the way I
-shoot?”
-
-The man grinned. A bit of color had come back into his face now, and
-the dark stain was no longer spreading on the shoulder of his coat.
-
-“Why, you load and prime your piece and blast away, hoping the shot
-will tell. The Yankees sight and aim. I saw the man who hit me. Stood
-up behind a stone wall, looked me over, head to toe, and marked me
-down. We fire line to line, and they fire man to man. We shoot in the
-direction of the enemy. They pick a target. That’s why they’ve got us
-running away.”
-
-You mean they shoot like poachers, thought Gerry. Like poachers after
-pheasants in the squire’s bit o’ woodland. But he did not say it out
-loud. Every man’s past was his own, but to keep it so, he had to be
-wary.
-
-They had crossed the Neck by this time, and the road veered away to the
-right, circling the foot of Bunker Hill and heading for Charlestown
-village.
-
-“Don’t hear them firing after us any more,” said Gerry, peering back
-the way they had come. Some of the sunset red was still left in the
-sky, and enough daylight for him to see that the road behind them was
-choked with carts and stragglers, but the whole pace of the retreat
-seemed to have slowed.
-
-“No, and you won’t hear them again tonight. They won’t dare follow us
-into Charlestown. Could you hold me up, lad? I do not breathe as easily
-as I am wont to do.”
-
-Gerry knelt down, got his hands under the limp elbows of the fallen
-officer, and hoisted him into a sitting position against the side of
-the cart. The man drew a few painful breaths and then spoke again.
-
-“Thank you for your trouble. I am Captain Blakeslee of the King’s Own.”
-
-“’Twas no trouble, sir,” muttered Gerry uneasily. “I be Private Malory
-of the Twenty-third.”
-
-The captain’s face relaxed in a smile. “A fine regiment--the Welsh
-Fusileers. I was a guest when they made merry on last St. David’s day.
-Ah--it comes to me now. I knew I had seen your face before. Were you
-not the lad who led forth the goat with the gilded horns? He ran wild,
-I remember, leaped on the table, and up-ended our wine glasses just as
-we were going to drink to the Prince of Wales! A ludicrous scene!”
-
-Gerry’s cheeks grew hot in the darkness, and he clenched his fists to
-keep his shame and resentment down. Yes, he had led the damn goat that
-according to army tradition preceded the Welsh Fusileers whenever they
-passed in review. Led, and cleaned it, and curried it, and bedded it
-down every night in a stable near Long Wharf, and twisted garlands
-about its horns on parade days. He still remembered the hideous
-embarrassment of the moment when the beast had escaped him.
-
-Signed up for a soldier, he had, reluctantly, but expecting his share
-of excitement and glory. Until today he had done nothing save tend
-that black-tempered goat. No wonder he had fallen into the habit of
-“borrowing” a captain’s uniform or an American’s homespun breeches
-and tow shirt, and gone swaggering out amongst the girls in the Yankee
-villages now and then! A man had to have his pride and sweetness and a
-bit of sport in life. He had learned to imitate the officers’ pompous
-speech and attitudes, or to talk with a New England twang. Maybe he’d
-go for a strolling player when he got home again. Maybe he’d be good at
-it, he thought. But of course, it was in his blood, and no wonder if he
-should turn out that way.
-
-The farm cart ground to a stop just as Gerry was about to mutter that
-it was indeed he who led the goat. Sergeant Higgs leaned over to confer
-with an officer in fresh white trousers and trim jacket, a man who had
-obviously taken no part in the fighting that day. Then the officer
-stood aside, the sergeant pulled sharply on the reins, and Gerry felt
-the wagon leave the road and go lurching across a field at the foot of
-Bunker Hill. One of the wounded men sat up. The others began to moan
-and swear.
-
-“You’re off course, Higgs!” shouted Gerry, forgetting that his
-barracks-mate outranked him and was entitled to a more respectful
-salute.
-
-Higgs turned around, his broad face a white blur in the darkness. “I be
-following orders, Private Malory. We’re to wait by yon hill till the
-troops clears a way through the town so the boats can take us off. By
-midnight we’ll all be back in Boston.”
-
-“Thank God,” murmured Captain Blakeslee, and then as Higgs drew up the
-cart in a little grove of locust trees, he turned to the younger man.
-“Will you help me down on the grass for a bit, lad? I’ve taken a notion
-to feel the earth under me. Better under than over.” He gave a weak
-smile.
-
-“Give us a hand, Higgs,” called Gerry, trying to lift the captain,
-almost a dead weight this time.
-
-Jack Higgs was six years older than Gerry. This was not his first
-battle, nor the first wounded man he had seen. The moment he joined
-them in the bed of the wagon, he thrust his hand inside the tattered
-coat. Then he pulled it out again and muttered under his breath. For a
-long moment he stared at Gerry.
-
-“Is--is it bad?” faltered the young private, feeling suddenly afraid,
-as he had not felt all that afternoon when the Yankees were shooting at
-him as he retreated down the Charlestown Road.
-
-Captain Blakeslee gave a hoarse cough.
-
-“Bad enough,” said Higgs. “Tell you what, Gerry. Go down into
-Charlestown and see if you can find a surgeon. Tell him we got need of
-him here.”
-
-“Put--me--on the ground,” whispered Captain Blakeslee. He lay slumped
-against the side of the wagon and tried to lift his head, but he was
-not strong enough.
-
-Together Gerry and Sergeant Higgs got him out of the cart and stretched
-the limp body on the young grass under a locust tree.
-
-“I’ll go quickly,” Gerry promised. “I’ll come back with the surgeon. I
-hope ’twill be in time.”
-
-“Good luck to you, lad,” said the sergeant. He was still bending over
-the wounded man when Gerry hastened off.
-
-The journey proved not to be a long one, but over all too soon. Ten
-minutes hard running across the fields, a brief encounter, and he came
-pounding back. Jack Higgs stood leaning against the wagon. He had
-lighted a little fire of dead boughs, and in its light his usually
-pleasant face looked somber, his eyes a little sick. He was in his
-shirt sleeves now.
-
-“They told me I was a fool,” panted Gerry. “Told me no surgeon would
-come out this far to save one man, or three, or four, when so many lies
-bleeding there in the town. How is the Captain? Jack--where is your
-coat?”
-
-Sergeant Higgs motioned toward a dark heap under the locust tree. For a
-moment he stood silent, then he spoke.
-
-“Surgeons couldn’t ha’ saved him, Gerry--not a whole regiment of ’em
-marched out here two and two. When I put my hand to him, his flesh was
-already cold. He was about gone. I knew they wouldn’t come. I only
-sent you to get you away. You never been in battle, never seen men die
-before.”
-
-“Your coat--?” faltered Gerry. Not that the coat mattered, but he felt
-he could not talk of anything that did.
-
-“I laid it across his face,” said Higgs, clearing his throat.
-“Afterwards. It seemed more decent-like, somehow.”
-
-Gerry sat down on the grass beside the little fire, there being nothing
-else to do. The moon had risen and was shining wanly down on the hills
-and pastures, on the roofs of Charlestown village. It made a path of
-silver across the black bay, a path to the lighted shores of Boston.
-Lanterns flashed in the midst of it, lanterns on the prows of the boats
-that were carrying the badly defeated British back to the town they had
-left so proudly the night before.
-
-Gerry thought how he himself and the rest of the Twenty-third had
-marched out that morning, fifers playing “Yankee Doodle,” and colors
-lifting on the spring wind. They had marched inland by way of the Neck,
-through Roxbury to Cambridge, and so far, it was all a game. But the
-sport ceased near Lexington where they met their fleeing comrades who
-had gone to Concord to raid the Yankees’ powder magazine. Powerful
-grenadiers dropped exhausted and lay like dogs after a hunt, panting,
-their tongues hanging out. The Marines and Light Infantry scattered
-helter-skelter across the countryside, while the farmers fired at them
-from behind every wall and tree.
-
-“Cover the retreat,” his regiment had been ordered, and they had done
-so, in a running battle all the way back to Cambridge. It was there
-that an officer had detailed him and his sergeant to help get the
-wounded away.
-
-And now one of those wounded was dead, Captain Blakeslee. Why should it
-matter to him, when he had known the captain such a little time? But
-it did matter. A lump swelled and stiffened inside his throat. Then
-he looked down towards Charlestown and thought of Sally Rose. But she
-wouldn’t be there, of course. She had gone to visit her kin in a town
-called Newburyport, a town in the country somewhere. Her father had
-sent her away because he thought she was too good for a captain of the
-Welsh Fusileers. And if he felt that way about a captain, how would he
-feel about the private who tended a goat in stable and led it out on
-muster day? How would Sally Rose feel if she knew the truth about him?
-And then somehow Sally Rose began to dwindle in his mind, and for the
-moment she did not matter any more. He remembered that he had fought
-his first battle and come out alive, but Captain Blakeslee was dead,
-and maybe tomorrow there would be another battle, and he would be the
-one to lie under the locust tree, under some comrade’s tattered coat.
-
-“Open your haversack, lad,” said Sergeant Higgs, his voice cheery
-again. “I found a spring on the hillside a bit of a ways off, and I’ve
-been fetching water to the men in the wagon there. They be all somewhat
-easier now, and the boats will have us in Boston before long.” He threw
-another armful of dry branches on the fire. “You’ve salt pork and
-bread, like the rest of us, so eat up your supper. ’Twill taste little
-worse for the fact that good men be dead, and we lost the day.”
-
-“I know we were driven back,” murmured Gerry, obeying the sergeant and
-taking out his small parcel of food. “But didn’t the troops get the
-Rebel stores they went for? Didn’t they get to Concord before...?”
-
-Higgs nodded. He had run the point of his bayonet through a lump of
-thick, greasy-looking meat and held it over the fire. “Oh, they got
-there, all right,” he said. “But they’d been better off if they’d
-stayed in barracks, according to the way I heard. They broke up a
-couple of cannon, rolled some powder kegs into a millpond, and burnt a
-house or two. Then they was routed. But ’twould be a different story if
-the Yankees would come out in the open and fight like men.”
-
-“They seemed to be in an almighty rage about something,” said Gerry,
-beginning to toast his own meat, keeping his eyes away from the shadow
-under the locust tree. “And they had no sort of uniformed army. Men
-in shirts and leather breeches, just as they’d come from the plow or
-workshop. Well, all spring we’ve been sure there was fighting ahead of
-us. Now it’s begun.”
-
-“Yes,” said Jack Higgs, looking out at the dark shapes of the rescue
-boats that crossed and recrossed the moonlit water. “It’s begun, and
-it took two to begin it--we and they. But at the end--there’ll be left
-only one.”
-
-“And it better be we!” Gerry felt his own features soften in a smile.
-
-He put up his head in the sharp night air and heard the bugles sounding
-on the peaceful green crest of Bunker Hill. They were British bugles,
-and they reassured him. For the last hour or so, he had been sure he
-would never have the heart to go forth disguised and playing pranks
-about the countryside again. But now it seemed to him that perhaps he
-might.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Four_
-
-THE COURAGE TO GO AND THE FEET TO GET HIM THERE
-
-
-“Not that way, child!” cried Granny warningly. “Lord o’ mercy, Sally
-Rose, take care!”
-
-Sally Rose stood by the huge brick fireplace in the raftered kitchen
-and stared desperately about her. In her hands she held a hot iron
-kettle full of molten silver-gray lead. It was too heavy for her to
-hold any longer, and she saw no place to set it safely down. Kitty
-would have figured out ahead of time what she meant to do with it, but
-not Sally Rose.
-
-“Let me help you,” cried Kitty, jumping up from her place at the heavy
-oak table where she had been preparing the bullet molds while Sally
-Rose heated the lead. She reached her cousin’s side a second too late.
-The kettle tilted dangerously and fell from Sally Rose’s loosened
-fingers, just missing the yellow flames beneath. It lay on its side at
-the edge of the wide hearth, its contents spilling out harmlessly in
-a gray film over the rosy old bricks, sinking into the cracks between
-them.
-
-“I’m sorry, Gran,” said Sally Rose contritely.
-
-Granny sniffed. “Sorrow butters no parsnips,” she retorted. “Well, it’s
-no use crying over spilt lead, I suppose. That’s one batch of bullets
-will do no harm to the British. But it’s a mercy you didn’t burn
-yourself or set the house afire.” She straightened her muslin cap and
-smoothed her plaid apron with thin, blue-veined hands.
-
-Kitty let her glance rove out of the window, at the gooseberry bushes
-in the kitchen garden and the moist brown seedbeds where Timothy had
-been spading yesterday. His old hickory-handled spade still leaned
-against the garden wall. No telling when he would use it again. Timothy
-had taken his gun and gone to Cambridge, and it seemed like half the
-town had gone with him. Even boys not much older than herself, boys
-like Johnny Pettengall. She still didn’t know about Dick, but then,
-Dick didn’t have a gun, so he’d probably be down at the shipyard, just
-as he always was. She’d make some excuse to go by there, later in the
-day. She wondered about the strange lad from up the Merrimack. Maybe,
-since the war was in Massachusetts Colony, the New Hampshire men would
-think they had no call to go. Still, with his keen eyes and sharp jaw,
-he looked like he’d be wherever there was a fight going on. She heard
-Granny’s brisk voice calling her attention back to the kitchen.
-
-“I suppose you’d better run down to the gunsmith’s, Kitty, and fetch me
-some more pig lead--all he can spare. Sally Rose, you and me’ll get the
-bake ovens going. Uncle Moses Chase came by here awhile back, and he
-says they’re gathering supplies to send by oxcart--enough to feed the
-lads for a few days: hams, flour, meal, salt fish and cooked victuals;
-lint and medicines, too, in case--who told you to take your apron off,
-Sally Rose?”
-
-“Don’t you think I’d better go with Kitty?” asked Sally Rose eagerly.
-“Lead’s apt to be heavy, you know, and--”
-
-“What she can’t carry, the shop will send after her, I don’t doubt,”
-replied Granny. “Sally Rose, you start yourself for the flour barrels.
-Take half rye and half cornmeal....”
-
-Sally Rose pouted. Kitty knew she was pouting, although she did not
-look at her. She tied on her new chip hat with the velvet roses, and
-hastened through the garden, into the street.
-
-“Kitty, take off that hat and put on your old serge hood!” Granny
-called after her. “It looks like there’ll be a shower any minute.”
-Kitty pretended not to hear her.
-
-She walked down the hill into the town, past Mr. Dalton’s mansion house
-and the Wolfe Tavern. People still loitered about in little groups, but
-last night’s excitement seemed to have given place to a quieter mood,
-uneasiness, anxiety, perhaps fear. The shoemaker stood in front of his
-gabled shop, a wooden last in one hand and a strip of purple kid in the
-other, talking to a grizzled old man who peddled clams in Water Street.
-
-“No, we’ve heard no more,” he was saying. “No more o’ the Concord
-Fight, or our lads that marched away. Whole colony’s up, though. Half
-Essex County’s gone, the stage driver says, and the men way out west
-beyond Boston are moving in from their side. Hope to squeeze the
-British in between.”
-
-“Aye,” said the peddler. “The Hampshire lads has started across the
-river, too. Some by ferry, and some with smacks and dories, and they
-say there’ll be more. The word’s gone inland, way beyond Rockingham.”
-
-“You mean they’re going to make cause with us and fight the King’s
-men?” asked the shoemaker, twisting the strip of purple kid in his hand.
-
-The peddler nodded. “They’ve long been sworn to. And everywheres now,
-them as was undecided whether to go Whig or Tory has got to make up
-their minds. You’ll find things’ll be different, now blood’s been
-spilt.”
-
-Kitty walked on, and the words echoed disturbingly in her head.
-The street sloped sharply down to the water, with shops along both
-sides--the milliner’s, the baker’s, the butcher’s--shutters down and
-doors wide open, just as on other days, but nobody seemed to be buying
-anything. Most of the shopkeepers, like the shoemaker, had joined the
-uneasy groups in the street outside.
-
-The gunsmith’s shop was in a narrow lane behind the church, and when
-she reached it, she found its door tightly barred and a crude sign
-dangling from the latch. _Gorn to Cambridj till further notiz_, the
-sign said.
-
-She stood there uncertainly for a moment, and looked about her. The
-soft gray sky seemed to match her own mood, uncertain whether to
-pour down rain or let the sun shine through. Between the houses she
-could see the waters of the river, a darker gray. Not all the men had
-followed the gunsmith’s example, for busy crews were working about
-the wharves and slips, hammers rang from the shipyards, and the tall
-chimneys of the distillery lifted their plumes of smoke, just as if it
-were an ordinary morning. Somehow the sight reassured her. She’d go and
-look for Dick, she thought, and make sure that he hadn’t run off with
-the Minutemen. Then she’d go home and tell Gran about the gunsmith,
-take off her hat, and get ready to help with the baking.
-
-As she passed the sailors’ boardinghouse in Chandler’s Lane, she
-noticed Eben in the backyard chopping wood, and she called to him. He
-straightened up, looked at her for a minute, then put his ax down and
-came over to the board fence.
-
-“What are you after, Kitty? ’Tisn’t no use looking for Dick,” he said.
-
-“I don’t know that I was looking for Dick,” said Kitty tartly,
-chagrined because Eben had read her mind so plain. “But now that you
-speak of him, I don’t suppose he’s off for Cambridge, too?”
-
-Eben nodded solemnly. “Ye-a, Dick’s gone.”
-
-Kitty felt shocked in spite of herself. “But how could he? He doesn’t
-have a gun.”
-
-“He’s got a tomahawk,” said Eben. “Tomahawk they took out o’ his
-great-grandmother’s head when the Indian tried to scalp her up in
-Haverhill in ’96.”
-
-“Why, I know that old thing,” cried Kitty. “It’s duller’n a hoe. We
-played with it when we were children. Might as well try to fight with a
-warming pan!”
-
-Eben shrugged. “Colonel told him to come along,” he said. “Told him
-there’d be men there was poorer armed, he didn’t doubt. Said the
-courage to go and the feet to get him there was all he’d really need.”
-Suddenly he fell silent. He looked down at his own bare feet and
-stubbed one great toe in the moist earth.
-
-Kitty felt a little shaken. So Dick had gone off to fight the British.
-Dick, that she’d played with when they were toddlers and he lived in
-an adjoining house on High Street. How excited they had been, that day
-when they first found out they were big enough to scramble back and
-forth over the low fence. And now he had taken his old tomahawk and
-marched away, a man with other men! And she was left here to do Gran’s
-bidding, just as if she were still a little girl. But she did not feel
-like a little girl. She felt sad and tremulous and excited, as if she
-had the weight of the world on her shoulders, and still, a little happy
-in spite of it all. Maybe this was the feel of growing up. Maybe last
-night when they played hide-and-seek had really been their last night
-to be young, though they hadn’t known it then. Mostly, she thought, we
-never know when we do anything the last time.
-
-She suddenly realized that a soft rain had begun to fall, cooling her
-checks and gathering mistily in her hair.
-
-“Eb--en!” shouted a buxom woman from the back steps of the
-boardinghouse. “Take in my washing off the line! Step lively there!”
-
-Eben muttered, and his face burned crimson as he walked away.
-
-Kitty looked after him for a moment, and her heart stirred with quick
-sympathy. It must be hard for Eben to be left behind to do such humble
-chores while his friend had gone off to war and been accepted as a man.
-The soft drizzle turned into a downpour. She thought, belatedly and
-with some alarm, of the roses on her hat. She turned and hurried back
-to Market Square and up the hill, walking with her head bent because of
-the rain, trying to shield her finery with one lifted hand. So it was
-that she did not see him until they almost collided under the tavern
-sign that hung on a long pole high over the sloping street. Then she
-caught her breath and stepped back, and looked up into the eyes of Tom
-Trask, the logger from Derryfield.
-
-He stood there, bareheaded in the rain, and he wore the same hunting
-shirt and moosehide breeches, but he was not smiling now, though his
-gray eyes lighted with recognition.
-
-“Playing games on the dock tonight, Miss Kitty?” he asked her, and in
-spite of his sober face, his voice had a teasing note in it.
-
-She smiled and shook the rain from her lashes. “How did you know my
-name was Kitty?” she asked him.
-
-“Heard ’em call you that times enough--last night, I mean, whilst I was
-looking on.” His eyes smiled now, but his mouth remained a thin line.
-He seemed to be waiting for her answer.
-
-“No,” she said. “We’re not often so silly, and besides, I doubt if the
-rain will stop. And even if it did--there are hardly enough of us left
-to play.”
-
-He nodded. “I seen two o’ your friends marching off last night,” he
-said. “All our crew was asleep on the raft when the bells begun to go,
-but when we got into town and heard the news, ’twas no surprise. I
-was over to Johnny Stark’s sawmill just before I started down river,
-and he said he figured Boston had stood about all they could o’ the
-British, and the British had stood about all they could o’ Boston. Said
-he expected to be taking his gun down any day. Well, if he’s got the
-word, he’s likely there, him and the rest o’ the boys, and I aim to
-join them, only--”
-
-Kitty could feel her hair turning dank and the raindrops thickening on
-her lashes. She thought of her sodden hat, and sighed inwardly, but she
-made no move to excuse herself and leave the stranger.
-
-“--only I left my musket at home in Derryfield, and the gunsmiths here
-ain’t doing business today. Has any o’ your menfolk got a spare gun,
-Miss Kitty?”
-
-She hesitated. He held out his lean hard hands with freckles on the
-backs of them. “I suppose I could use these on the varmints,” he
-muttered. “But powder and ball’s the quicker way.”
-
-“There is a gun in the barn loft that belonged to my father,” she said
-slowly.
-
-“You speak like your daddy’s dead,” he answered, not looking at her.
-
-“Yes. He drowned in the river just below here, not long after I was
-born.”
-
-“I don’t remember much o’ mine, either. Killed when we took Quebec in
-’59. Shooting shoulder to shoulder with the British then we was, and
-now we’re shooting at ’em.” He shrugged his lean shoulders. “Well, I’d
-sure like to borrow your daddy’s gun, if your mother don’t object none
-to the idea.”
-
-“My mother’s dead, too, and Granny would likely make a fuss, but I
-don’t think we’ll ask Granny.”
-
-Kitty had finally made up her mind. “Come on,” she said, flicking her
-fingers lightly against his sleeve.
-
-His fingers were not light when they gripped her arm. They were sure
-and steady. Together they walked up Fish Street and turned right to
-pass the Frog Pond and the new training green. He strode proudly along
-with his head up, but he did not talk to her. Instead he whistled a
-plaintive air she had never heard before.
-
-When they got to Gran’s neat clapboarded house, she guided him through
-the front gate and along the garden path, half screened by lilac bushes
-growing thick and tall.
-
-A small whitewashed barn stood at the rear of the property, but Granny
-kept no livestock any more, and the inside of it smelled clean and
-musty like an attic, with no scent of dung or hay. The loft had two
-tiny windows set high under the eaves, but no other light, and it took
-Kitty a few minutes before she could make out the old gun hanging on
-the wall between a moth-eaten lap robe and a long wooden fork for
-pitching hay.
-
-“There it is,” she murmured, pointing, breathless and a little proud.
-
-He strode forward and pulled down the short, thick-barreled gun. When
-he spoke she caught a note of dismay in his voice.
-
-“An old blunderbuss,” he murmured. “An old blunderbuss! Looks like the
-one Adam must ha’ carried when they driv’ him out o’ Eden.” He peered
-into the flaring muzzle. “Might shoot, at that. Don’t believe I’ll try
-it in here.”
-
-Groping around on a shelf, Kitty found an empty powder horn, which he
-took a little more gratefully.
-
-“There’ll be powder enough where I’m going,” he told her, “and I better
-be getting there.”
-
-The rain tapped steadily on the shingles overhead, but the tiny window
-that faced westward showed a streak of blue sky. Carrying the old
-blunderbuss carefully, he moved toward the ladder that led below.
-Uncertain what to do or say, Kitty stood and stared at him. He paused
-and turned toward her.
-
-“I’ll take good care o’ this,” he said, “and I’ll see you get it back
-when I don’t need it any more.” He took a step in her direction.
-Suddenly her throat began to hurt, and she felt as if she were going to
-cry. He took another step. “I’ll make sure of it,” he said. “When I get
-to camp and can set down for a spell, I’ll cut your name and the town
-where you live--right here on the butt.” He tapped the end of the thick
-gun. “And then, maybe somebody else will send it home if I don’t--come
-back this way.”
-
-He took her by the shoulders and kissed her quickly on the mouth.
-
-She gulped and felt the tears slip down her cheeks. Under his hands her
-shoulders were shaking.
-
-“But I aim to come back,” he said. He scrambled down the ladder and
-away. Like Dick, he had the courage to go and the feet to get him
-there, and she was left without so much as a window to wave him good-by
-from, and how could he put her name on the gun when he did not know her
-name?
-
-It came to her suddenly that she had to run after him and tell him her
-name was Catherine Greenleaf. If he didn’t know it, he’d never be able
-to send her father’s gun back to her, and she wouldn’t want a stranger
-to keep her father’s gun. Dashing the tears away, she stumbled down the
-ladder and ran through the lilacs where she met him slowly coming back.
-He looked down at her and smiled.
-
-“Come to my mind that a thing you do for luck, you must do three
-times,” he said. He bent and kissed her again. Then he turned and ran
-through the front gateway.
-
-“Stop, thief!” yelled Granny, tapping furiously on the parlor
-windowpane. “That’s my son’s blunderbuss! Call the watch! Call the
-constable! Call the sheriff! Stop, thief, stop! Come back, come back!”
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Five_
-
-THE GREAT IPSWICH FRIGHT
-
-
-“I can’t think whatever put you up to such devilment, Catherine,”
-sputtered Granny. “’Twas bad enough for you to spile your new hat,
-without giving your father’s gun away.”
-
-“I’ve told you over and over again that I didn’t give him the gun,”
-sighed Kitty. “I only loaned it to him. He promised to bring it back.
-He looked like a lad who’d keep his word.”
-
-Granny clucked to the raw-boned sorrel horse and tugged expertly at the
-reins as the animal plodded round a curve in the sandy road.
-
-“Tom, Tom, the piper’s son/He ran away with Father’s gun!” sang Sally
-Rose under her breath.
-
-“Hummp!” snorted Gran.
-
-Kitty looked across the plowed fields to where the Merrimack flowed
-behind a hedge of willows. They dipped their long green boughs in the
-flooding stream, and here and there the water gave back a flash of
-bright sun. How peaceful everything looked in the soft April afternoon.
-How hard it was to believe that the lads she knew might be facing the
-redcoats’ bayonets only a few miles off. But everyone did believe it.
-Everyone was frightened and apprehensive. Folk turned out everywhere to
-shade their eyes and watch the roads that led southward, Boston way.
-
-It was more than twenty-four hours since Tom Trask had made off with
-the old blunderbuss, but Granny was still scolding about it. She would
-have scolded more, probably, if there hadn’t been so many chores for
-all of them, getting supplies ready to send after the Minutemen. All
-day yesterday they had baked, and this morning she and Sally Rose had
-gone from door to door collecting old linen for bandages. Then Uncle
-Moses Chase brought the borrowed wagon and suggested that the three
-of them might help by driving into the country to see what they could
-procure from the cellars and smoke houses of the farmers round.
-
-“If you’d let it go to one o’ the Port lads--say Dick Moody, now--I
-could have understood,” Granny rambled on. “Why, I don’t know how many
-years that gun has been in our family! My grandmother told me it was
-brought from England in the days of the coming over. Her father got it
-in trade for an old horse down in Plymouth County.”
-
-Kitty gave a sudden giggle. “Tom said it looked old enough to belong to
-Adam,” she said. She pulled her bonnet off and felt the warm sunlight
-on her brown hair, felt a warmth inside her when she said his name.
-
-“Hoity-toity, so we call him ‘Tom’!” cried Granny.
-
-Sally Rose reached out and caught her grandmother’s ruffled taffeta
-sleeve. “Granny,” she said, “there’s a farmhouse down that cart track
-under the shagbark trees. Uncle Moses said to call at every place and
-not miss a single one.”
-
-Kitty gave her cousin a grateful glance as Granny turned the sorrel off
-the highway and into a rutted lane. Stone walls bordered the fields on
-each side of them, and little brooks of water flowed in the gutters,
-draining the wet black land. In one field a plow stood abandoned in
-mid-furrow, and half a dozen cows waited patiently at the bars, but
-nobody came to drive them off to pasture.
-
-“Can’t be anyone at home,” said Granny, “’Bijah Davis lives here, and
-he’d never treat his animals so.”
-
-As they drove into the yard of the weathered farmhouse, a young woman
-came to the door, a pale young woman with a baby in her arms and two
-toddlers pulling at the skirts of her blue calico dress. A half-grown
-yellow cat ran between her feet, almost upsetting her.
-
-“Land’s sakes, Nance,” cried Granny. “You’re looking poorly this
-spring. Is ’Bijah round somewhere?”
-
-The young woman shook her head. “’Bijah took his gun and put for
-Cambridge,” she answered. “I wrapped him up a clean shirt and a hunk o’
-corn’ beef. I don’t know when he’ll be home.”
-
-Granny tut-tutted. “Many gone from around here?” she wanted to know.
-
-“Pretty nigh all the men,” said the young wife sadly. “Like you say,
-Ma’am Greenleaf, I been poorly this spring, but I got both bake ovens
-going just like other folks, I can tell you. We’re cooking up victuals
-to send after the lads. Two oxcarts has gone already, and by tomorrow
-we can fill two more.”
-
-Granny nodded in agreement. “We’re doing the same at the Port,” she
-said. “Don’t suppose you got any foodstuffs you could spare us,
-something you don’t need for your own?” She pulled out a beaded purse
-and fingered it significantly.
-
-Nancy Davis put up a hand to smooth back the stray wisps of hair from
-her forehead. “Could be some eggs in the haymow where the hens steal
-nests sometimes,” she murmured. “Could be. I ain’t had the gumption to
-go look.”
-
-“We’ll go,” cried Sally Rose eagerly. “Come on, Kitty.”
-
-“You’d better take this basket,” said Gran, reaching under the wagon
-seat. “And don’t be gone long. It’s nigh on to sunset time. When we
-finish here, we’ll start home.” She turned again to the farm wife. “I
-suppose folks is pretty well stirred up around here.”
-
-The young woman nodded. “That we be. Nervous and on edge till we’d run
-a mile if we was to hear a pin drop. Fear’s about us on all sides,
-just the way I’ve heard my grandmother tell it was down to Salem in
-the witchcraft time. It’s because we don’t know what’s happening, I
-think--nothing since the first word. Sure, the British was driv’ back
-to Boston once, but maybe they’ve marched out again. Maybe our lads
-couldn’t stop ’em, and they’re headed this way. And how can I tell
-whether ’Bijah be still in the land o’ the living or no!” She began to
-cry.
-
-“Folks is all upset at the Port, too,” said Gran soothingly, getting
-out of the cart to go to Nancy.
-
-The girls scurried into the mossy-roofed rambling barn, climbed to the
-loft, and began searching through the hay.
-
-“Which are you the most worried about, Kit,” asked Sally Rose. “Dick,
-or--?” She sneezed violently and wiped her eyes and nose with a lace
-handkerchief. “My, this hay dust makes me think of the time when I was
-little and got to playing with Father’s snuffbox. Which one? Tell me,
-Kitty.”
-
-“I’m worried about all of them,” said Kitty slowly. “Even your wretched
-Gerry. I wish men would keep their guns for deer and wild ducks. I
-don’t see why they have to kill each other.”
-
-Sally Rose shrugged. “I know,” she said. “I don’t understand it either.
-But you have to realize, Kitty, some things about men we’ll never
-understand.” She pulled a large brown egg out of the hay and placed it
-carefully in the basket. “I wonder,” she said thoughtfully, “if the men
-on both sides were all shut up in gaol, just how the women would go to
-work to settle the matter.”
-
-“I don’t know,” said Kitty, adding two more eggs to their collection,
-“but I’m sure there’d be cups of tea for everybody.”
-
-“Tea doesn’t have much to do with this war, Father says,” went on Sally
-Rose quickly. “And Gerry says the same. They both say it’s to decide
-who will rule America--King and Parliament, or the men who live in this
-country.”
-
-“I should think King and Parliament would have enough to do at home,”
-answered Kitty. “What’s that? I thought I heard someone shouting.”
-
-Both girls sat up in the shadowy mow to listen.
-
-“Turn out! Turn out! For God’s sake!” thundered a hoarse voice from the
-highway.
-
-“Maybe he’s brought news of the lads,” cried Sally Rose, upsetting the
-basket in her haste to scramble down the ladder. Forgetting the eggs,
-Kitty followed her. They ran out of the barn and across the yard under
-the hickory trees. Granny and Nance, with the children straggling after
-them, had already started up the lane.
-
-A black-coated rider came spurring toward them from the direction of
-the Port, waving his cocked hat with one hand and whipping his horse
-with the other.
-
-“Turn out!” he shouted. “Turn out, or you will all be killed! The
-British have landed at Ipswich and have marched to Old Town Bridge!
-They are cutting and slashing all before them!”
-
-He paid no attention to the huddled group of women, but galloped past.
-
-“Turn out! Turn out!” he panted. “The British have landed at Ipswich!”
-His voice grew fainter as he rounded the end of a low hill and swept
-out of sight.
-
-They stood looking at one another. “If you ask me, his wits are
-addled,” said Gran stoutly. “He had a mad look in his eyes. I’d want
-some further word--”
-
-Then a chaise hurtled down the road, swaying from side to side, driven
-by a lean woman with gray hair streaming about her shoulders and a
-swansdown hat hanging on one ear. “The British!” she choked as the
-chaise went rocking by.
-
-After her came a young couple on horseback, and then three farm wagons
-loaded with family groups and household goods. A wooden churn fell off
-and rolled into the brimming gutter, but they did not stop to retrieve
-it; they drove furiously on.
-
-Nance stood there, as silent and rooted to earth as one of her own
-hickory trees. Kitty and Sally Rose held hands tightly and looked at
-each other, uncertain whether to laugh or be afraid, waiting to see
-what would happen next.
-
-Then it seemed as if half the Port went streaming by. Gran stood at the
-side of the road and waved her beaded purse at the mad rout of chaises
-and wagons, but nobody would stop for her. Finally a farmer hastened
-by on foot, leading a plow horse that had gone lame. She stepped up
-smartly and caught him by the front of his tow-colored smock. “Young
-man, what is the meaning of this?” she demanded.
-
-“God Almighty, are ye deaf, Mother?” he growled, spitting tobacco juice
-into the dust of the road, just missing her dainty kid slipper. “The
-British ha’ come ashore. Come ashore at Ipswich, and hacked their way
-past Old Town Bridge. I rode over twenty dead bodies as I come from
-there. They’ll be at the Port now, heading this way.”
-
-For the first time Kitty began to feel that this was not some
-ridiculous mistake. Her throat grew tight, and her nerves began to
-tingle with fear.
-
-“Where is everyone going?” she cried.
-
-The farmer turned to answer her. “They’re all trying to get across
-the river into Hampshire,” he said. “Some’s for the woods and swamps
-nearby. Better get along yourselves. You’ll be the safer, the further
-you can go.”
-
-He urged his old horse forward again.
-
-Gran turned back from the highroad as another half dozen wagons rattled
-past. “He looked like an honest lad, and he saw it with his own eyes,
-Nancy,” she admitted reluctantly. “You bundle up the children and
-whatever food you’ve got on hand, and come along in our wagon. I’m
-going to drive as hard as I can for Haverhill Ferry. I trust we’ll get
-across.”
-
-Nance, bewildered and numb with terror, tried to follow out Granny’s
-instructions. Back in the kitchen she fumbled through the bin, brought
-out a sack of potatoes, and stood there helplessly, holding it. Gran
-reached past her. “Take the apples, instead,” she advised. “They’ll
-taste better if we have to eat them raw.”
-
-Finally the young wife got herself, the two children, and the
-shawl-wrapped infant into the wagon. She sat on the seat with Granny,
-and Kitty and Sally Rose crouched on a sack of turnips a farmer had
-given them early in the afternoon. How long ago that seemed! In the
-gathering twilight they drove swiftly along the winding river road.
-
-The lower Merrimack Valley above the Port was not sparsely settled
-country in those spring days of 1775. There were farmhouses and parish
-churches and crossroads villages scattered all about it, and few
-dwellers there who could not see their neighbor’s chimney smoke or
-the lights of his kitchen when they looked out at night. But now the
-peaceful district was overrun with strangers and refugees streaming
-through.
-
-Kitty and Sally Rose huddled together on the turnip sack for warmth,
-looking back down the road every now and then, to see if the British
-were in sight, if the glare of burning towns lighted the sky. But all
-they could see were the frightened folk of Essex County hurrying for
-the swamps and the forests, for the low hills of New Hampshire Colony
-across the wide dark stream.
-
-Women, and a few old or feeble men, were toiling across the farmyards
-here and there, carrying favorite gowns, or chests of silver, or
-pewter teapots to conceal them in wells and hollow trees. And from
-almost every doorstep strong arms laboriously hoisted old folk and
-invalids into carts to haul them away.
-
-“What do you think’ll come of it, Kit?” asked Sally Rose in a low
-worried voice. “Do you think Gran will take us over the river to
-Haverhill? I don’t want to go to Haverhill. It’s a sleepy country town,
-and it’ll be worse than the Port, with all the lads away. I’d almost
-rather get caught by the British, I think.”
-
-“But they’re cutting and slashing all before them,” Kitty reminded her
-grimly. “That farmer said he rode over twenty dead bodies on the way.”
-
-“Well, I do not think they would cut and slash me,” said Sally Rose,
-smiling confidently in the dark. “Oh, Kit, look there!”
-
-They were passing a tiny cottage half hidden by leafy apple trees. An
-armchair had been placed firmly on a scrap of lawn, and in the chair
-sat a man with a lantern beside him and a musket across his knees. He
-was enormous, and almost perfectly round. “Let the British come!” he
-shouted, and waved his musket. “I be too fat to budge for ’em! I’ll
-stay here and shoot the bloody devils down!”
-
-A little way farther on they came across a group of women bending over
-another woman who lay on the ground in the curve of a stone wall.
-Granny hesitated, and then drew rein. “Is the poor critter sick?” she
-called to them. “Can I help? Perhaps we could make a place for her.”
-
-A tall woman in a gray shawl straightened up. “No, thank’ee, Ma’am,”
-she called crisply. “It’s only Aunt Hannah. She wheezes so with the
-asmaticks, her noise would give us away to the British. We’re going to
-cover her over with leaves and let her rest, all snug and out of sight,
-here by the wall.”
-
-At that Nancy Davis began to laugh. She laughed and laughed, and then
-she began to cry. Gran slapped her face hard and drove on. “None o’
-that foolishness, Nance,” she said severely. “Mind your children.
-’Bijah would expect you to. Kitty and Sally Rose”--she lifted her
-voice--“is all well with you back there?”
-
-“Let’s not go any farther, Gran,” pleaded Sally Rose. “There are lights
-at the inn we just passed by. If the folks haven’t run away, maybe
-they’ll have beds for us. Maybe if we hide in bed, the British will
-ride on and never know we’re there. I don’t want to go to Haverhill,
-Gran.”
-
-“When I say you’ll go to Haverhill, to Haverhill you’ll go,” said Gran,
-and drove on into the night. “I hope I can make the ferry in time.”
-
-Kitty sensed the note of anxiety in Gran’s voice, and that frightened
-her more than anything that had gone before it. Not when the smallpox
-struck and folk lay dying in every house in town, not when a great
-tree crashed through the roof in the midst of an autumn storm, had she
-known Gran to feel afraid. She looked over her shoulder again, and then
-around her at the dark fields, the thickets here and there along the
-road. Frightened women had come this way in other times, she knew, when
-Indians with tomahawks lurked behind every tree. She had heard, too, of
-the dreadful times at Salem that Nancy spoke about, when the devil had
-walked abroad in Essex County, or folk thought that he had, though they
-never saw the devil. The most terrible fear, she thought, is the fear
-of an unseen thing. A British Army marching toward them with drums and
-banners and bayonets would not be so terrible as the shadows that might
-hold any nameless menace, the shadows drawing closer in....
-
-She turned to Sally Rose, but Sally Rose was humming a little tune.
-There was boredom rather than terror in her hazel eyes. Sally Rose had
-found one redcoat to be a gallant and handsome lover, so she believed
-they would all be that. But Kitty had heard tales of their cruelty to
-Boston folk. She remembered that blood had been shed at Concord Fight
-and on Lexington Green. She crouched on the turnip sack and shivered
-with cold fear.
-
-Somehow the road seemed to be less crowded now. No one had passed them
-for half an hour. Then they met a little group of horsemen slowly
-riding back. Granny hailed them.
-
-“Are you headed for Newburyport? Is the battle over? Where are the
-British?” she wanted to know.
-
-The leader took off his cocked hat, and Kitty noticed that he had a
-bald head and very black eyes. “We begin to think the British are in
-Boston and have been there all along, that they never stirred from
-there. We have found no trace of them, and we scoured the countryside.
-The whole commotion is either a sorry jest or a coward’s error, it
-seems. At least, we have recovered sufficient courage to ride back
-toward Ipswich and see.”
-
-“I suspected as much,” said Gran, tightening her mouth.
-
-“Ho hum!” said Sally Rose.
-
-The men rode off, and Gran pulled the wagon to one side of the road.
-They were facing a small common with a white steepled church at the
-edge of it. Houses clustered round about, darkened and deserted, their
-doors hanging open, their inhabitants fled away. Overhead the elm
-boughs tossed eerily in the light of the cold moon.
-
-“Get out, girls, and stretch your legs,” Gran ordered. “Then I’m going
-to turn around and drive back to my own house at the Port. You can come
-with me, Nance, if you’re afraid to bide at home.”
-
-“I’m not afraid any more,” said Nance wanly. “Not if the British
-are still in Boston. Do you think they are still in Boston, Ma’am
-Greenleaf?”
-
-“I feel sure of it,” declared Gran firmly. “Well, the Bible says the
-young men shall dream dreams. That’s what that lad who said he rode
-over twenty dead bodies must ha’ done. Let’s all go over to the church
-steps and give thanks to God. Dream, joke, or error, I don’t care which
-it was. It’s over now, and high time we went home.”
-
-The two children were asleep on the seat of the wagon, but Nance
-carried the shawl-wrapped baby and held it in her arms as they knelt on
-the church steps of gray old stone. Gran lifted up voluble thanks to
-the Almighty, and Kitty’s attention wandered. She watched a husky youth
-who had been hiding in the crotch of a pear tree climb sheepishly down
-and sidle off, gnawing a piece of salt pork. He had apparently taken
-provisions to his refuge, in case the British kept him treed for a long
-time. The sight of the pork made her hungry, and Nance must have seen
-it, too, and thought of food, but not for herself. The minute Gran rose
-from her knees, she asked if they could wait while she suckled the baby.
-
-“Why of course,” said Gran heartily. “My, there’s not been one peep
-out of the little thing. I trust it hasn’t got smothered in all this
-uproar.”
-
-Nancy sat down on the step, carefully pulled the shawls away, and bent
-her head while the others stood looking on.
-
-Suddenly she screamed. They peered closer.
-
-“God save our souls alive!” gasped Granny.
-
-Sally Rose giggled. Kitty swallowed and made no sound at all.
-
-In her haste Nance had wrapped up the wrong creature, and now it was
-the half-grown yellow cat that slept peacefully in the crook of her
-arm.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Six_
-
-FUN WHILE IT LASTED
-
-
-The young man sat on the steps of the tavern by Ipswich Green and
-stared about him; at the old brown roofs with yellow moss growing on
-their seaward sides, at the little rocky river that flowed like liquid
-amber under its stone bridge, at the steepled church on the rocky hill.
-Shadows lay long in the deserted streets of Ipswich, and far to the
-west the sun was going down.
-
-The young man wore a rough woolen shirt and homespun breeches. He had a
-cleft chin, deep blue eyes, and black curly hair. He looked uncommonly
-pleased about something.
-
-The landlord came to the open doorway behind him and stood there,
-peering into the dusk. He was a short plump man with a lame leg and a
-worried expression.
-
-“Not a sign o’ the British yet, be there, lad?” he asked anxiously.
-
-The young man shrugged his shoulders. “Could be they’ve turned aside
-and gone another way,” he said in a lilting tone. “Well, I guess I’ll
-be taking the road myself, while there’s a bit o’ the daylight left.
-How far did you tell me it was to Newburyport, sir?”
-
-The landlord shifted his feet uneasily. “It’s a piece of a journey yet,
-and the roads will doubtless be clogged with fleeing folk, if one’s
-to judge by the rout that streamed out of here; likewise the half o’
-Beverly tagging through. Why not stay the night? I’ll give ye free
-lodging. It’ll mean there’s one able-bodied man in town, besides a
-handful of petticoat folk.”
-
-Again the young man shrugged his shoulders. “Well enough, if ’twill
-please you--and supper be included in the offer.” He got to his feet
-and stood there smiling.
-
-“Come in, lad, come in,” cried the landlord in relieved tones. “Come,
-and I’ll give ye supper, such as ’tis. Cook’s run off to the hills like
-all the rest, but my daughter Nanny’s here, and Nanny can do. Come and
-bring your box, if ye will. Where’d ye say ye be from? Have ye traveled
-far?”
-
-The young man stooped and lifted a small leather chest bound with iron.
-Deep in the lid was burned the name “G. Malory.” It was a peculiarity
-of his that although he often played other men’s parts and wore other
-men’s clothing, he would never abandon his own name.
-
-“Barnstaple,” he said. “Gerry Malory of Barnstaple, shoemaker.”
-
-“Barnstable? Down Cape Cod, ain’t it? A fair ways from here.”
-
-“Yes, Barnstaple’s a fair ways off,” said the young man.
-
-Together they stepped into the dark smoky taproom. It was deserted
-except for a little maid, scarce more than a child, who stood in the
-doorway of the kitchen.
-
-The landlord went to the hearth and stirred the dwindling fire. “What’s
-in the pot, Nanny?” he asked.
-
-“Dandelions,” said Nanny pertly. “Dandelion greens and a ham bone. But
-the ham bone don’t smell like it should, Father.”
-
-“Warm up the chowder then,” he ordered, and turned to his guest. “Are
-ye handy with firearms, Gerry?”
-
-“I’ve a pistol in my chest here, among my shoemaker’s tools. Guess I
-know what to do with it.”
-
-“No, no,” cried the landlord impatiently. “I got no faith in such pop
-guns. I mean a man-sized weapon. Son Rob took my musket to Cambridge,
-but there’s a fowling piece hung up on the kitchen wall. I don’t see as
-well to aim as I did once. Who was it spread the word about town? Did
-ye happen to hear?”
-
-The shoemaker shook his head. “I couldn’t say, sir. As I told you
-before, I was just passing through here on my way to Newburyport to see
-a girl, when all at once a great stir began, and folks went rushing to
-the green. Somebody shouted that the British had landed at Ipswich Bar
-and were cutting and slashing all before them. Next thing I knew, the
-wagons started rolling out of town, and everyone took to the highway,
-afoot and on horseback. I watched them for awhile, and then came here
-to catch my breath and maybe have a bite of supper.”
-
-Again the landlord went to the door and peered nervously into the
-thickening night. “Not a light in town,” he said. “Folk that hasn’t
-fled away be keeping their houses dark, ’twould seem. Do ye mind if I
-don’t light up, lad? Can ye see by the glow o’ the fire?”
-
-“’Tis no trick to find a mouth the size of mine,” said the young man
-gallantly. Then as Nanny put a steaming bowl on the table in front of
-him, his nostrils quivered. “Did the ham smell stronger than this, my
-lady?” he asked her.
-
-“Yes,” said Nanny flatly, stepping back into the kitchen.
-
-He sat down on a bench, picked up a ladle, and tasted the chowder
-gingerly.
-
-“None for me, Nanny,” called her father. “I be that worried about the
-British, I wouldn’t relish victuals none.”
-
-“Right, sir,” said Gerry, putting down the ladle. “It comes to me that
-I, too, am worried about the British. Still, a piece of bread now--it
-need not have butter--I could eat it dry.”
-
-“Slice up a loaf of bread, Nanny,” called the landlord.
-
-Nanny’s thin piping voice came back from the kitchen. “The bread’s
-moldy. All that wasn’t, we sent to Cambridge.”
-
-Gerry Malory sighed resignedly. “Well, perhaps a glass of milk
-then--unless all the cows have fled away. Nothing stronger. I must keep
-a clear head on me.”
-
-The landlord himself brought a pitcher of milk and poured two glasses
-full.
-
-“Be ye just up from the Cape, Gerry? And did ye come by Cambridge?
-We’ve had no news from there since the word o’ Concord Fight come
-through.”
-
-The young man shook his head. “I haven’t been near Cambridge, and it’s
-a long time since I went Barnstaple way.”
-
-“Where ye been, then?”
-
-“Oh--round Charlestown most of the time, I guess. You know Job
-Townsend’s tavern there?”
-
-“Job Townsend? Keeps the Bay and Beagle, don’t he? In Crooked Lane near
-Harvard Street. I knowed him when he was your age. Too bad. He lost his
-wife young. Got a right pretty daughter, I’ve heard. Sally Rose, or
-something like.”
-
-“Yes, he’s got a pretty daughter,” said Gerry Malory, draining his
-glass. “I been around the Bay and Beagle some.”
-
-“I don’t get down that way much myself,” said the landlord
-thoughtfully. “What’s the news thereabout? Do they think the British’ll
-fight? And if they do....”
-
-The young man shook his head solemnly. “You got no chance against the
-British,” he said.
-
-The landlord looked up sharply. “Ye say ‘you’ and not ‘we,’” he
-protested. “Does that mean Barnstable don’t intend to join against
-the cruel laws o’ the King? That they be not with the rest o’
-Massachusetts? The Hampshire towns be with us, and I hear that so be
-the west and south, New York and Virginia, too.”
-
-“Oh no, no, I do not mean that at all,” cried the young shoemaker.
-“’Twas a slip of the tongue. Of course Barnstable--on Cape Cod--will
-join cause with you. I only mean that the outlook is dark, sir, dark,
-for those who would fan the flames of rebellion in America.”
-
-He put down his empty glass and leaned forward, his hands clenched
-before him on the table. “How can _we_ defend a thousand miles of
-seacoast with only a few scattered towns, against a great battle fleet
-of three hundred ships and armed men? We can scarce put thirty thousand
-soldiers in the field. England has one hundred and fifty thousand, and
-can summon more. We lack guns, ammunition, money, and trade. More than
-that, we lack the tradition of love of country, a tradition that will
-make the meanest man fight and die bravely. For a thousand years men
-have been giving their lives for England. What man has ever given his
-life for America before?”
-
-“Sounds like you been listening to some Tory make speeches, lad.
-Happens there was a few gave their lives at Concord and Lexington the
-day before yesterday,” retorted the landlord. “There’s a first time
-for everything, Gerry.” His voice was milder than the milk in his
-half-empty glass, but his eyes held a sharp look, a look of question.
-Suddenly his face went white.
-
-“Lord in heaven, I’ll fetch the gun for ye! Here they come!” he cried,
-dashing from the room, tripping over a footstool unseen in the light of
-the fire.
-
-Gerry Malory lifted his head. He heard a shouting in the road, the
-creak of wagons rumbling along. He, too, got up, went to the door, and
-stared out into the soft April night. The moon had not yet risen, but
-as he turned to look to the north he could see swaying lights and
-shadowy figures, moving painfully slow, but drawing closer. He waited,
-silent, to see what would emerge out of the dark.
-
-As the cavalcade became more sharply visible, he saw that it consisted
-of three oxcarts piled with boxes, kegs, and baskets, escorted by some
-half dozen men. The oxen lumbered along wearily, and the men seemed
-weary, too, as they plodded at the side. They were not young men, but
-grayish and old and frail, except for a thin-faced lad with tow-colored
-hair and an ancient gun gripped casually in his right hand. The wagons
-drew to a halt in front of the tavern, one man stayed with the oxen,
-and the others came forward eagerly, seeking refreshment.
-
-Gerry stepped back into the taproom and turned to face the landlord who
-rushed out of the kitchen with a badly rusted gun held in front of him.
-“No British,” he said reassuringly. “Just some teamsters who want to
-wet their whistles, I expect.” He retired to the shadows near the great
-chimney, found a stool there, and sat down.
-
-The landlord bustled forward to welcome the visitors. In a few moments
-they were seated at the table, and Nanny was helping her father to set
-out food and drink, greens, ham bone, chowder, and all.
-
-“Not a fit man amongst us,” sighed the oldster with a face like a
-russet apple and a scar across his forehead. “I fought in too many wars
-already. But once we get these stores to Cambridge, likely I’ll stay
-there and enlist for one more.”
-
-“Don’t know how we’d ha’ got this far, if this Hampshire lad hadn’t
-o’ertaken us,” said another. He turned to the thin-faced youth who was
-eating chowder, the old blunderbuss leaning against the table close to
-his elbow. “We was sure glad to see you, Tom Trask, when our cart broke
-down the other side of Rowley last night. A proper wheelwright you
-turned out to be.”
-
-Tom Trask did not look up from his chowder. “Be a wheelwright when I
-have to,” he muttered, “or most any other sort of thing.”
-
-“Tell me, lads,” questioned the landlord eagerly, “did ye see aught of
-the British that’s supposed to be marching on us, cutting and slashing
-all before?”
-
-“We heard the rumor, o’ course,” went on the russet-cheeked man, “and
-saw the rout go past. Didn’t trouble us none. We kept on our way.
-Word’s gone about now, that there be doubts the British ever was nearer
-than Boston. Truth to tell, sir, I surmise we been made fools of.”
-
-The landlord made a clucking sound with his thin lips. Tom Trask was
-staring hard at the small iron-bound leather box on the table in front
-of him.
-
-“Who’s that there belong to?” he asked suddenly.
-
-“That--oh, that belongs to Gerry Malory over in the corner. Gerry’s a
-shoemaker from Barnstable--on his way to Newburyport to see a girl.”
-The landlord’s voice was gay and jovial in his relief, now that he
-had no further cause to fear the British. After all, he had not fled
-away at the false rumor. He had not been made a fool of. He strutted a
-little as he walked about the room, filling the glasses, replenishing
-the fire. When his shame-faced neighbors came straggling back, he’d be
-able to indulge himself in a boast or two. Then suddenly he pricked up
-his ears. The tow-headed lad from New Hampshire Colony was speaking. He
-held the leather chest in his hands, turning it about.
-
-“‘G. Malory,’ it says here. And Landlord says G.’s for Gerry. Gerry
-Malory--going to Newburyport to see a girl.” He sounded thoughtful.
-
-The landlord noticed that the young shoemaker from Barnstable had edged
-his stool further back into the shadows. He said no word.
-
-“Seems to me,” went on Tom Trask, “I might know what girl he’s going to
-see. A peacock-proud girl named Sally Rose, I wouldn’t wonder. Seems to
-me I heard o’ Gerry Malory.”
-
-His voice deepened, and there was a sharp edge to it that caught the
-attention of everyone in the room and made them listen.
-
-“That’s her!” cried the landlord excitedly. “Sally Rose! Job Townsend’s
-daughter! He said he hung around the Bay and Beagle some!”
-
-Still the young man in the shadows did not speak.
-
-“The Gerry Malory I heard of,” went on Tom Trask, “was said to be a
-captain in the Twenty-third. That’d mean he’s a British officer.” He
-waited accusingly.
-
-The landlord slapped his thigh. “Well, pickle my brains in rum!” he
-cried. “I think ye be right, lad. He was talking like a Britisher just
-before ye got here. Saying times was dark for us, and no man would give
-his life for America. Out o’ that corner, sir, and answer the charge!
-Be ye a lobsterback come in disguise among us?”
-
-Then indeed Gerry Malory stepped forward. “You’ve mistaken yourselves,”
-he said easily. “There may be a man with the same name as mine in the
-ranks of the British. I doubt that I be the first Gerald Malory since
-the world was made. I doubt if I be the last. I be a shoemaker of
-Barnstable, loyal as any man here.”
-
-“Loyal to what?” demanded Tom Trask. Then he bent down, pulled off one
-crude cowhide boot, and held it out. “Here. I got a hole clear through
-my sole leather tramping these rocky roads of Essex County. If you be a
-shoemaker, prove it! Cobble my boot!”
-
-Gerry Malory took the boot in his hands and examined it. Then he
-shook his head. “’Tis scarce worth fixing, my good man,” he said
-condescendingly. “Get yourself a new pair when you arrive in
-Cambridge. That is the best advice I can give you.”
-
-“You lie,” said Tom Trask steadily. “I can fix it myself, if you’re
-unable. All I ask you to do is prove you be a shoemaker.”
-
-The teamsters, the landlord, even Nanny, were staring in silence at the
-two young men. Gerry Malory studied the boot in his hand. He frowned.
-“Well enough,” he said. He opened the small chest and fumbled inside
-it, took out a wooden last, hammer, and awl, a packet of pegs and
-nails. “Ah, this should do it,” he murmured judiciously. He selected
-a strip of leather and tried to fit it over the ragged hole Tom had
-pointed out.
-
-All eyes were upon him. No lips made any comment. He gripped the boot
-with one hand under the instep. He fitted the leather over the hole
-with the other hand. Then he stood there, conscious suddenly that he
-had no third hand to set the nails in place, no fourth hand to wield
-the hammer. He put the boot down and started all over again.
-
-But his face was growing hot and his fingers even more clumsy. Suddenly
-he ceased his efforts. “I am sorry,” he said. “I forgot my most needful
-tool. You must wait until you get to Cambridge, unless you can find
-another cobbler.”
-
-Tom Trask stood up. He held the old gun lightly in his hand. “Your most
-needful tool is there,” he said, “but you don’t know enough to know it.
-Put the boot on the last, you should have. That would ha’ held it firm,
-and left your hands free to get on with your cobbling. Right enough,
-we’ll go to Cambridge, and we’ll take you along as our prisoner,
-Captain Malory o’ the Twenty-third. All the world can see you’re no
-shoemaker. Johnny Stark will know what to do with you. Landlord, have
-you a length of rope, or better, a few links of chain, about the place?
-For safety, we’ll tie him up now.”
-
-Gerry Malory, of Barnstaple in English Devon, bit his lip and stared
-around him somewhat wildly. That cursed Yankee with the gun that looked
-as if it came out of Noah’s ark stood between him and the open doorway.
-He doubted if it would shoot, but even if it didn’t, its owner looked
-like no easy man to handle. And the Yankee had his friends about him.
-
-While he hesitated, two old men ambled forward and bound his wrists
-together with a heavy length of clanking chain. Then they stepped back,
-and the whole company continued to stare at him.
-
-“Captain,” said Tom Trask thoughtfully, “I be not so sure as I was
-that you come this way to see a girl. Likely you did, but likely, too,
-you might ha’ spread the false report that the British was upon us. It
-might ha’ been a word o’ yours that sent us flying over hills far and
-wide as if the devil was after. A fool’s prank, maybe--maybe a smart
-trick to spread confusion amongst us.”
-
-Suddenly Gerry Malory remembered the scenes of the afternoon: lean
-spinsters rocking along like giraffes in the animal garden on Tower
-Hill, fat men waddling off, their faces red and their eyes popping with
-panic. He laughed aloud and looked down at his hands bound stiffly in
-front of him.
-
-“In either case, it was fun while it lasted,” he said.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Seven_
-
-OFF TO THE WARS IN BOSTON
-
-
-“Cousin, I see no future for us in this place,” said Sally Rose bleakly.
-
-She was sitting in the soft grass on the hill behind the Frog Pond,
-looking down the dusty street that led through the Port, straight to
-the wharves and warehouses along the river.
-
-Kitty pulled herself up on her elbow and let her glance follow her
-cousin’s. There appeared to be as many white sails in the channel as
-usual, the same blue spring haze on the far shore, and the familiar
-curve of sky overhead. But the town below them, commonly bustling with
-life on a warm May afternoon, looked strangely deserted and still. A
-brown dog slept in the middle of High Street, and two old men hobbled
-past the Wolfe Tavern in the direction of Market Square. A farm cart
-ground its slow way towards Old Newbury, and a group of children ran
-hither and thither across the training green with laughter and shrill
-cries.
-
-Kitty pulled a golden dandelion blossom from the grass and began to
-tear it apart in her fingers. “I think I see what you mean, Sally
-Rose,” she said. “It is dull here with no one to talk to but grown
-folk--and of course, the other girls. I never realized how many girls
-there are in town. There never seemed to be so many before. I never
-thought I bothered myself much about the lads, but what a difference it
-makes--now they are all gone away.”
-
-“Gone, and not likely to return very soon, from what I hear,” said
-Sally Rose thoughtfully. “A few have come home, but mostly the older
-men with families, or the fainthearted ones. Last night I heard Uncle
-Moses telling Granny they plan to stay where they are and form a mighty
-army that will circle round like a wall of iron to keep the British
-penned in Boston.”
-
-“Then there’s no knowing when they’ll be home,” answered Kitty. It made
-her uneasy to admit to herself, as she had been forced to do, that
-all her eagerness and anxiety were not for her long-time friend, Dick
-Moody, but for that other one, the thin lad from New Hampshire who had
-taken her father’s blunderbuss away.
-
-“No knowing,” agreed Sally Rose. “Three weeks it’s been since Concord
-Fight, maybe more. More than a month since I’ve seen Gerry. I thought
-he might write to me, but he never has. Some of the Tory girls in
-Boston are very fair,” and she sighed. “I thought I might find someone
-to take his place, but I should have known I never could--here in this
-dull, stupid, country town.”
-
-“You’re better off not seeing him, since he’s British,” said Kitty
-sharply. “I’m sure, most times, you’d find better lads than him,
-walking down Queen Street any day. But just now--well, you know where
-they’ve all gone. They’ve gone to fight for the rights of our colony,
-and you ought to be proud of them, Sally Rose.”
-
-“Ummmm,” said Sally Rose, chewing a dandelion stem and then making up
-a face when its bitter white milk puckered her mouth. “Of course I’m
-proud of them. How old does one have to be before they’re an old maid,
-Kitty? It seems like I might be approaching the time.”
-
-“Oh no,” cried Kitty. “We’re only sixteen. No one would think that of
-us--not for at least two years more!”
-
-Sally Rose stood up and tossed her bright hair in the sun. “Two years
-isn’t long,” she said. “Well, you can sit here in the Port and wither
-if you want to, but I’ve got other fish in the pan.”
-
-She started walking quickly in the direction of Granny Greenleaf’s
-weathered house.
-
-Kitty watched her with apparent unconcern for as long as she could.
-Then she jumped to her feet and hurried after.
-
-“Where are you going?” she panted.
-
-Sally Rose smiled at her. “Why,” she said, “I think I’ll go back to my
-father’s house in Charlestown. If there’s a war in Boston, we’ll be in
-the midst of everything there. Why don’t you come along, Kit? Tom Trask
-may not be back this way, you know.”
-
-Kitty felt her face turning hot and red, but she chose to ignore the
-last part of her cousin’s remark. “You can’t go to Charlestown,” she
-said. “Granny won’t let you go where there’s likely to be fighting. You
-know that as well as I.”
-
-They had turned in at the front gate now, and were walking under
-the budded lilac bushes, Sally Rose in the lead, Kitty following
-breathless, a few steps behind.
-
-“A fig for Granny!” cried Sally Rose. “I love her, of course, but she’s
-a timid old lady, fit only to huddle in the chimney corner. She doesn’t
-know what it’s like to be bold and daring--the way a girl has to be
-these days. Of course she won’t let me go, and so I shan’t ask her.
-She drove out to see Nancy Davis this afternoon. When she gets back at
-suppertime, I won’t be here. I’ll be halfway to Rowley--or further on.”
-
-She opened the unlocked kitchen door and ran lightly up the back stairs
-to their chamber.
-
-Kitty followed, a little more slowly. She sat down on the edge of the
-high four-poster and dangled her feet over the side; watched while
-Sally Rose gathered ribbons, laces, and a few toilet articles and tied
-them up in a shawl.
-
-“It’s a long walk to Charlestown,” she said tartly.
-
-“Not so far for a horse,” answered Sally Rose.
-
-“You have a horse then?”
-
-“I know where to borrow one. I know where I can borrow two. Uncle Moses
-Chase keeps half a dozen in his barn on the Old Newbury road, and he’s
-gone with Granny, so he won’t know if we take them. He won’t care, when
-he finds out. Why don’t you come with me, Kitty? We’ll have a gay time
-in Charlestown.”
-
-Kitty shook her head, but without much conviction. “I couldn’t go
-behind Granny’s back,” she said.
-
-Sally Rose smiled sweetly. “I’m sorry you feel so, Cousin. Perhaps I do
-wrong to make a jest of everything, but that is my way. Have you never
-thought, when you hear all these preparations for war, that there is
-work for us as well as for the lads? Who’s to cook and wash and sew for
-them, and bind up their wounds when the fighting is over? I’m going
-where I can be of use to my country. If you’re afraid to come with
-me--well, you can stay here and sleep in the sun by the Frog Pond every
-afternoon. You’ll surely be safe enough--unless a horsefly bites you,
-or the dry rot settles in.”
-
-She took a quill pen and inkpot from the mantelpiece, sat down at the
-dressing table, and began to write.
-
-Kitty jumped from the bed and took a few turns up and down the room.
-
-“Do you really think we ought to go, Sally Rose?” she asked. “Do you
-think--we might be needed there?”
-
-“I certainly do think so,” said Sally Rose. “Don’t bother to pack any
-clothes, Kit. At home in Charlestown I have more than enough for two.”
-
-Under Sally Rose’s urging, Kitty opened a top drawer in the old
-mahogany chest and began slowly to sort out the few possessions she
-wanted to take with her, if she did go; an ivory comb, a pleated linen
-fichu, her mother’s cameo brooch. Her fingers flew faster every minute,
-as her heart warmed to the plan.
-
-Her throat grew tight, and she felt tears of eagerness and excitement
-sting her eyelids. She was going to serve her country, like Tom and
-Johnny and Dick, and all the Newburyport lads, all the lads of the Bay
-Colony, and maybe other colonies, too. She was going to take part in a
-serious, and a mighty, and a very grown-up thing. Wars were history,
-and she was going to help make history. It had been done before by
-other girls who were just as young. She was glad, she thought, that she
-was to have a chance to do it in her time. Her heart stirred just as it
-did in church when one or another of the old warlike hymn tunes rose on
-the air.
-
-“You’d better take a cloak, Kit, for it’ll grow cold after sundown, and
-we may ride late,” advised Sally Rose, pulling her own fleecy shawl
-from the carved old press. “Come, let’s be off to the wars in Boston!”
-
-On her way to follow Sally Rose’s bidding, Kitty caught sight of her
-cousin’s note as it lay open on the dressing table.
-
-_Dear Granny_, the note began, in dainty, pointed script, _Forgive me
-for leaving you so suddenly, and practically forcing poor Kitty to
-go along. But I dare not travel by myself, and I find that a sudden
-yearning to see my father takes me...._
-
-Kitty stood still for a moment and almost gave up all idea of this
-desperate journey.
-
-“We’ll have a gay time in Charlestown.” “I want to serve my country.”
-“A sudden yearning to see my father takes me.”
-
-Sally Rose could give many reasons for what she wanted to do. And she
-would always give the ones most likely to get her what she wanted. And
-what was her true reason? No one knew except Sally Rose.
-
-Nevertheless, Kitty found she did not turn back, but folded her cloak
-over her arm and hastened downstairs after her cousin. After all, what
-was her own reason for wanting to go to Charlestown? She did want to
-serve her country, but she was quick enough to see that she could serve
-it quite as well at home, if she had chosen so. But she had not so
-chosen. Was not she, Kitty, slyer, more secret and stubborn than Sally
-Rose in getting her own way?
-
- * * * * *
-
-It was black dark when they rode into Ipswich, very few lights in the
-town, and very few people still awake. The moon was hidden away behind
-the clouds somewhere, and a light mist had begun to fall.
-
-“I hoped we could get as far as Beverly,” said Sally Rose, “but we’ve
-come only half the way. Uncle Moses said he had plenty of horses in his
-barn, but he didn’t say they were plow horses. Well, there’s a light
-in the tavern. I’ve stopped there before, and I know the landlord’s
-daughter. A pert, homely little wench, but I’m sure she’ll find us a
-bed.”
-
-“I hope so,” said Kitty dubiously, climbing down from her horse and
-following her cousin up the wide stone steps and through the low front
-door.
-
-The taproom smelled of cider and fish and the smoky wood fire burning
-on it blackened hearth. It was dimly lit and empty, except for three
-old men who sat at a table with glasses in front of them, and a
-sharp-faced, sallow girl polishing other glasses behind a narrow bar.
-
-When Sally Rose walked across the uneven floor, her head up, her eyes
-shining in the candlelight, her hips swaying ever so slightly, the
-heads of the old men turned toward her as sunflowers turn to follow
-the golden light of day. Kitty walked demurely behind her, but nobody
-noticed Kitty.
-
-“Nanny,” cried Sally Rose, putting out her hand to the girl eagerly,
-as if there was no one in the world she would be gladder to see than
-Ipswich Nan. “Nanny, we’re o’ertaken with darkness, and we need a bed
-for the night, my cousin and I.” She drew Kitty forward, and they stood
-together at the bar. “We’ll need supper, too, Nanny,” she said.
-
-Nanny curtsied. “Yes, Miss Sally Rose,” she answered, beaming adoringly
-at the pretty, smiling face turned toward her. “The bed in the east
-chamber is aired and ready. Should I serve you there, or....” She
-glanced about the taproom.
-
-Sally Rose began to pull off her embroidered gloves, put up a hand to
-pat her golden hair. “Oh--at that table by the fire, please. It was
-chilly, coming the last mile through the swamp willows, and with all
-the fog about.”
-
-Nanny lighted a candle in a pewter holder and carried it to the table
-by the fire. “I’ll bring you supper right off, Miss Sally Rose. We got
-dandelion greens and a ham bone--”
-
-Sally Rose made up a face. “Oh Nanny,” she pleaded, “you know my
-stomach’s delicate.”
-
-Kitty clapped her hand over her mouth so that she would not giggle.
-Sally Rose had never been sick in her life, and could probably digest
-brass nails if she had to.
-
-“Couldn’t you find a bit of chicken, Nanny?”
-
-“Chicken I’ve not got,” answered Nanny. “But there’s a piece of spring
-lamb I just been a-roasting for the minister’s wife. She’s got Salem
-company coming tomorrow.”
-
-“The lamb will do nicely,” said Sally Rose, sitting down at table.
-
-“About our horses,” asked Kitty, taking the chair across from her
-cousin.
-
-“Oh, of course. I’ll speak to one of the men and have them seen to. I
-noticed the landlord as I came in.”
-
-They turned to look at the three men by the table. The men were all
-staring at them and talking together in low voices. One of them now
-rose and came forward. He wore a leather apron tied around his middle
-and walked with a decided limp.
-
-“Job Townsend’s daughter, ain’t you?” he demanded of Sally Rose. “Visit
-kin in Newburyport on occasion?”
-
-Sally Rose smiled and dimpled. “Why, how clever of you to remember
-me! Of course I’m Job Townsend’s daughter,” she said. “And I’m on my
-way home from Newburyport right now. I’ve often told my cousin Kitty
-here, about your tavern--there isn’t a better one in the whole of Essex
-County.”
-
-Strangely enough, the landlord was not smiling at Sally Rose, and he
-ignored her compliment.
-
-“We had a young fellow here a short time back. A young fellow who said
-he hung around the Bay and Beagle some.”
-
-He waited, his face expressionless, for Sally Rose to speak. In the
-silence Kitty heard the rattle of dishes from the kitchen. She caught
-the delicious odor of roast meat, the tang of crushed mint leaves.
-
-Sally Rose’s smile grew no whit dimmer. “We’ve many young fellows who
-hang around the Bay and Beagle,” she said. “My dad would go poor, if we
-didn’t. They keep the till full. Did he tell you his name?”
-
-The landlord spoke accusingly. “He said his name was Gerry Malory. He
-said he was going to Newburyport to see a girl.”
-
-Sally Rose shrugged her graceful shoulders. “Plenty of girls in
-Newburyport,” she said.
-
-“Do you know this Gerry Malory?”
-
-“I might,” she answered cautiously. “Was he a dockyard hand now, or
-maybe a farmer from Breed’s hill--”
-
-“This one was took up for being a British officer,” said the
-landlord grimly. “Took up, right here in my tavern. Irons put on his
-wrists--part of an old ox chain I had--and he was took to the camp at
-Cambridge under guard. Likely they’ll hang the damn redcoat. I hope
-they do.”
-
-Sally Rose’s smile looked a bit frozen, but it did not vanish away.
-There was a tremor in her voice, but she spoke imperiously still. “All
-very interesting, Landlord, but your daughter has undertaken to fetch
-us a supper of spring lamb. We are tired with long riding, and if you
-could ask her to be spry about it, we should be grateful. Our horses,
-also, are at your door and in need of attention.”
-
-She sat down and turned her back upon him.
-
-Kitty watched the lame man shake his head. Then he stumped off toward
-the kitchen. She looked again at her cousin, and Sally Rose’s eyes were
-shining with more than the candlelight.
-
-“He was coming to see me,” she murmured happily. “Gerry was coming to
-see me when they caught him.”
-
-Kitty felt her face twist in a frown and spoke her disapproval. “Which
-he shouldn’t have been doing, of course. He belongs with the other
-British in Boston. Well, he’s got himself in trouble now. A prisoner of
-our men, and the landlord talked of hanging. Aren’t you worried about
-him?”
-
-Sally Rose took off her bonnet and shook back her shining hair. “Not
-a little finger’s worth,” she said. “They won’t hold him long. He can
-come and go like a breath of east wind, Gerry can. My, oh my”--and she
-patted the front of her muslin gown--“I’m so hungry. I wish Nanny would
-hurry and bring that spring lamb!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Twenty-four hours later they were hungry again, much hungrier, and very
-tired. But they were riding down Crooked Lane in Charlestown, with
-the Bay and Beagle almost in sight, and over the river the lights of
-Boston.
-
-“My, it’s been a tiresome day,” sighed Sally Rose. “Losing my purse,
-horse going lame, taking the wrong turn in Danvers--I don’t see how I
-could have been so stupid as to do that.”
-
-“The black flies were the worst,” complained Kitty. “I’m bitten in a
-dozen places, I vow. And I don’t dare scratch the bites, for if I do,
-I’ll look as if I had smallpox.”
-
-She thought back over their long day’s riding: village greens with
-white steeples--Wenham, Beverly, Salem; long stretches of salt marsh
-with the sea beyond it; then Lynn and Malden, as the towns drew
-closer in. It was already night when they came to Medford, and there
-a constable had ridden with them through town, straight to the Penny
-Ferry. Part of the great New England Army was camped on the hills about
-and overflowing the streets and taverns, he said, and he feared for the
-safety of young maids abroad so late. What were their folks thinking
-of, anyway?
-
-For once Sally Rose had been too tired to be charming. She bowed her
-head meekly and accepted his rebuke. But her spirits rose as they left
-river and causeway behind them and took a field path so as not to have
-to pass the Sign of the Sun tavern where there were apt to be British
-officers about.
-
-“My, but Daddy will be surprised,” she said. “I want a glass of Spanish
-wine and a meat pasty. And then, bed! Oh Kitty, think what it’ll be
-like to have a featherbed under us again! I swear, I’ll roll and
-wallow in it! Why--why here we are, and there aren’t any lights in the
-windows!”
-
-They drew up their horses uncertainly in the deserted street. All the
-houses were dark around them, and the cloudy sky was dark overhead. A
-lantern burned at the top of a pole a little way off, so that Kitty
-could make out the weathered sign before her uncle’s tavern, the wooden
-profile of a tall bay horse pawing the air, and at his feet a trim,
-alert hunting dog. But as Sally Rose said, the diamond-shaped panes
-were dark. Peering closer, however, she noticed some letters traced in
-whitewash on the iron-bound door.
-
-“Look, Sally Rose, there’s a sign, but I can’t read it,” she said.
-
-They got down from their horses and walked closer. “Neither can I,”
-said Sally Rose. She tried the door. It was locked tight.
-
-“I know how to climb in by the buttery window,” she murmured, for once
-a little crestfallen, “but I still want to know what is written on the
-door. I wonder where Father can be. He always keeps late closing time.”
-
-She stood irresolute a moment. Then she drew a quick breath as if
-something pleased her, and ran down the street to the lantern swinging
-on its pole. Reaching, stretching, pulling herself up, she managed to
-lift it down and hurry back, holding it proudly aloft, flashing it on
-the paneled door.
-
-In the light that flared uncertainly behind the thin panes of horn, the
-two cousins bent close and read aloud the words, “Closed. Gone to the
-wars till the damn British be beat. J. Townsend.”
-
-They stood still and looked at each other. A salt-smelling wind blew
-down the old street, and a wisp of fog came with it. Fog was dimming
-the lights of Boston, that even now, close to midnight, still burned
-on the other side of the river. The lights looked unfriendly, Kitty
-thought, as she remembered that Boston was in the hands of the enemy.
-Down by the wharves men were shouting and the shouts had an angry
-sound. A burst of musket fire broke out, somewhere off Medford way. The
-girls looked at each other and shivered. They were hungry and tired and
-fly-bitten. They were a little frightened, maybe.
-
-“What will we do now?” asked Kitty. The tone reminded Sally Rose that
-she was to blame for the plight they were in, even if the words did
-not.
-
-“I--don’t--quite know,” faltered Sally Rose. “We can get into the
-house. We’ll have a roof over our heads, and a bed to sleep in. Maybe
-there’s something to eat in the cupboard. We’ll be safe for tonight.
-But it’s after that I’m thinking of. We can’t run the tavern alone,
-without father, and how are we to live if we cannot run the tavern?”
-
-“We could send for Gran,” said Kitty a little mockingly. “Of course
-she’s a timid old lady, but I notice she’s able to do most everything
-that comes her way. I’ll bet she’d be able to serve up cider, or rum
-toddy, or hot grog--or whatever it is they drink.”
-
-Suddenly Sally Rose was smiling again. “Kitty, that’s a wonderful plan.
-Let’s climb into the house now, and have supper, and sleep forever.
-When we wake up we’ll send her a letter by the first post. The buttery
-window’s around here at the back, under the apple tree. Come along. I
-can unfasten the catch, but you’ll have to hoist me in.”
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Eight_
-
-SAVED BY A PIPE-SMOKING MAN
-
-
-Standing in the wet salt grass at the end of Chelsea Neck, Tom Trask
-shifted the old blunderbuss from one shoulder to the other.
-
-“Wisht I had my own gun,” he said to himself. “I’d rather try to lug a
-young pine tree, roots and all, than this critter here.”
-
-Then he smiled sheepishly as he thought of the pretty girl who had
-loaned him the aged weapon. She was a pretty girl, too. Likely he’d go
-to her house and see her when he went down river with the logs next
-spring. Guess she wouldn’t have any eyes for the Newburyport lads when
-he was about. This fuss would all be over by then, and folks back where
-they belonged, plowing their own ground.
-
-He shivered with the cold that goes before sunrise and tried to peer
-through the blackness and mist around him to see if the others were
-getting as restless as he. There were three hundred or more of them,
-New Hampshire and Massachusetts men, here where the Neck narrowed down.
-Not a torch, not a lantern, General Putnam had warned, and if any man
-felt the need of tobacco, let him cut plug and chew, like an old cow
-with cud. It was worse than being lost in the devil’s pocket, but even
-at that, it was better than sitting around camp playing cat’s-cradle,
-like they’d been doing for the past month. A man could get gray
-whiskers before his time, that way.
-
-Some of the lads who came a-running so quick after Concord Fight had
-got tired of the game and put for home already, but Tom hadn’t quite
-been able to convince himself he ought to go along. No, so long as
-Colonel Stark saw a reason to sit around waiting for the British to
-jump, he guessed he, Tom Trask, could wait too. He himself hadn’t been
-far from the camp at Medford, but he’d heard Boston was all ringed
-round with Massachusetts and Connecticut men keeping the redcoats shut
-up tight.
-
-“Can you hear me, lads?” bellowed a gruff voice up ahead.
-
-“Aye,” came a dozen shouts from the tall reeds around him, and an
-equally gruff voice added, “Aye! We be listening all.”
-
-“Volunteers! Old Put wants volunteers!” roared the first speaker.
-“There’ll be an officer come amongst you. There’ll be....” His voice
-grew fainter as he turned to deliver his message in another direction,
-but the words still sounded plain.
-
-Tom put his blunderbuss down and leaned on it. He spoke to the man who
-stood in the marsh grass just ahead of him.
-
-“Got any idea what this is about?” he asked.
-
-The other man took his time in answering. He was older, Tom sensed, and
-more heavily built. In the silence they heard shouting and the rattle
-of musket fire. A ship’s gun flashed on the dark waters of Chelsea
-Creek.
-
-“Yea--a,” said the man slowly. “I was down by the ferry stage awhile
-back.”
-
-“Was there fighting there?”
-
-“Fighting there was. The British ships firing at us, and our men
-waist-deep in water shooting back--even the General himself, Old Put.”
-
-“Did you hear what the volunteers be for?”
-
-“Maybe. You haven’t been here all along? You’re one o’ the reserves who
-come in late last night? One o’ Stark’s men?”
-
-“Aye. One o’ Stark’s men, and proud of it.”
-
-The man was chewing tobacco, Tom’s keen nose told him. He spat suddenly
-into the reeds, his own mouth tasting rancid.
-
-“Likely some day you may have something to be proud of. You done no
-more yet than anyone else, as I can see.”
-
-Tom ignored the rebuke. “Volunteers now,” he murmured. “If I knew what
-’twas about, likely I might take a notion to go.”
-
-“Likely they wouldn’t want you,” sneered the older man. “If I was
-Putnam--which I ain’t--I’d give the job to one o’ the Essex County
-boys.”
-
-“Why?”
-
-“Because ’tis a seafaring operation, of a sort, and there be none like
-the Essex men for maneuvers at sea.”
-
-The firing from the river was steady now.
-
-“Maybe,” said Tom. “What is this operation that takes such a picked
-crew? I never see salt water yet will fight a man as hard as old
-Merrimack when the freshets come down.”
-
-“Volunteers!” sang out a voice nearby. A man, bareheaded, wearing a
-torn brown coat, stood before them holding a carefully shielded lantern
-in his hand.
-
-“Eleven picked men I got. I need one more.”
-
-“Twelve men, you got,” said Tom, shouldering his blunderbuss. “Where do
-I go?”
-
-The man held up his lantern so that the dim light shone on his new
-recruit.
-
-“Built for it, you be,” he said after a moment. “Long, and lean, and
-tough, by the look of you. Are you tough, lad?”
-
-“Tougher’n a biled owl,” said Tom imperturbably.
-
-“Can you swim?”
-
-“Like a muskrat.”
-
-The man grinned. “What’s your trade?”
-
-“I’m a timber man. Floating logs downstream out of the Hampshire woods
-is my trade.”
-
-“Good! Come along then. Down by the water. Ike Baldwin has charge o’
-the action, and he’s gathered his men there.”
-
-Tom followed as he was bidden, down a rough path to the border of
-Chelsea Creek. Looking over his shoulder once, he saw in the sky a long
-streak of sunrise, salmon and silver-gray.
-
-The Neck ended in a narrow strip of shaly beach, and as Tom moved out
-of the protecting reeds he drew his head down turtle-fashion. A British
-ball whined past him, and then another. Half an hour now, and it would
-be broad daylight. Whatever this seafaring operation was, they’d
-better get it over, and soon. Then a little group of men loomed up in
-the thinning mist ahead of him. Eight, nine, he counted, most of them
-no older than he. They were stripped to the waist and unarmed, save
-for their leader, a stalwart man in a blue coat and knee breeches who
-leaned on a musket. Tom and his guide approached the group.
-
-“Here’s your twelfth, Ike,” said the brown-coated man. “Swims like a
-muskrat, tougher’n a biled owl, and is used to riding log rafts down
-the Merrimack. Think he’ll do.”
-
-Ike cleared his throat and spat into the water lapping gently along
-the beach. “Have to, now,” he said. “We’ll be sitting ducks in fifteen
-minutes more. Cal and ’Lisha’s gone for a keg of pitch.” He turned to
-Tom. “You one o’ Stark’s men?”
-
-“Aye. Tom Trask of Derryfield.”
-
-“Good. Get rid of your gun and strip down.”
-
-Tom looked around and found an outcrop of ledge where he thought he
-could probably leave the blunderbuss in safety. Then he peeled off his
-hunting shirt. British mortar fire still droned overhead--too high; he
-had heard back in camp that the British usually shot that way. As he
-shook his hands free from the loose sleeves and flung the garment down,
-he lifted his head and looked at the man nearest to him. Then a wry
-smile twisted his mouth.
-
-“I think I seen you before,” he said.
-
-The other lad peered through the thinning mist, then his eyes widened
-in recognition and he smiled.
-
-“Aye,” he answered jauntily. “Last time I seen you, you was playing
-hide-and-seek. You grown up yet, I wonder?”
-
-“There was others playing it, too,” retorted Tom.
-
-“Yes, others. Kitty Greenleaf, you’ll likely remember.”
-
-“Kitty Greenleaf! So that’s her name. I never did know the whole of it.
-Promised her I’d call by and see her, if I ever happened back that way.”
-
-“Don’t take the trouble. Kitty’s closer now. She’s in Charlestown with
-her cousin, Sally Rose. I went home to get some clean shirts and a
-better gun, and ’twas there I heard it.”
-
-“In Charlestown?” asked Tom in surprise. “Charlestown’s not held to be
-very safe these days. ’Tis thought the British may strike at us from
-there. I heard there be only a couple hundred people left in the town,
-and most of the women sent away.”
-
-“I heard so, too. But Sally Rose took a notion to go home and nothing
-would stop her, so Kitty went along. I ain’t got over there yet to see
-them, but I mean to. I heard Granny Greenleaf went legging after them,
-mad as time.”
-
-Tom laughed in spite of himself as he remembered the thin old voice
-quavering excitedly, “Stop, thief, stop!”
-
-“Maybe I’ll just go along with you, when you do go,” he said. “What’s
-your name now? Eben, was it?”
-
-“Eben! No! You’re thinking of Eben Poore. He’s naught but a foolish
-little lad. I be Johnny Pettengall.”
-
-“So,” said Tom. In the river ahead of him he could see two low green
-islands getting plainer every minute as the mist cleared away. “Well,
-Johnny, for old times’ sake then, tell me what’s afoot and what are we
-down here for?”
-
-Johnny’s face brightened and his voice grew eager, now that he was
-intent again on the business in hand.
-
-“Likely, being a New Hampshire man, you come in with Stark’s reserves
-last night.”
-
-“No. I wasn’t detailed to go--nor to stay, either. Couldn’t sleep, and
-long in the night sometime, I thought I’d just wander this way.”
-
-“I been here all along. We was sent over to Noddle’s Island yesterday
-to drive the cattle off. Farmers who pasture there have been selling
-beef to the British. We’d cleared off Noddle, burned the house of one
-man who resisted, and was on our way back across Hog Island, when a
-sloop and a schooner sailed close in. Fired on us, they did, and o’
-course we answered back.”
-
-“O’ course,” agreed Tom.
-
-“Been firing ever since, except for the schooner--the _Diana_, she is,
-one of our men said who recognized her. She’s run aground and been
-abandoned. It’s her we’re going out to burn.”
-
-Tom looked where the other lad pointed. Sure enough, there in the gray
-light, not very far from shore, rode a two-masted schooner, listing
-badly to one side. Her foresail hung in long streamers that stirred as
-the morning wind blew through them. Her colors had been shot away, and
-the lower side of her deck was all awash with sea.
-
-“All right, boys!” Ike Baldwin straightened them to attention with his
-command. “Here’s Cal and ’Lisha with the pitch. Now we can go.”
-
-Two young men, dark-haired and muscular, came panting up with a heavy
-keg between them, swung in a cradle of stout rope. Baldwin went on,
-speaking rapidly.
-
-“Cal and ’Lisha will tow the pitch out to the schooner. Got that now?”
-
-General murmurs of assent passed among the little group.
-
-“Aye,” murmured Johnny brightly, like a smart lad repeating catechism.
-
-Tom inclined his head and chewed nervously at a bit of grass he had
-picked up somewhere. It had a rank salty taste. He wished he knew
-exactly what he was supposed to do.
-
-“The rest of you ain’t going along for the swim, remember,” the
-relentless orders went on. “You’re there to help get the pitch aboard
-and spread it around on whatever parts of her is driest and most likely
-to burn. Don’t want her to go back into British service again. Don’t
-want the British to think they can come shooting amongst us any time
-they choose without having to pay.”
-
-He stood still for a moment, in a defiant attitude, waiting for his
-words to take effect.
-
-“How we going to kindle the pitch, Ike?” asked a voice at the rear of
-the group. “Flints and tinderboxes’ll be wetter’n a drowned cat ’fore
-we get there.”
-
-Isaac Baldwin frowned. Then his face cleared and he waved a nonchalant
-hand. “Likely there’ll be a cookfire in the galley,” he said. “She
-ain’t been abandoned long. Likely you’ll find a tinderbox there--or
-somewhere else aboard. Her crew must ha’ had some means to light a
-fire.”
-
-“Maybe,” said Tom. He stood thoughtfully for a moment, wondering how
-much time he would have before Ike Baldwin ordered them into the water.
-It would take a few minutes, the thing he wanted to do.
-
-Luck was with him, for Baldwin bent over just then to speak with Cal
-and ’Lisha who were tightening the cradle ropes about the keg. He
-looked up the hill in the direction he had come, then back at the creek
-again. Out beyond the stranded _Diana_, the guns of the sloop were
-still firing harmlessly away. After a moment of indecision, he turned
-and ran up the hill.
-
-He found the man he had been talking to a short time before, seated now
-on a tuft of marsh grass, his gun beside him. He was just in the act of
-filling a pipe, as Tom had gambled he would be. The New Hampshire man
-loped up and accosted him.
-
-“You with that pipe there!”
-
-The man did not look up. His fingers moved leisurely with flints and
-tinder. He lit the pipe, drew on it deeply, then took it from his mouth
-and asked, “Was you speaking to me?”
-
-“Yes. General Putnam gave out the word there was to be no smoking
-amongst the men. He sent me to collect every pipe I found lighted. Like
-this.”
-
-Tom’s hand reached forth lightning quick and snatched the pipe from its
-owner’s startled jaws. Then he sprinted off, down the Neck.
-
-“Hey! Give me back my pipe!” yelled the man, scrambling to his feet,
-his arms flailing the air. “Them orders against pipes was night orders
-only. It’s safe enough, now day’s come.”
-
-“Tell it to General Putnam,” called Tom over his shoulder. He did not
-slow his pace until he reached the beach. Cal and ’Lisha had waded out
-waist-deep, floating the keg between them. The others plunged in now,
-and began swimming toward the schooner. Their officer laid his musket
-down and shed his clothes, obviously intending to follow them, like a
-shepherd after his sheep.
-
-Tom stood still, put the pipe in his mouth, and took a pull on it.
-Great Jehovah, it tasted worse than sulphur and molasses that the old
-women dosed you with in the spring. It tasted worse than wormwood and
-bear’s grease, worse than dragonroot tea. Ike Baldwin stepped into the
-water now, and Tom followed at a little distance. By and by he felt
-the river floor sloping away under his feet, but he managed to keep on
-wading, though the others launched forth and swam. He held his head
-high and his neck still, and kept puffing on the pipe. The schooner was
-only a little way off, stranded in shallow water, but it seemed to Tom
-as if he would never get there, with the ill-smelling wooden bowl and
-its little treasure of fire. Maybe they wouldn’t need it, he thought,
-but if they did they would need it bad, and he meant to have it on hand.
-
-Once a British ball struck close by, throwing up a shower of spray that
-left him shaken and half blinded, but he kept puffing away at the pipe
-and forged steadily ahead. Then another ball struck even closer. The
-British were finding the range, he thought. They must have realized
-what their opponents meant to do.
-
-When he reached the schooner, she was so sharply tilted that he found
-it as easy to climb aboard her as it would have been to swarm up a
-sloping beach. The other lads were there ahead of him, busy spreading
-pitch on a pile of canvas mattresses and hammocks fetched up from the
-sleeping quarters below, spreading it on the dry parts of the deck
-above water line.
-
-A brisk wind sang through the _Diana’s_ broken rigging. It struck cold
-on Tom’s bare shoulders and drove the last of the mist away. Sounds of
-firing came from the British sloop, but he forgot the sloop. He cupped
-his hands about the pipe bowl to shelter its living contents from the
-wind. He took a long puff.
-
-“So this is the way Stark trains his lads!” Isaac Baldwin’s voice
-lashed out at him. He turned sharply and looked into the grim, angry
-face of their leader.
-
-Tom took the pipe cautiously from his mouth. “’T hasn’t got nothing to
-do with Stark,” he said.
-
-“If this were a regular engagement, you could be court-martialed.
-Smoking a pipe! Skulking here smoking a pipe! Look at the other lads!”
-
-Tom stared miserably at the busy group who were still heaping up
-whatever inflammables they could find. Then he put the pipe back in his
-mouth and gave another dogged puff.
-
-“Here! Give me that!” Livid with rage, Ike Baldwin made a grab for the
-pipe.
-
-Tom put one hand up before his face and ducked away. The deck under
-his feet was worn by the tramp of many men, and it was slippery with
-morning dew. He fell, half recovered himself, and then went down on his
-knees, his teeth still clamped to the pipestem.
-
-From the hatchway that led below came confused cries.
-
-“Oh, Captain! Tell the Captain there’s not a spark aboard her! Galley
-fire’s been put out and the ashes raked over! Not a flint! Not a
-tinderbox! How’s to have a burning without fire?”
-
-Tom felt his pulses quicken. It was as if there were shooting sparks
-of triumph in his blood. His guess had been right, then. He lifted his
-head. Baldwin had turned away, having greater troubles now.
-
-“There must be flints somewhere,” he exclaimed crustily. “Have you
-searched the officers’ quarters? The mess cabin? The hold?”
-
-“Aye, sir. Everywhere.”
-
-Tom got to his feet and looked around him. The men were standing idle
-now, about the heap of mattresses. They looked bewildered and--well,
-not afraid--uneasy, maybe. Turning his head a little, he saw the green
-shores of Hog Island with Noddle’s Island just beyond it, and far
-beyond that, the roofs of Boston touched with the morning sun. In the
-foreground hovered the British sloop. Her guns were silent now, but her
-sails were spread and she seemed to be drawing close. Perhaps this was
-the time for him to speak.
-
-“Give me that pipe!” Isaac Baldwin’s command had a different tone to
-it this time. Before he had been angry and somewhat scornful. Now his
-voice was full of eagerness, quick and keen.
-
-Tom took the pipe from his mouth. “Yes, sir,” he said. “I thought we
-might need it, sir. That’s why I brought it along. I--I’m not much of a
-smoking man.”
-
-“Good boy,” said Isaac Baldwin.
-
-He walked quickly across the deck, knelt down, and ripped a bit of tow
-from a mattress, testing the dryness of it with his fingers. Then he
-placed it lightly across the bowl of the pipe.
-
-The other men were holding their breaths as they looked on. Tom
-watched, too, but he felt a strange dizziness coming over him, so he
-went and clung to the rail.
-
-At first nothing happened. Then it was as if the tow began to melt
-away. Ike held a larger piece of tow above the first one--a fluffed-out
-piece. Suddenly the fluff burst into open flame. Someone started to
-cheer and quickly choked the sound back. From the fluff, Ike lighted a
-still larger piece of tow and dropped that on the heap of bedding. The
-men watched, fascinated. First one little tongue of flame leaped up and
-then another. Then a tiny roaring sound began, growing louder every
-moment.
-
-When he saw that there was a splendid bonfire a-going, Tom turned to
-the rail and hung weakly overside. He knew now that his trick had
-worked and the British schooner would soon be a seething mass of
-flame. Soon his comrades, their mission accomplished, would be leaping
-overside and swimming back to Chelsea Neck. When that time came, he
-knew, he would straighten himself up and go with them, but right now
-there was a rancid taste in his mouth and the smell of burning pitch in
-his nostrils. He’d had enough of pipe-smoking to last him a lifetime,
-and he didn’t feel very well--in fact, he didn’t feel well at all.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Nine_
-
-NO CLOUDS ON BUNKER HILL
-
-
-“Never expected to see you keeping a public house, Ma’am
-Greenleaf--leastwise, not one with a strong drink license.”
-
-Old Timothy Coffin’s voice had disapproval in it, Kitty thought, as she
-turned from the small oak bar where she was polishing glasses. The warm
-June sunshine struck through the diamond-shaped panes and lay in pools
-of light with rainbow edges on the sanded floor, on the worn tables and
-benches. A gentle breeze stirred the tall hollyhock stems outside the
-window. Sally Rose was weeding the hollyhocks--or supposed to be. Now
-that Gran had come to take charge, there was a task for everyone.
-
-“You’re a-going to see a deal of things you never expected to see,”
-said Gran tartly. She was seated by the hearth shelling peas, while
-Timothy swept the tiles with a birch broom.
-
-“Happen you’re right, Ma’am,” agreed the old man. “Never expected to
-see the King’s men shooting at us--and we going to meeting, praying for
-the King, all the while.”
-
-“Yes, it’s a strange state of affairs, Timothy,” answered Gran. Her
-voice had turned suddenly thoughtful, and her fingers played idly with
-the empty pods as she stared through the open door at the empty house
-across the way.
-
-Kitty looked at the empty house, too. Most of the houses in Charlestown
-were empty now, and scarcely any women left in the town at all. The
-men came back sometimes to cut hay and weed their gardens, but they
-had sent their families away to the inland towns, and swore they would
-leave them there till this fuss with the British soldiers was ended,
-one way or another.
-
-This was bad for business, of course. Here it was, nearly ten o’clock
-of a fine hot Tuesday morning, sixth of June by the almanac, and she
-hadn’t served a single customer.
-
-Everything seemed to be set up in terms of this “fuss,” nowadays.
-For instance, she and Gran and Sally Rose living here in Charlestown
-and running the Bay and Beagle, while Uncle Job was away with the
-Massachusetts troops somewhere. Not knowing they were here, thinking
-Sally Rose was safe in Newburyport, he hadn’t come home. Then when Gran
-came to join them, hopping mad at the trick Sally Rose had played, she
-brought Dick Moody and Timothy along to do the men’s work about the
-place. They hadn’t stayed in camp long, for Dick was young and couldn’t
-shoot well enough, and Timothy was old, and his bones creaked. But all
-they wanted to talk about was the camp and the goings-on there. But
-they didn’t call it a “fuss” like Gran did. They called it a war. And
-that had a much more important and terrible sound.
-
-War was terrible, Kitty knew, so terrible that it couldn’t be going to
-happen right here in front of her eyes, to people she knew, maybe to
-herself--not really.
-
-Dick came in from the backyard with an armful of wood and stacked it
-carefully beside the hearth. Then he stood silent and respectful,
-looking at Granny.
-
-Dick had grown taller, Kitty thought, and next time he went to camp,
-as he threatened to do every day or so, it wasn’t likely they’d send
-him home for being too young. Sometimes he and Timothy went to the
-cow pasture at the foot of Bunker Hill and practiced a little with
-Timothy’s gun--not much, though, because they didn’t want to waste
-powder and ball. Suddenly she realized Dick was speaking. He looked at
-her, but he addressed himself to Granny.
-
-“I thank you for bringing me down here, near where I wanted to be. But
-I’m quitting your service now, Ma’am Greenleaf.”
-
-“Oh, go get yourself a slice of bread and molasses, and you’ll think
-better of it,” said Granny. “You can put maple sugar on it, too,” she
-added.
-
-Dick’s face grew red, and his young voice had an unfamiliar harshness
-in it. “You’ve fed me well enough, Ma’am. It’s not on account of the
-food and wages I’m leaving.”
-
-“What is it then, and what do you think to do?” asked Gran, with an air
-of rapidly exhausting patience.
-
-“Up the Mystic a ways--in one o’ the swamps there--some men from
-Gloucester are building fire boats. I been in the ship-building trade.
-They said I could help them.”
-
-“Fire boats!” Granny tried to laugh, but there was no merriment in the
-noise she made. It sounded like a cackle. “And what do you think to do
-with fire boats, pray?”
-
-“Why, what do most folk do with fire? Burn something. Maybe one o’ the
-British schooners, or men-o’-war, even. Maybe burn Boston, for all I
-know. Whatever our orders say.”
-
-“You can’t burn Boston,” retorted Granny severely. “Boston don’t belong
-to the British soldiery. Houses and shops and all belongs to Americans,
-as good as you be. True, they’ve most of them fled from it now, but
-they’ll be back some day--when this fuss is over, and God send that
-happen right soon. Now whatever is that drum a-beating for?” She held
-up her head and listened. “I’ve heard fife and drum music enough to
-last me a long time.”
-
-“You’ll hear more of it before you hear less, Ma’am,” muttered Timothy.
-
-Dick hurried to the door and stared up the road that led to the Neck,
-from which the sound came. Kitty went to stand beside him.
-
-“Are you really going back to be with the Army, Dick?” she asked, in
-one of the brief pauses between the slow beats of the drum.
-
-Dick cleared his throat. “Seems like I have to,” he murmured. “Would
-it matter to you, Kit, if I--” His voice broke off, and his hand just
-brushed her shoulder.
-
-“Oh Kitty! Kitty!” cried Sally Rose as she came flying down the street,
-her bright hair loose on her shoulders and her cheeks flushed with
-excitement. “They’re bringing the prisoners! There’s going to be an
-exchange! Perhaps Gerry will be in it!”
-
-She dropped down on the broad doorstone and sat there, trying to get
-back her breath.
-
-“How do you know?” asked Dick quickly. He was not looking at Sally
-Rose, but up the winding street that led to Charlestown Neck and the
-towns beyond it on the mainland.
-
-Kitty looked, too. Down the narrow way between the gabled houses came a
-slowly moving procession. First the drummer stepped out, a scrawny lad
-not much taller than Dick. He walked all alone, beating a brass-bound
-drum, and behind him followed a black horse drawing a phaeton with two
-men in it. After the phaeton rode two British officers on horseback.
-She could see nothing more at the moment because of a crook in the
-street. A little crowd was beginning to gather in the direction of
-Market Square. Sally Rose finally got back her breath and answered
-Dick’s question.
-
-“When I heard the drum I ran down to Mr. Bassett’s wine shop. He’s back
-in town, you know, to cut his hay on the Point Road, and I asked him
-what was happening. He said he heard--”
-
-The drummer had come even with the Bay and Beagle now, and his steady
-beating drowned out the girl’s excited voice. Sally Rose stopped
-talking and got to her feet. She and Dick and Kitty stood together in
-the tavern doorway and watched the slow procession advance and pass
-close by them.
-
-The two men who rode in the phaeton behind the drummer were in odd
-contrast to each other, and yet there was the same air of dignity and
-purpose enveloping both of them. One was old--not so old as Timothy,
-but not young any more. He was broad-shouldered and sturdy and had a
-round, good-natured face and a shock of tousled gray hair. He wore a
-blue uniform. His companion was younger, fair-haired and blue-eyed,
-with a ruddy face and a fresh, scrubbed look about him. He was not a
-soldier, apparently, for his coat was fawn-colored with a white-fringed
-waistcoat underneath.
-
-“That’s Old Put,” said Timothy proudly, for he and Gran had come to
-stand just behind them. “See! In the blue coat there! General Putnam.
-His wife must ha’ sent him his uniform.”
-
-“Why would she have to do that?” asked Gran tartly. “Wouldn’t go off to
-war without it, would he?”
-
-Timothy chuckled. “That’s just what he done! When he heard about
-Concord Fight, he was building a stone wall on his farm away down in
-Connecticut. But he come just as he was, in leather breeches and apron.
-Got here at next day’s sunrise, they say.”
-
-“I guess there was others got here just as quick as he did,” answered
-Gran. “Yourself for one.” She peered over Kitty’s shoulder. “Who be
-that by his side?”
-
-“That’s Dr. Warren. Best damn man, I say, that ever come out o’
-Boston. Don’t know how General Ward would run Cambridge Camp without
-him. Figures out how to get supplies, and men, and money, and all. He’s
-got book learning and can talk to anybody. More’n that, he’s a good
-doctor.”
-
-“Where are the prisoners, I wonder?” asked Sally Rose.
-
-Kitty nudged her, and she subsided.
-
-After the phaeton came two British officers, splendid in white
-and scarlet, and riding sleek horses; then another officer in a
-chaise; then a handful of officers on foot. They were escorted by a
-blue-uniformed guard that Timothy said looked to him like Connecticut
-men. By now the drummer had turned into Ferry Street, heading for the
-wharves at the waterside. Here and there stood a little cluster of
-men, here and there a woman’s head appeared at a gable window, but the
-spectators were few. At the very end of the procession a farm cart
-rattled along, drawn by two plow horses. A group of men sprawled on
-the floor of it, men in tattered British uniforms, pale and unshaven,
-unable to walk, apparently, because of wounds or illness. They looked
-so forlorn and miserable that Kitty felt tears start to her eyes.
-
-“Oh,” she whispered to Sally Rose, “I’m sorry for the poor lads. I
-don’t care if they are British.”
-
-“If they hadn’t come out shooting at us, they wouldn’t be in this
-pickle now,” growled Timothy. “Wonder where is our boys we’re supposed
-to get back in the exchange.”
-
-“Mr. Bassett says they’re aboard the _Lively_,” said Sally Rose.
-“Oh--oh--Kitty--” She clapped her hand over her mouth.
-
-For a moment Kitty did not see anything to exclaim about. The cart full
-of prisoners trundled slowly by. Close beside it walked a young man in
-a rough woolen shirt and homespun breeches. He carried a knapsack, and
-a large wooden bottle was slung from his shoulder by a leather strap.
-Just then the procession halted a moment. Up ahead, the drummer turned
-down Ferry Street on his way to the docks to meet the boats from the
-_Lively_. The phaeton bent its wheels sharply to round the corner. In
-the pause the young man unstoppered the wooden bottle and held it over
-the side of the cart so one of the prisoners could drink. The rear
-guard, another group of blue-coated Connecticut men, halted too. They
-were apparently the last of the procession.
-
-Kitty glanced again at her cousin. Sally Rose stood up proud and
-smiling. The long lashes about her hazel eyes flickered provocatively.
-Sally Rose was watching the young man with the bottle. For that reason,
-and that reason alone, Kitty looked closer at him herself.
-
-He turned just then and smiled at them. He had dark hair, she saw, and
-deep-set blue eyes. My, he was certainly handsome! Living all her life
-in Newburyport, she hadn’t realized how many handsome men there were
-in the world--drifting down the Merrimack on a log raft, walking the
-road that ran past Bunker Hill. They were everywhere, now that she had
-suddenly grown up enough to look at them. Sally Rose had always known.
-Sally Rose was born grown up.
-
-She cast a sudden look at Dick, and knew instinctively that she would
-never kiss him good night again, or if she did, it would be with a
-difference. Their kissing days were over. Dick was an old friend now,
-and only that. Never again would he stir in her that strange tremulous
-feeling that went with a new moon and apple blossoms and the first warm
-nights of spring. She knew, but she did not know how it was that she
-knew.
-
-The young man in the leather breeches was still smiling. He lifted his
-hand, oh so slightly, and motioned toward the docks. Then the cart
-wheels began to turn again, and the procession plodded on. The little
-group around the door of the Bay and Beagle watched until the last
-straggler was out of sight.
-
-“Well, that’s over,” said Gran briskly, “It’s well past noon, and I
-expect we’ll have custom. If you’re leaving us, Master Dick, you might
-as well be off, and good luck to you--the same as I’d wish to the son
-of any neighbor. Timothy, you better bring up another keg of brandy
-from the cellar. You can tend the taps for awhile, Kitty, and Sally
-Rose--why, where is Sally Rose?”
-
-They called and called and searched the bedrooms and the attic and the
-back garden, but the girl was nowhere to be found. Dick left, after a
-bit, taking his spare shirt with him, a small ham, and a hunting knife
-proffered by Timothy. The old man went on his errand to the cellar,
-and Kitty returned to polishing glasses. A few men drifted in to drink
-beer and cider and talk about the exchange of prisoners. Gran muttered
-a few dark words about the flightiness of the younger generation and
-went into the kitchen to put the bread to rise and make pease porridge
-for supper. Bread and beer and pease porridge folk had to have, thought
-Kitty, no matter if wars came about, and handsome young men went out to
-be killed in them, and girls grew up all too late.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Trade got brisker during the long hot afternoon, and Kitty was kept
-busy filling mugs and glasses. She learned from the talk of the men who
-happened in that the British prisoners had been sent out by boat to
-the great, threatening man-o’-war that swung at anchor in the channel,
-halfway to Boston. The officers in charge of the business had all come
-into town to take some refreshment and expected shortly to return to
-the dock to receive the American lads whose delivery would complete the
-exchange. Everything had been conducted in an orderly and courteous
-fashion.
-
-Gradually the excitement died down. Gran put on her second best straw
-bonnet and went out to look for Sally Rose. Timothy had trouble getting
-the brandy keg up the cellar stairs. Bees droned loudly in the
-hollyhocks, and gulls cried from the harbor. Slowly the sun moved over
-to the westward side of the roofs and gables. It was a summer afternoon
-like any other summer afternoon.
-
-And then, all of a sudden, Sally Rose was back. She slipped in quietly,
-like a shadow. On her face was that cat-stealing-cream look that fitted
-her so well. She went straight to the kitchen.
-
-Kitty hastily served a waiting customer, that same Mr. Bassett who had
-come back to Charlestown to cut his hay, and then she followed her
-cousin. Sally Rose stood by the water bucket, the dipper lifted to her
-mouth. She drank thirstily.
-
-“My, that tastes good,” she said, licking her wet red lips. “It was hot
-down by the dockside. Not a sea breeze anywhere.”
-
-“You’ve been to the docks?” asked Kitty curiously.
-
-“Of course. Didn’t you see Gerry wave to me to follow him?”
-
-“Gerry?”
-
-“Oh, of course, Kit!” Sally Rose’s voice had a ring of impatience in
-it. “I tried to make signs to you. I thought by the look of your face
-you understood me. You were surely staring at him.”
-
-“Staring at whom?”
-
-“Oh Kitty! You saw him! Gerry was the lad in the homespun breeches who
-marched beside the prisoners’ cart. He was the only one able to walk,
-and so he had to wait on them.”
-
-“But--but that lad--he looked like an American. His clothes--I
-thought--”
-
-“Of course! Gerry was pretending to be an American when we captured
-him. That’s why he was looking so shabby. You should see him in his
-captain’s uniform! He’s been kept in a tent in Cambridge--a tent made
-of old sailcloth that the rain came through, and guards all around
-him. But he was exchanged this afternoon. I went down to the dock
-and talked to him while the boats were putting off. He’s gone safe to
-his own regiment in Boston now. But he says he’ll come back to see
-me--another day.”
-
-“That’s nice,” said Kitty. “That’s very nice indeed.”
-
-She felt cross suddenly. It must be the heat, or because she had been
-working so hard, or because she had forgotten to eat any dinner. It
-might be the outrageous behavior of Sally Rose. There are many ways to
-explain such a thing.
-
-“And you know he said ...” Sally Rose rattled on.
-
-Suddenly there was a hoarse cry from the cellar stairs--a burst of
-strong language, then a deep groan of pain. The girls looked at each
-other.
-
-“Oh, it’s Timothy!” gasped Kit. “He was trying to bring up a brandy
-keg. He must have fallen.”
-
-The groans continued. She ran to the head of the cellar stairs and
-looked down. Sure enough, the old man lay on the dank earth that served
-for a flooring, the heavy keg on top of his right foot, his left leg
-bent beneath him.
-
-“We’re coming, Timothy,” she called. “We’ll help you.”
-
-She gazed desperately around the taproom, but it was empty. The last
-customer had gone. Again she and Sally Rose stood looking at each other.
-
-“He’ll need a doctor,” murmured Kitty. “He’s sure to need a doctor.
-Whether there’s one left in town or not, I don’t know.”
-
-Suddenly her cousin’s face lighted. “Of course there’s one in town,”
-she cried. “Timothy himself pointed one out. That kind-looking man who
-rode in the phaeton with Old Put. Dr. Warren of Boston.”
-
-“Oh--of course I remember. But he’ll be dining with the British
-officers. He’s an important official, I think, like a minister or a
-judge. He was wearing a fine coat, Sally Rose. He won’t want to leave
-his wine and go down in a dirty cellar to tend a poor old man.”
-
-“You can’t tell,” said Sally Rose. “You can’t tell at all. He looked
-kind. I’m going to try to find him.” She ran through the doorway.
-
-Kitty stepped gingerly down the cellar stairs to see if she could help
-the old man. He could only moan and grunt and utter inarticulate sounds
-when she tried to talk to him, but she managed to roll the heavy cask
-off his foot and drag him into a sitting position against the roots of
-the massive chimney. It seemed hours before she heard footsteps on the
-floor overhead, but later she realized it could not have been very long.
-
-A moment later the fair-haired doctor in his neat coat and breeches
-stepped nimbly down the stairway. Four of the blue-coated Connecticut
-lads swarmed after.
-
-Dr. Warren looked around him in the dim light, at the cobwebbed depths
-of the cellar: at the empty vegetable bins waiting for this year’s
-harvest, the shelves of preserves and jellies in stone crocks, the
-casks that held the stock in trade of the tavern above. He smiled
-briefly at Kitty, then he went down on his knees on the earth floor.
-
-“A bad mishap, Timothy,” he said, bending over the old man. There was a
-note of cheery courage in his voice. Kitty felt it, and she knew that
-Timothy felt it too. The old man spoke weakly.
-
-“Aye, sir. All the brandy in the house be not in that blasted keg
-there. Have the lass to fetch me a swig, if you will, sir.”
-
-Kitty did not need to be told again. She ran upstairs to fetch a glass
-of brandy. When she came back, the doctor had cut Timothy’s boot away
-and bared the flesh beneath it. He shook his head, and there was a
-sober look on his face.
-
-“’Tis somewhat crushed I fear. Drink up your brandy, sir, and I will
-patch it as best I can. Then the lads will carry you upstairs--where
-there should be a bed waiting.” He looked questioningly at Kitty.
-
-“There will be,” she assured him tremulously. “I spoke to my cousin,
-Sally Rose. She’s getting it ready.”
-
-She held the brandy glass to Timothy’s mouth, and the old man sipped
-feebly. Sometimes he flinched, as the doctor worked at the broken foot,
-reshaping it, applying splints and bandages. He did not utter a word,
-but his breath came in painful gasps, and he was shivering. The young
-soldiers stood looking on.
-
-Dr. Warren talked as he worked, hoping, perhaps, to distract the old
-man’s attention.
-
-“Well, sir,” he said, “to tell you the truth, sir, I was glad enough
-when the young lady came to fetch me here. I was in the act of
-quarreling with Old Put as we partook of a roast goose and glasses
-of claret. Somehow, in spite of the present triumph of more cautious
-gentlemen, I fear the General may yet have his way.”
-
-Timothy grinned faintly. “I be sorry for ye,” he whispered, “if ye
-quarreled with Old Put.”
-
-“Yes, and I felt I was getting the worst of it, though it seems that
-at the moment all the greatest powers in our Great American Army be
-on my side. Steady, Timothy! This will take but a minute. There! As I
-was saying, the whole camp has been in an uproar the past month, as to
-whether or not we should fortify Bunker Hill and make a stand against
-the British there. Some say we must fight them, and it better be soon
-rather than late. Old Put and Prescott go with that way of thinking.”
-
-“Fortify Bunker Hill?” whispered Timothy manfully through his pain.
-“Why, that be close by!”
-
-“Very close,” said the doctor. “General Ward and I have talked much
-about it. I have been housed at his Cambridge headquarters of late,
-where I can easily visit the Provincial Congress in Watertown. He and
-I think our men are not yet ready to make a stand. We are against such
-an incautious display of valor. Later, perhaps, but not until we have a
-better equipped and conditioned army.”
-
-“I wisht,” muttered Timothy, “I had displayed less incautious valor
-with that brandy keg. In God’s mercy, I do, sir.”
-
-Dr. Warren tightened the last bandage and got to his feet.
-
-“Take him up carefully, lads,” he said, “and carry him above stairs.
-The little golden-head will show you where.”
-
-Kitty thought fleetingly that even the great doctor had been enough
-like common men so that he had an eye for the beauty of Sally Rose. She
-had hardly noticed what he said about a battle on Bunker Hill.
-
-But she thought about it later when she was standing at the tavern door
-in the hot dusk, looking past the roofs of Charlestown at the green
-countryside rising behind it. Gran was at home now, alternately tending
-Timothy and scolding Sally Rose. The doctor and the soldiers had long
-since gone, and the exchange of prisoners was probably complete.
-
-Bunker Hill rose smooth and round and green. Breed’s Hill, not so tall,
-was nearer the point, and the third hill, away to the southeast, she
-could not see. The hills were criss-crossed with rail fences and stone
-walls, divided into orchards, gardens, and pasture land. Daisies and
-buttercups bloomed all white and gold in the hayfields. The locust
-trees rose tall, and the elm trees taller. Hard green fruit clung to
-the apple boughs, and tassels were coming on the stalks of Indian corn.
-Gulls cried from the harbor, and a bat swooped down from the eaves
-above her head, and darted off, winging its way from side to side of
-the crooked street.
-
-Away to the eastward a low-lying cloud bank merged with the dim sea.
-There were clouds in the west, too, and thickening round the hills and
-steeples of Boston. But over Bunker Hill the sky was clear, lighted
-with one pale star. She took it to be a good omen--that there would be
-no battle there.
-
-It seemed to Kitty the most peaceful landscape she had ever seen in her
-life. And yet, the talk was, “Fortify Bunker Hill! Make a stand against
-the British there!” She was glad Dr. Warren did not favor it, and she
-hoped he would have his way. She thought maybe she would have liked the
-young man by the prisoners’ cart, if she had ever come to know him. But
-then, she had never dreamed that he was not an American. And he had
-turned out to be her cousin’s British Gerry. He probably wouldn’t have
-looked so handsome to her if he had been wearing his red coat.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Ten_
-
-A TRYST WITH THE ENEMY
-
-
-“But what makes you so sure he will be there, Sally Rose,” asked Kitty,
-“if you haven’t had any word?”
-
-She was curled up in the middle of the four-poster bed which she shared
-with her cousin. Sally Rose sat at the dressing table. A candle burned
-at each side of the mirror, and she was studying her reflection in its
-glass. She wore nothing but a thin cambric shift, and her feet were
-bare.
-
-“He told me he would come in a week’s time, if not before. He promised
-it wouldn’t be more than that. When he got aboard the boat to go to the
-_Lively_, he promised me.”
-
-Kitty stared past Sally Rose’s golden head into the dark street. Their
-bedroom was over the kitchen, and she could hear Gran’s brisk footsteps
-trotting about below. Gran was roasting mutton to feed tomorrow’s
-customers, but she had sent the girls upstairs to get their beauty
-sleep.
-
-“I’ve slipped out to our old meeting place in the graveyard every
-night, but he was never there,” she went on. “But tonight it’s Tuesday
-again, so he has to be. He just has to be there tonight.” She pulled
-on a pair of delicate thread stockings, and thrust her feet into
-high-heeled slippers with roses on the toes.
-
-Kitty eyed them disapprovingly. “As I remember the old graveyard, it’s
-full of holes and hummocks,” she said. “You’ll trip and fall in those
-shoes, if you go walking there.”
-
-“I don’t expect to do much walking,” said Sally Rose.
-
-Then a mischievous light shone out of her hazel eyes. “Kitty! Wait till
-you see what I bought today. The shops are full of bargains, with all
-the Tories gone out of town. You’ll have to help me, I think.”
-
-She scurried to the clothespress, reached inside it, and brought out
-the most hideous contraption Kitty had ever seen. It was a pair of
-stays, she supposed, but what a pair! A long cruel case of whalebone
-and stiff buckram, high in the back, very low in the front, pinched
-and pointed like the body of some vicious insect. That it was covered
-with white velvet and sewn with brilliants did not make it any the less
-frightening. Kitty got a cramp in her stomach as she looked at it. Her
-chest tightened, and for a moment she had trouble in breathing. But
-Sally Rose had a gleam in her eye.
-
-“I got this at the staymaker’s this morning,” she said. “He ordered it
-for a rich Tory lady, but she fled away to join the British in Boston,
-so he let me have it cheap.”
-
-“I should think he might,” said Kitty. “Why it’s hardly a foot around
-the middle. You’re slender, but not that slender, Sally Rose. How do
-you think to lace it up?”
-
-Sally Rose smiled engagingly and stepped into the dreadful garment,
-dragging it over her hips and around her slight form. “Oh, you’ll have
-to lace it for me, Kit,” she announced. “I’ll have a truly fashionable
-figure now. I always wanted one. Remember, Gerry’s been looking at
-those rich Boston ladies all the week long. I don’t want him to feel
-disappointed when he sees me.”
-
-Kitty climbed down from the bed and went to her cousin. She picked up
-the ends of the lacings and began to weave them into the metal hooks.
-Sally Rose stood there beaming, holding the stays in place.
-
-“Hurry and lace them up, Kit,” she urged. “It will be easier if I can
-slip out while Gran is still at her work. Before she comes upstairs, I
-mean to be gone.”
-
-With a great effort Kitty drew the stays together at the bottom,
-clamping her cousin’s slim hips and belly into a frighteningly narrow
-space. The garment had been designed for a much taller girl, and came
-well down over the thigh, almost to the knee. It fastened at the bottom
-with a tiny jeweled padlock, and Kitty noted a similar one at the top.
-She hesitated.
-
-“Does this unlock with a key?” she asked.
-
-Sally Rose held up a tiny bit of gold on a satin ribbon. “Oh, it does,
-Kitty, and I have the key here. Isn’t it all deliciously clever?”
-
-“I don’t know,” muttered Kitty. “Hold your stomach in.”
-
-Sally Rose compressed herself to the utmost and closed her eyes. Kitty
-fastened the padlock and struggled with the lacings.
-
-“Tighter! Tighter!” gasped Sally Rose.
-
-Kitty pulled at the strong cord until it almost cut her fingers. It was
-waxed, and it had a toughness about it that made her think of wire.
-
-After a moment she shoved Sally Rose up against the wall, sat down in a
-chair in front of her, braced her knees, and laboriously threaded and
-pulled till the task was over and she could snap the jeweled padlock at
-the top. Then she stood off to view her work.
-
-Sally Rose looked like a long white worm standing up on its tail--or
-like a white candle, if you wanted to be poetic--but more like a worm.
-Her face was flushed, and she could take only the shortest, shallowest
-breaths, but there was triumph in her eye.
-
-“Now my dress and petticoat, Kitty, if you’ll be so good. Oh wait till
-Gerry sees me! He’ll be so o’ercome with admiration he’ll scarce know
-what to say!”
-
-“He’ll be o’ercome, I don’t doubt,” said Kitty. “Especially if he
-tries to put his arm around you. You feel like a stick of cord wood.”
-She fastened the gauze petticoat over the stays and then brought the
-sky-blue muslin gown Sally Rose had laid out on a chair.
-
-Was life going to be like this always, she wondered somewhat wistfully;
-helping Sally Rose to dress, letting Sally Rose in when the evening
-was over; herself never dressing up, never meeting anyone, never going
-anywhere? She wished that Tom Trask the logger had the daring British
-Gerry had. Gossip said that the New Hampshire men were in camp in
-Medford, and Medford wasn’t much farther than Boston. But he had no
-way of knowing she was so near him, of course. Perhaps when things got
-quieter after Concord Fight, he’d gone back to Newburyport to return
-her father’s gun. But now it seemed that battles were threatening
-again. Perhaps--
-
-“Now my gold gauze kerchief and my scent bottle,” panted Sally Rose.
-
-Kitty brought them. “Are you ready now?” she asked, trying to keep the
-envy from her tone. It wasn’t Sally Rose’s fault that she felt lonely
-and neglected, not Sally Rose’s fault at all.
-
-“Yes, I’m ready,” sighed Sally Rose. “I’ll go down the back stairs, I
-think, and through the garden. Good-by, dear.” She held up her soft
-cheek.
-
-Kitty brushed her lips against it. “Good-by, Sally Rose,” she said.
-“Don’t get into any trouble, and come home soon.”
-
-Sally Rose laughed a little uneasily and made an awkward motion to
-step forward. But she did not step forward. She stopped suddenly,
-twisted her body, or tried to, and put her hand to her side.
-
-“My, a bone jabbed me,” she said.
-
-After a moment she tried again to move forward. This time she succeeded
-in taking three little hobbled steps. Then she swayed clumsily,
-tripped, and fell on the rag rug. There she lay like an overset turtle,
-unable to rise.
-
-Kitty stuffed her handkerchief into her mouth to choke back her
-laughter. Then she ran forward and struggled to hoist Sally Rose to her
-feet.
-
-“I--I don’t think I can walk in this thing,” gasped Sally Rose. “It’s
-like having two feet in one breeches leg. And the bones hurt me. And
-it’s getting late. Take it off, Kit. Take it off at once. Here’s the
-key.”
-
-Still trying to keep back her laughter at the other girl’s ridiculous
-plight, Kitty pulled off the blue dress and the petticoat and fitted
-the tiny key into the jeweled lock. It refused to turn, and she twisted
-it gently.
-
-“You’ll be in a pickle,” she muttered, “if it should break.”
-
-“Don’t you dare break it!” squealed Sally Rose.
-
-Kitty worked the key this way and that. Below in the tavern kitchen
-Gran’s voice lifted up the words of an old hymn. Through the open
-window drifted the scent of garden flowers in the warm dark. Her hands
-got sticky with sweat. She kept dropping the wretched little key.
-
-“Hurry!” pleaded Sally Rose. “I’m afraid he’ll come and not find me.
-I’m afraid he’ll go away.”
-
-Desperately Kitty twisted the bit of metal.
-
-“It’s no use, Sally Rose,” she said at last. “I can’t make it work.
-What will we do?”
-
-“Cut the lacings, I suppose,” sighed Sally Rose, “and I’ll try to
-wiggle out through the gap in the middle. I don’t care much. I never
-should have bought it. Maybe the staymaker will take it back. Get my
-shears. They’re in the workbox in the top drawer.”
-
-“But you left your workbox in the kitchen,” said Kit. “I saw it there
-when we were scouring the pots after supper. All the other shears and
-knives are there too, and if I went down, I’d have to explain to Gran.”
-
-The two girls looked at each other in dismay. Sally Rose bit her lip.
-“Yes, you would,” she said. “And whatever excuse you made, she might
-come back upstairs with you, and then I’d never get away. Can’t you
-break the lacings?”
-
-“I doubt it,” said Kitty. “It’s the toughest cord I ever saw.”
-
-“Try.”
-
-So Kitty yanked and tugged and twisted, but the cord refused to break.
-Sally Rose was hopelessly trapped.
-
-They were silent for a moment. Then she clenched her soft hands and
-stiffened her mouth. “I’ll have to go just as I am,” she said, and
-tried to walk again. Again she fell.
-
-Kitty helped her up and led her to a chair. “Sit down, Sally Rose,” she
-said gently. But Sally Rose could not sit down.
-
-“I guess it’s no use,” she murmured, reluctant, almost tearful. “You’ll
-just have to go and tell Gerry I’m sick, or something. Tell him to come
-back tomorrow night. I’ll surely be there.”
-
-Kitty hesitated. She didn’t know quite why. Was it because Gerry
-was British and she disapproved of the British? Or was it a deeper,
-stranger thing--a sort of foreboding? A fear, and yet an eagerness, too.
-
-“Are you sure you want me to, Sally Rose?” she asked.
-
-Sally Rose stamped her foot, or tried to, then writhed as a whalebone
-jabbed her. “Of course I do,” she cried. “Go quickly, do, and come back
-and tell me what he has to say. Then we’ll have to get the shears and
-cut me out of this thing. Oh Kitty, go now!”
-
-And so it was that Kitty Greenleaf slipped away to Charlestown’s old
-graveyard that night to meet her country’s enemy, her cousin’s exciting
-young man.
-
- * * * * *
-
-An eerie little wind was blowing through the town that night, a warm
-wind, and it had the tang of sea salt in it, and the heavy sweetness of
-the new mown hay on Bunker Hill. It ruffled Kitty’s hair and cooled her
-hot face as she walked through the empty streets, past the Two Cranes,
-the courthouse, and the meeting house with its tall white spire rising
-against the dark. Few of the windows were lighted, but down by the
-docks she could hear the familiar cry of the watch, and over the bay
-the lights of Boston shone out bright and clear. It was hard for her to
-remember that Boston was no longer a friendly town.
-
-When she reached the graveyard she felt her way along the low wall that
-protected it from the street. Shadow lay thick about the grassy mounds
-inside, and crooked elm boughs meeting overhead shut out the thin glow
-of the starlight. There was no moon.
-
-Leaving the wall she blundered forward, now and then brushing against
-one of the old headstones. She knew what they looked like well enough:
-short thick slabs of greenish slate with a death’s head at the top;
-some of reddish sandstone; beyond them the granite tombs where the
-great families lay. But she could not seem to find the path that would
-lead her through. And then, somehow she did find it, and groped her
-way to the wall on the far side with the open fields beyond. He was
-standing there, just as she knew he would be.
-
-He carried a dark lantern, half open now to let a little light shine
-through, and he wore the rough shirt and breeches of an American
-farmer. Sally Rose would have been disappointed had she hoped to see
-the scarlet coat. As he heard her footstep on the worn grass he drew
-in his breath sharply.
-
-“Ah, Sally Rose!” he whispered, and turned the lantern full upon her.
-
-“I--I’m sorry,” she stammered. “I’m her cousin Kitty. She sent me to
-tell you--”
-
-And then suddenly, to her own horror, in spite of the awe she felt for
-this handsome young stranger from the enemy camp, in spite of the need
-to keep this tryst in silence and secrecy, she began to giggle. She
-couldn’t help it when she thought of Sally Rose trapped in the stays;
-of her pretty, angry face on top of the body of a pinched white worm.
-She put both hands to her mouth and rocked and rocked with stifled
-mirth.
-
-Then she realized that he was shaking her. “Stop it, Kitty, if that’s
-your name,” he said. His voice was firm but not unkind. “Where’s Sally
-Rose? Tell me what you are laughing at? I want to laugh, too.”
-
-He had put the lantern down and was holding her by both shoulders. She
-could not see his face, and yet she knew what he looked like. She would
-always remember him, she thought, from that day when he marched past
-the Bay and Beagle and she was standing at the door. Suddenly she found
-herself telling him all about the stays and Sally Rose.
-
-He kept very quiet until she had finished, but then he did not laugh
-as she had expected him to do. When he spoke again, his voice had an
-impatient sound.
-
-“I’ve often heard the men in barracks say--the married men, that
-is--that women have no sense at all. And I guess they be right. I’m
-sorry Sally Rose did such a foolish thing. I--I wanted--tonight it
-really mattered that I should see her.”
-
-“But she will be here tomorrow night, sir,” answered Kitty, not quite
-sure how one addressed a British officer who pretended not to be a
-British officer. “It will be such a little time till then.”
-
-“A little time,” he muttered, “but much may happen in it. I may be here
-tomorrow night--but I trust she will not be.”
-
-“What do you mean?” faltered Kitty.
-
-A bough rustled a few yards off, and he flashed his lantern that way
-and listened. After a moment he spoke again in a lower tone.
-
-“How does it happen you womenfolk are still in Charlestown? I
-understood that it had been evacuated.”
-
-“Oh, it has been--nearly. But Granny says she will not abandon my
-uncle’s property here until she must. She says she will stay and try to
-keep it intact for him, if she can.”
-
-“It’s been known since April that we might burn the town any day.”
-
-“I know. But time goes on, and you do not do it, and we grow less
-afraid. And all the while our Army is growing larger and more strong.”
-
-“So is ours,” he retorted. “Three new generals arrived from England;
-martial law proclaimed in Boston yesterday. General Gage denounced you
-for rebels and traitors. If you don’t disband and go your ways in peace
-soon, we’re coming out to make you go.”
-
-“Then I suppose there will be a battle,” sighed Kitty. “I’ll never
-know why it is men can’t settle a squabble without trying to kill each
-other.”
-
-Again he flashed the lantern on her face and held it there a moment.
-Then he spoke to her from out of the dark, and his voice had a
-different sound.
-
-“You know--Kitty--I don’t think I understand it either. I never really
-wanted to be a soldier.”
-
-“A captain,” she corrected him. “A captain in the Twenty-third.”
-
-“Ah yes, a captain. I can hear the watch coming down the street, and
-we cannot leave here until he is gone. Sit down on the grass.”
-
-Indeed it was the watch, and she could hear him shouting as he turned
-the corner by the brick well. “Ten o’ the clock, this thirteenth night
-o’ June, and the weather fair. Town’s empty, Sons o’ Liberty gone to
-camp, Rogues and Tories to Boston!”
-
-The young Englishman drew her down in the shadow of a flowering quince
-tree. She sat there straight and proper and he sprawled with careless
-grace beside her, not alarmingly near.
-
-“No, I never meant to bear arms, and how I came to do it is no matter,
-but I, too, wish England and America could settle their differences
-without spilling blood. Do you think I am a coward, Kitty?”
-
-“No,” she said slowly. “I do not think that.”
-
-The voice of the watch grew louder. He must be passing very close by.
-
-“I have cursed the Americans, and yet I am not sure I was right when I
-did it. I have gone amongst them some, even been kept in gaol by them,
-and yet I can’t see that they’re any worse fellows than I. I cannot
-help thinking that I myself might have been an American. Except for a
-choice a man made some hundred and fifty years ago. The right choice,
-of course--and yet--”
-
-Kitty felt her blood stir in a different way now. She had been
-thrilling to his strangeness and his handsomeness, and the excitement
-of this secret meeting. But now she had the uncanny feel that there
-were ghosts about. Mighty ghosts, ghosts of countries coming together,
-here in the dim starlight in the shadow of Bunker Hill.
-
-“You an American? How?”
-
-He settled comfortably in the grass. “Listen, Kitty, I’ll tell you more
-of myself than I ever told Sally Rose. I do not know why, unless it
-is because you are less distractingly fair. Alas, I am afraid I like
-overwell to talk, Kitty.”
-
-“So does everyone, it seems,” murmured Kitty. “But what happened--a
-hundred and fifty years ago?”
-
-“I like to talk, I suppose, because my mother was a strolling player,
-and famous for the way she spoke her lines as well as her good looks.
-She traveled the fairs and market towns, and everywhere she was made
-welcome and a stage set up for her. My father was a West Country
-farmer, and a dull husband I think he made her. I cannot recall her
-too well. But it was through his blood that I might have been born an
-American.”
-
-The voice of the watch was fading now, down by the tannery and the
-distilleries, but Gerry Malory kept on talking.
-
-“My father would shake his head, I remember, whenever anyone mentioned
-America. ’Twas a legend in our family that once an old grandsire of
-ours, about the time I mention, had journeyed to Plymouth and watched a
-shipful of people leaving that country to settle in this one. That he
-thought for a time to go with them, but decided against it. Sometimes I
-wonder if he had gone--”
-
-The watch was coming back. They saw the light he carried. It wavered
-to and fro. Then it stopped just at the wall of the graveyard. Gerry
-Malory sprang hastily to his feet. “Kitty,” he whispered, “go back and
-tell Sally Rose--I don’t know when I’ll see her--but tell her to get
-out of Charlestown. We’re getting ready to move against the Americans.
-I don’t know when. At least by the end of the week. Some say we’re for
-Dorchester Heights, and some say Bunker Hill. Tell her to be gone. And
-you go with her--Kitty.”
-
-He vaulted over the low wall and disappeared in the darkness between
-the fields and the flats along the river. Kitty peered after him, but
-she saw only a scatter of fireflies and a light mist rising from the
-earth. She was not afraid of the watch, but he did not challenge her
-as she crept back to the Bay and Beagle. He did not know she had been
-keeping a tryst with the enemy. Well, she had been, and felt herself
-none the worse for it.
-
-She, too, was wondering what would have happened if old Grandsire
-Malory had taken that ship so many years ago.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Eleven_
-
-A GREAT SECRET
-
-
-“We been long enough getting here,” said Tom Trask, as he dragged the
-prow of a small rowboat up the shaly beach. “Are you sure this be
-Charlestown Neck, Johnny?”
-
-Tugging away at the other side of the boat, Johnny Pettengall answered
-him. “Charlestown, sure enough. Hold on. Give me your hand. I got my
-foot caught in a patch of eel grass or summ’at like.”
-
-Tom did as he was bidden, and in a moment the two were climbing up a
-steep bank into the hayfield above. Just to their left loomed a low
-hill, sharp on its eastern side. A taller, more gently rounded hill
-stood up behind it, and through the thick, fragrant grass around them
-a rail fence wound away toward higher ground. Tom could see no lighted
-windows anywhere.
-
-“You ever been here before?” he asked doubtfully.
-
-“No,” said Johnny, “but I come by here yesterday when I was aboard our
-sloop that went up to the Penny Ferry to meet the supply carts from the
-eastward. I had it pointed out to me. This is Breed’s Hill just ahead
-of us, and Bunker Hill’s behind.”
-
-“Charlestown’s said to be a village,” Tom continued to object. “I can
-see orchards, and what looks like a brick kiln over there, and by the
-smell there’s clay pits somewhere about. But I don’t see any houses at
-all.”
-
-“Town’s the other side of the hill,” Johnny reassured him. “Come on. We
-got to get to the Bay and Beagle before Ma’am Greenleaf locks up for
-the night.”
-
-Uncertain and on his guard, Tom followed his companion up the slope
-through the firefly-studded grass. More than a week now, he and the
-Newburyport lad had been sleeping at night with their feet toward the
-same campfire--when they did sleep--sharing the same ration of salt
-pork and corn meal. He had not gone back to Medford after they burned
-the _Diana_, for he and Johnny kept telling themselves that they would
-borrow a boat and row over to Charlestown to see the girls, but not
-until tonight had they been able to get away. They had not wasted their
-time, though. They had gone with the raiding parties that constantly
-scoured the islands all the way from Chelsea Neck to the deep sea. They
-had helped to burn Tory barns and steal Tory cattle. Tom felt he could
-give a good account of himself when he got back to his own company,
-but he was not so sure Captain Moore would consider it a good account.
-He was even more dubious about the attitude of the Colonel, his old
-friend, Johnny Stark. That they were old friends wouldn’t make any
-difference at all, when there was business in hand.
-
-Yes, tonight after he’d seen Miss Kitty again and stolen a kiss or
-two, he thought he’d better make for Medford, with or without young
-Pettengall. Maybe he’d better ask now just what his companion intended
-to do.
-
-At that moment they reached the crest of Breed’s Hill and paused to
-look down.
-
-“Them lights over there must be Boston,” Johnny told him. “You ever
-been there, Tom? I heard it’s the greatest city in North America. The
-best anyway.”
-
-“Didn’t know we had any other cities,” said Tom, grinning in the
-darkness.
-
-Johnny took him seriously. “Course we have,” he hastened to protest.
-“There’s New York, and Philadelphia where the Great Congress meets.
-Some others further south, I guess, and all of ’em sending help to
-Boston. There’s talk they’ll even send their soldiers here.”
-
-“Believe it when I see them,” said Tom skeptically. “But you ask me,
-and I say no, I never been to Boston. I live a sight of a ways off, you
-know, up the Merrimack.”
-
-They stood there together a moment in the starlight and cool sea wind,
-the sweetness of ripe hay.
-
-“I know,” said Johnny. “You didn’t go back there, ever--after we got
-news of Concord Fight, did you? Ain’t you got some folks waiting for
-you to come home?”
-
-Tom shrugged. “Folks is all dead,” he told Johnny. “Won’t nobody miss
-me. Well--maybe a girl or two.”
-
-Then he spoke more quickly and in a lighter tone. “But I know where I
-will be missed, I bet, and that’s back in Medford. My company was less
-than half full strength when I left, and I better be getting myself
-over there. How about you?”
-
-“I ought to be in Cambridge, I guess, with Captain Little’s company.”
-
-“Moses Little? Heard he’d been made a colonel, just like Stark.”
-
-“I don’t know. I didn’t hear.”
-
-They were starting down the hill now, toward a cluster of roofs and
-gables with a tall spire in the midst of it, toward a shadowy line of
-wharves along the shore.
-
-“I know sure enough about Johnny. I was there in the tavern when we
-chose him by a show of hands. They say some voted twice. I know I did.
-He was my neighbor up in Derryfield. I worked in his sawmill some and
-went hunting with his son Caleb. Caleb’s a right smart lad.”
-
-It was harder going down Breed’s Hill than going up, for the western
-side was as steep as the eastern, and they had to hold back. There were
-stone walls to climb, and the dew-wet grass was hard to wade through,
-but Tom scarcely noticed that. Funny, he thought, as he heard his
-tongue run on, how he never had very much to say, unless it was about
-John Stark.
-
-“Oh, Johnny’s the man for you,” he was saying. “Once when the Indians
-captured him and put him to hoeing their fields, he cut down the corn
-and left the weeds standing. When they made him run the gantlet, he
-whacked them as he went through, instead of t’other way. Kept singing
-while he ran that he’d kiss all their women. He never liked the British
-either, after he fought beside them at Quebec. ’Fore I was high as a
-rail fence, I heard him say we’d have to fight against them sometime.
-There was folks who laughed at him, but I guess they ain’t laughing
-now.”
-
-“Here we be,” said Johnny as they came to the beginning of a street
-that led past the darkened windows of Charlestown. “I got no idea where
-the place is. Likely there’ll be a horse and a dog on its sign.”
-
-But Charlestown was no very extensive metropolis, and after a little
-wandering through its dim lanes and uncobbled streets, they found the
-tavern they were seeking. The door stood open to let in the night
-breeze, and the two boys stepped uncertainly through.
-
-A few candles burning in iron holders lit the dim taproom. Clean mugs
-and glasses stood neatly on shelves behind the bar, and the long brown
-braid of tobacco leaves hanging near it swayed gently in the draft from
-the open door. Tom thought that the braid looked like a cow’s tail. He
-made up a face when he remembered the pipeful of tobacco he’d had to
-smoke the night they burned the _Diana_. Here was one customer of Ma’am
-Greenleaf’s who wouldn’t ask her to cut off a few inches for him, that
-was sure. But where was Ma’am Greenleaf? Or Kitty? Or the other girl?
-The room was empty, so far as he could see.
-
-Johnny, too, was looking around him. “Don’t see where they could have
-gone to,” he muttered, “and left the door open and the lights burning.”
-
-Just at that moment there came an anguished wail from somewhere
-overhead.
-
-“Stop it! Oh stop! You’re killing me!”
-
-“Robbers!” gasped Johnny.
-
-“Or them British devils!” cried Tom, looking desperately for the
-staircase. He finally saw it, winding up from a little alcove that led
-to the kitchen, and in a flash he and Johnny pounded up the narrow
-treads, bursting breathlessly into a long hall at the top. From a room
-on the side toward the river emerged another half-stifled cry.
-
-“In here!” shouted Tom, flinging the door open.
-
-Then he stood quite still. The sight before him was such a one as he
-had never seen by the falls of Derryfield. Johnny’s astonished gasp
-told him that his friend was as taken aback as he.
-
-Sally Rose Townsend sat precariously on the edge of a four-poster bed,
-her face flushed and distorted. Granny Greenleaf stood in front of her,
-her hands busy about the girl’s dress--except that Sally Rose wore no
-dress. Her shoulders were bare and gleamed whitely in the candlelight,
-but her entire body below her shoulders seemed to be shut up in some
-sort of cage. The cage gapped apart in the middle to show an expanse of
-some white fabric underneath. It was gripped firmly together at a point
-just above the girl’s waist, and again below.
-
-“It’s no use, Sally Rose,” Gran was muttering. “I can’t get this
-foolish contrivance apart, and there isn’t a locksmith left in town.
-I believe there’s a blacksmith, though. We’ll send Kitty to fetch the
-blacksmith. Mercy, where is Kitty? I never thought of her before. Where
-has Kitty gone?”
-
-“Quick! Cover me up, Gran!” gasped Sally Rose frantically, her breath
-short, her words not quite clear.
-
-Gran glanced backward over her shoulder. Then she turned completely
-round and faced the intruders.
-
-“Johnny Pettengall! And you--” she peered closer, “the thief who made
-off with my son’s musket! What are you doing in the bedchamber of a
-decent lass?”
-
-“We didn’t mean no harm, Ma’am Greenleaf,” explained Johnny. “We just
-came from camp to see the girls, and walked into the taproom like--like
-anybody would. Then we heard Sally Rose scream she was being killed--”
-He broke off and stared again at the bent golden head of his adored
-one. Sally Rose was beginning to weep tears of embarrassment.
-
-“I see,” replied the old lady grimly. She stood protectingly in front
-of her granddaughter. After a moment she seemed to come to a decision.
-“Well, since you’re here, you’re here. And it’s plain some male critter
-will have to help us. ’Tisn’t as if the girl weren’t decently covered
-underneath. Can you boys get her out of that contraption?”
-
-Johnny swallowed and made inarticulate sounds.
-
-“We can try,” said Tom. “What is it? What’s it made of?”
-
-“It’s a pair of stays. An outlandish pair brought from New York for
-some Tory hussy.”
-
-“My mother’s stays are laced together,” said Johnny, his embarrassment
-lessening a little. “Won’t they come off if you unlace them?”
-
-“I cut the laces--first thing I did when I came upstairs and heard her
-moaning,” snapped Gran. “But these are fastened with locks at top and
-bottom. Come and look at them.”
-
-Gran motioned the boys forward and they gingerly approached Sally Rose.
-
-Tom reached out coolly and fingered the jeweled padlock.
-
-Sally Rose sucked in her breath and closed her eyes. Johnny looked the
-other way.
-
-“I could force it apart,” said Tom thoughtfully, “but it’s too small
-for me to get a grip on. What we need is a file. You got one about the
-place somewhere?”
-
-“Does your father keep a tool chest handy?” demanded Gran of Sally Rose.
-
-“I think--in the barn--out the back way through the garden,” Sally Rose
-whispered.
-
-“Go find it, Johnny,” ordered Tom.
-
-Johnny dashed for the stairway, and the Derryfield lad walked to the
-window and stood there with his hands behind him, gazing into the
-summer night. Nothing could be done until Johnny came back, and he had
-no wish to embarrass the poor girl further by staring at her.
-
-He looked at the gable windows of the house across the street, and
-then down the narrow way that led to the market place. Then he craned
-his neck at what he saw, and felt a little smile crooking the corners
-of his mouth. Miss Catherine Greenleaf was coming hot-foot home from
-somewhere, and he guessed he’d see she got a proper welcome. He turned
-back to Gran who still stood in front of Sally Rose, tapping her
-slippered foot on the pine floor.
-
-“Think I’ll go help Johnny hunt for the file,” he said.
-
-He stepped into the taproom of the Bay and Beagle just as Kitty entered
-from the street. He had the advantage, for he had expected the meeting.
-She stopped still and gave a little gasp, but he spoke calmly enough.
-
-“You ought to stay to home when you have company, Miss Kitty,” he
-rebuked her mildly.
-
-Kitty recovered herself quickly, lifted her head, and smiled.
-
-“Perhaps I would have,” she said, “if I had known. Wherever did you
-come from?”
-
-“Sit here,” he said, and drew her down beside him on the wide ledge
-that ran under the window. “I come from Chelsea Neck on my way back to
-the camp in Medford--”
-
-“You--you’re going back to camp?” she interrupted him.
-
-He looked at her keenly. Something was the matter with her. She was all
-upset like, but trying not to let him see. He’d thought to steal a few
-kisses, but he felt pretty sure she wasn’t in the mood for kissing. Too
-bad. Well, another night, maybe. He shrugged his shoulders.
-
-“Yes, I think likely they can use me there. I been away driving cattle
-off the islands the last week or two. Met up with Johnny Pettengall and
-he told me you was here. Tonight we borrowed a boat and rowed over the
-Mystic. But I didn’t see you anywheres as I come across Breed’s Hill
-and through the town. Where you been tonight, Kitty?”
-
-She looked at him thoughtfully. “I don’t know that--but maybe I ought--”
-
-“Here ’tis!” cried Johnny triumphantly, rushing into the room with a
-small iron file in his hand. He paid no attention to Kitty. “Come on,
-Tom! Let’s go file Sally Rose!”
-
-Tom waved him away with a flippant gesture. “You go file Sally Rose,”
-he said. “She’s your girl. I got business with Kitty.” He turned his
-back on the other lad.
-
-Kitty put her hand to her mouth. “Oh, I forgot!” she gasped. “Sally
-Rose is still in the stays!”
-
-“Sure enough she is,” agreed Tom. “Johnny’s got a file, and he can
-shave the lock away. I asked you where you’d been tonight, Kit. Walking
-out with some other lad, maybe. No moon, but it’s sweet-aired and
-warm. A good courting night.”
-
-Kitty sat twisting her hands in her lap and did not answer. Johnny made
-a pitiful noise of dismay and turned reluctantly toward the staircase.
-
-“Where’s Gran?” asked Kitty.
-
-Tom smiled widely. “With Sally Rose,” he said. “Likely to stay there
-awhile, wouldn’t you think so?”
-
-“Oh, of course. She wouldn’t leave Sally Rose like that--and with
-Johnny. I--I--” she stopped again.
-
-“What’s on your mind, Kitty? Something, I can tell.”
-
-“Yes. Yes, there is. I don’t know--maybe I should--or maybe I should
-wait and tell Sally Rose first. But maybe you’re the one.”
-
-“You better tell me,” he said, trying to put strength into his voice,
-and a little tenderness, but not too much. He didn’t want her breaking
-down.
-
-“Yes,” she said after a moment, lifting her head and looking straight
-into his eyes. “Yes, I think I should probably tell you, for you’ll
-know what to do about it. If you’re going back to camp--it ought to be
-made known to the officers there.”
-
-“I aim to go tonight, not tomorrow morning,” he said. “Say what’s got
-to be said, Kitty.”
-
-“Well then, I will.” She was not looking at him now. She fixed her eyes
-on a candle burning in a sconce across the room. “Tonight I went out to
-meet--a man--who was expecting Sally Rose. You can see why she couldn’t
-go.”
-
-He grinned. “Yes,” he said. “Sally Rose ain’t geared right now to
-travel far. Who was the man? Oh--I bet I know--that redcoat she took
-such a notion to.”
-
-“Yes, it was Gerry. Captain Gerald Malory of the Twenty-third. I did
-see him, and he warned me. He told us to get out of Charlestown, for
-the British are about to strike.”
-
-Tom leaned forward. “When?” he demanded. “Where?”
-
-“Any night now. By the end of the week, surely. Here, or in Dorchester.
-Gerry wasn’t sure. But if it should be Bunker Hill--”
-
-“Bunker Hill would be a right handy site for them to hold,” muttered
-Tom. “We thought they was about ready to go. But before this we had no
-real word.”
-
-He was silent for a moment. Then he laid his hand over hers. Then he
-stood up.
-
-“Guess I better make for camp,” he said. “This is important information
-you got here. I’ll carry the news straight to Stark. He’ll be the man
-to tell. He’ll know what steps to take. You was smart, Kitty, to tell
-me. May make a big difference--to both sides. Don’t suppose you’ve got
-a horse about?”
-
-“Indeed we have,” cried Kitty, relieved that she had told her
-disturbing secret and eager to be of further help, if that were
-possible. “There are two horses in the barn that belong to Uncle Moses
-Chase. Sally Rose and I brought them from Newburyport. Gran says
-they’re eating their heads off, but she hasn’t sent them home. But
-they’re only plow horses.”
-
-“Kind I’m best used to. Like the gun, I’ll see you get it back some
-day.” He stroked the blunderbuss that now accompanied him everywhere.
-“Don’t know when I’ll see you again Kitty. Not here, likely. If the
-British are aiming to come this way, you folks will have to go.”
-
-“Oh, we will. Just as soon as I can talk to Gran and Sally Rose. Back
-to Newburyport, perhaps. Why don’t you come to see us there?”
-
-“Can’t tell. Looks like I’ll have some fighting to do first. Glad you
-took our side and told me that British fellow’s secret, instead of
-hiding his little plan for him.”
-
-A startled look came over Kitty’s face. “Why--why, I did betray Gerry,
-didn’t I? I--I never thought of it like that.”
-
-“’Course you betrayed him. You’re too good a Yankee to do aught else,
-as I can see. Good-by, Kitty.”
-
-He strode into the kitchen on his way to the garden and the barn behind
-it.
-
-The last thing he heard was a triumphant squeal from Sally Rose.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Colonel John Stark of the New Hampshire line was not in his quarters
-that night, but walking among the tents on the hillsides above Medford,
-talking with his men. After the long ride from Charlestown, Tom Trask
-felt weary and breathless when he finally caught up with his old
-neighbor.
-
-The colonel stood in a grove of oak trees where a little brook drained
-down. All along the brook the crude sailcloth tents clustered very
-thick. Campfires were burning low now. Some of the men lay sleeping on
-the ground beside them. Others were playing cards, jubilant when they
-could fling down the ace to take the queen. Stark was talking with a
-couple of grizzled veterans who had fought beside him in the Indian
-wars, but he broke off when the younger man came panting up.
-
-“Where you been, lad?” he asked, and clapped Tom on the shoulder.
-“Couldn’t believe it when Moore reported you missing. Shut up in gaol,
-maybe? I know you got some good reason for being away.”
-
-Tom could not bring himself to look at the keen blue-gray eyes and
-sharp, viselike face.
-
-“I been raiding the islands with some of Putnam’s men,” he muttered.
-“But on my way back tonight, I heard a word in Charlestown you ought to
-know.”
-
-“You got no business raiding islands, nor being in Charlestown,”
-snapped the colonel, all the warmth and friendliness gone from his
-voice. “Get back to Captain Moore, and tell him where you been. He’ll
-deal with you.” He turned away.
-
-Tom nerved himself to step forward and pluck the sleeve of Stark’s new
-blue uniform.
-
-“Colonel Stark, sir,” he stammered. “You know what I heard in
-Charlestown? It come straight from a British captain, what I heard.”
-
-The colonel turned toward him again. “What was it?” he demanded.
-
-Tom lowered his voice. No use in alarming the men. “Oh, a very great
-secret it was, told in confidence to a girl. This captain said that the
-British mean to move out of Boston before the week’s end. They mean to
-seize and fortify either Dorchester Heights or Bunker Hill.” He paused
-expectantly.
-
-John Stark uttered a mirthless ha-ha.
-
-“I know,” he said. “Seems like you be about the forty-first private to
-come up and tell me that. The word’s spread wide, from here to Jamaica
-Plain.” Then he shook his head. “Too bad you done what you done. I’d
-ha’ liked to ha’ recommended a sergeant’s knot o’ red for your shoulder
-when I sent you back to Captain Moore.”
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Twelve_
-
-THUNDER IN THE AIR
-
-
-The bells were sounding midnight in Medford Steeple, turning Tuesday
-night into Wednesday morning, when Tom Trask tied his borrowed horse
-to a nearby fence and lay down beside the dying campfire of his own
-company. After the rebuke by his colonel and another one next day by
-Captain Moore, he hardly expected John Stark to send for him within a
-day or two, but that was what came about.
-
-Stark was holding a conference with a handful of his captains in the
-little hollow between Plowed Hill and Winter Hill. It had probably been
-a green valley once, but now the young grass was all trampled away, and
-so was a field of what had started out to be Indian corn. All about
-stretched the tents and crude wooden shelters of the New Hampshire men.
-The colonel was in his shirt sleeves, and his lean face looked grimmer
-than usual. He had no smile of greeting, but he did not seem to be
-angry any more.
-
-“See you brought your horse, Tom, like I said. Was surprised when ’twas
-reported to me you owned such an animal. They’re scarcer’n hen’s teeth
-around here.”
-
-“I only borrowed him, sir,” replied Tom quickly. “Borrowed him in
-Charlestown. He belongs in Newburyport. When I can, I mean to return
-him home.”
-
-“Don’t hurry about it,” replied the colonel. “See that cart over
-there?” He pointed to a heavy wagon, empty, three young men standing
-close by. A horse was fastened between the shafts of it, but he was a
-lank, ill-favored nag and looked scarce able to go.
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Tom.
-
-“Then take your critter over to help the other one pull. General Ward
-has promised to issue some lead to us, if we send to Cambridge for it.
-That’s Peter Christie, Hugh Watts, and Asa Senter who are going with
-you. Good lads. I knew their folks in Londonderry before I was grown.
-Be as quick as you can about it, too. We haven’t got enough powder and
-ball to scare off a herd of deer, let alone the British Army.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Tom again. He waited for further instructions, but
-none were forthcoming. Colonel Stark turned back to his worried-looking
-officers. After a moment Tom led his horse over to the wagon.
-
-The Londonderry men were indeed good fellows, he soon found out, used
-to the same life as he. They had fished in the same streams and hunted
-over the same mountains, knew as little about books and high living,
-as much about how to plant corn or cut down a white pine so it would
-fall the right way. And soon they were all singing crude old-fashioned
-country songs as they drove along the winding road.
-
-Tom looked westward across the pleasant farms to the faint blue line
-of hills beyond them, and he thought of the unseen army that was
-supposed to be circling tightly all around Boston, an army of men
-like himself and the Londonderry boys. Some said it was ten thousand
-strong, and some said twenty, all the way from Medford River to Jamaica
-Plain. He thought of that other army, swaggering through the streets
-of Boston; men, he supposed, like that redcoat captain he’d brought
-home in chains a while back--and nobody knew what strength they had.
-He remembered Kitty’s warning that the British meant to strike by the
-week’s end. Well, here it was, Friday, June sixteenth, and the weather
-hotter’n the burning roof of hell. If the British were coming, they’d
-better be on their way. Maybe they were on their way. Everybody in camp
-was worn out and restless with expecting them, but nobody seemed to
-know.
-
-Just then his horse gave a neigh, laid back its ears, and stood still.
-Perforce, the other horse halted, too.
-
-“Must ha’ seen a rabbit,” said Hugh Watts, peering over the side of
-the cart into the thick grass that grew beside the road. “I don’t see
-anything but ripe strawberries, though. Think we could stop to pick a
-few?”
-
-Asa Senter shook his head. “Wouldn’t hardly dare it,” he objected.
-“Stark wants us to go and get back. By the look o’ the sun, it’s
-already six o’clock, and we still got about another mile.”
-
-Tom leaped down from the wagon. “I don’t think it was a rabbit,” he
-said. “He acts more like there was thunder in the air.”
-
-“Not a cloud anywheres that I can see,” said Peter Christie.
-
-“Don’t have to be.” Tom patted the horse’s flank and started to lead
-them ahead. “If there’s thunder somewheres over back, a critter’ll
-always know.”
-
-“Feel a bit uneasy myself,” said Asa, getting down to walk beside Tom.
-“Look! There’s a steeple and some roofs sticking up through the trees.
-Cambridge must be just ahead.”
-
-There were a sight of mighty fine houses round Cambridge Common, Tom
-thought, as they approached it. Big square mansions, some of them; some
-with gambrel roofs, mostly painted yellow and white. But he didn’t see
-any of the sort of folk who looked as if they lived in the houses;
-pretty women with flowers and jewels, or gentlemen in velvet jackets
-wearing swords. The roads that led to the Common were thronged with
-soldiers like himself, in cowhide shoes, leather breeches, and tattered
-tow-cloth shirts, with bandanas round their heads; and all too many,
-for his taste, had a short-stemmed pipe gripped between their teeth.
-They all seemed to be excited about something.
-
-He had no trouble in getting the old Hastings house pointed out to
-him, but he was unable to lead his horse anywhere near it because the
-crowd was so great. They seemed to be having some sort of muster on the
-Common, for men were drawn up in rank there, maybe a thousand or so.
-
-“What’s a-going on, Tom?” Peter demanded.
-
-“I don’t know,” said Tom, “but I aim to find out. You boys stay here
-with the cart, and I’ll go over to General Ward’s and ask. We got to go
-there anyway to get the lead.”
-
-He left his companions and made his way forward till he reached the
-rail fence before the dwelling house that had been pointed out to him
-as the headquarters of the Great American Army. A row of Lombardy
-poplar trees stood up tall and pointed behind the fence, and just as
-Tom elbowed his way to the gate, a man came out to stand before the
-wide front door.
-
-First there was a loud shouting, and cheers, and then a hush. The
-seething mass of men around Cambridge Common stood very still.
-
-The man in the doorway was not General Ward, surely, for he wore a long
-black gown with flowing sleeves and a square-topped cap such as Tom
-had never seen before, with a tassel hanging down. But two other men
-stood behind him in blue coats and three-cornered hats, and they were
-officers, right enough.
-
-However it was the black-clad man who spoke, loudly and clearly, so
-that as many as possible might hear.
-
-“I, Samuel Langdon, President of Harvard College, am here to assure
-you that the hearts of our little community go with you in your heroic
-venture. With you go the hopes of Massachusetts, and the future,
-perhaps, of our whole great country. I am here to bless your going out
-and your coming home. May His strength uphold you when your need is
-greatest, His spirit restore you when you falter, and His truth abide
-in you always. My sons, let us pray.”
-
-Tom whipped off his cap, bowed his head, and closed his eyes, aware
-that hundreds of other men were doing the same. But his throat
-tightened and he heard no more of President Langdon’s prayer. This was
-the beginning, he thought. Concord Fight hadn’t been anything to what
-this would be. At Concord Fight they had all come a-running, just the
-way men come when the word goes out that a house is afire. But this was
-like when a whole town got together by plan and moved out against the
-French or the Indians. Concord Fight had been a fight--just that--but
-this wouldn’t be a fight, what was coming now. It would be a battle. It
-would be a war.
-
-“_Dulce et decorum est pro patria mori_,” finished Dr. Langdon soberly.
-“It is sweet and fitting, my sons, to die for one’s country.”
-
-He lifted his eyes and stood silent, looking over the heads of the
-company, straight at the small square bell tower of a church across the
-way.
-
-Everyone began to talk at once, it seemed, and in the uproar Tom thrust
-open the gate that led to the Hastings house and crossed the lawn to
-the back door. Lilac trees grew close to it, and here, away from the
-glare of the sinking sun, the air was fragrant and cool. A young man in
-a trim blue coat sat at a table just inside the door.
-
-“Lead for Colonel Stark?” he replied to Tom’s question. “Yes, he’s to
-have a supply our men cut out of the organ pipes in the English church
-across the Common. Trouble is, I can’t think for the minute where ’tis
-stored. Suppose you come back tomorrow.”
-
-Tom pulled a tendril off a grape vine that grew on a trellis over the
-door and began to chew it. “Stark wants me to bring it back tonight,”
-he said.
-
-The young officer sat up and surveyed him insolently.
-
-“Stark may not know it, but there’s a war beginning,” he announced.
-
-“Yes,” agreed Tom. “There is. That’s what he wants the lead for.”
-
-Suddenly they were both laughing.
-
-“You’re right, man,” answered the young officer in a friendlier tone.
-“We’re all on edge, and it takes us different ways, I guess. But I
-still don’t know where the stuff has got to, and I’m afraid we can’t do
-anything till Prescott takes his force out of town, which he’ll do as
-soon as it’s dark enough. Come back a little after nine.”
-
-“Where’s Prescott going?” Tom asked.
-
-The officer laid his finger across his mouth. “Prescott knows--and
-nobody else has any need to. Have you got rations, lad?”
-
-“No,” said Tom, “we come empty-handed. Three others besides me.”
-
-The officer wrote rapidly on a slip of paper.
-
-“Here. Take this to the head of the Common when you hear them blow a
-bugle up there. Give it to the mess sergeant, and he’ll see you have
-some supper.”
-
-“Thank you, sir,” said Tom. He went back to where he had left his
-companions.
-
-He found them sitting along the top rail of a fence while the horses
-cropped the wayside grass.
-
-“Did you find out what’s afoot, Tom?” asked Hugh Watts eagerly.
-
-The men in the streets were thinning out, but those on the Common,
-though no longer drawn up at attention, still remained there.
-
-“Oh, there’s a war beginning, and nobody knows where the lead is,”
-said Tom, flinging himself down on the grass. “Didn’t find out a thing
-beyond that.”
-
-“We did,” said Asa. “After the man got through praying, we asked
-around. Seems Colonel Prescott’s taking out twelve hundred men with
-packs and blankets and a day’s ration. There’s a fatigue crew along,
-and picks and shovels like they mean to fortify. Nobody knows where.”
-
-“It’ll either be behind Dorchester or Charlestown,” said Tom. He
-thought fleetingly of Kitty, and the yellow-haired minx, and the
-gallant old woman. He hoped they’d got safe away, but he didn’t think
-of them long. “There’s the bugle,” he said. “Let’s go get supper.”
-
-Supper in Cambridge camp that night, for such men as did not have
-regular rations, consisted of a slab of salt fish and a hunk of hard,
-grayish bread, served with a noggin of sour beer. After the boys had
-eaten they walked about the town, down to the red brick buildings of
-the college, filled now with soldiers instead of scholars, and into the
-gray flush-board English church to see if by any chance the lead was
-still there. The church was full of Connecticut men who were using it
-for barracks, and they knew nothing about the lead at all.
-
-By nine o’clock the twilight had gathered thickly about the little
-town, and the men on the Common formed in ranks and began their march.
-Two sergeants walked ahead carrying dark lanterns, half open so as to
-throw the light behind. Then came two blue-coated officers, Colonel
-Prescott and Colonel Gridley, then the rest of the detail, made up of
-Massachusetts and Connecticut men. Tom was not surprised when he saw
-that they took the Charlestown Road.
-
-“Bet they’re going to fortify Bunker Hill,” he told his friends.
-“They’re carrying entrenchment tools. Wouldn’t bother with them if
-the British had already struck. Must be we mean to get there first
-and beat them to it. You go back to the cart, and I’ll call round at
-headquarters again. We got to get that lead and start for Winter Hill.”
-
-The town had quieted down now, and most of the men remaining there had
-gone to the houses where they were quartered, or to their tents in the
-fields beyond. Nobody would do much sleeping, Tom thought. Tense and
-nervous they all felt, trying to tell themselves they were too much
-men to be afraid--just like any flesh and blood thing when there was
-thunder in the air.
-
-Two lanterns were burning on poles set up in the yard of the Hastings
-house, but the back door was locked when Tom rapped on it. So was the
-front door, when he tried to enter there. Through the window he could
-see candles burning in prismed holders, and a group of men sitting
-around a mahogany table, some in uniforms, others in buff and gray
-and bottle green coats. One of the officers stood up to speak. He was
-heavily built, with pointed features and bright eyes, but his face had
-an unhealthy look. Must be Ward himself, thought Tom. All the Army knew
-their leader was a sick man.
-
-“When the Committee of Safety advised me this afternoon,” he began,
-“that it was deemed best for us to fortify Bunker Hill--”
-
-Just then a sentry tapped Tom on the shoulder with a gun barrel. “What
-are ye lurking about for?” he growled in a rough voice.
-
-Tom turned around sharply. The sentry was an oldish man, unshaven, with
-shaggy hair and beard.
-
-“I got business here,” he said. “I come to get Colonel Stark’s lead,
-and by the great Jehovah, I mean to do the same.”
-
-The sentry spat. “Maybe ye’re honest,” he said. “Ye look to be. But
-General Ward’s a-talking to some important men from the Congress o’
-Massachusetts right now. Couldn’t let ye in there if ye was King George
-himself, with the Queen tagging along.”
-
-“I’ll wait here till they’re through then,” insisted Tom. “I’ll wait
-right here.”
-
-The sentry shrugged. “Guess there’s no harm in that,” he muttered, and
-ambled off.
-
-Tom sat down on the grass with his back against a poplar tree and
-looked up at the stars. They were just as bright as they had been when
-he crossed Breed’s Hill a few nights ago. He wondered if tomorrow
-he’d be going back there, lugging Kitty’s old blunderbuss with him.
-Suddenly he realized that he was sleepy. The tension had eased out
-of him, even though there was still thunder in the air, the thunder
-of war about to break. A man could only keep himself keyed up for so
-long. But it wouldn’t do--now--to go--to sleep. He ought to get up and
-walk--get--up--and--walk--
-
-He opened his eyes and shook himself. How did it get to be like
-that--early morning, the light as broad as day? The sky was red and
-golden over eastward where the sea must lie. The grass around him was
-wet with dew. Smoke was curling upward from the chimneys round about,
-and in somebody’s barnyard he could hear a rooster crow. Lord forgive
-him, he’d slept all night. They’d drum him out of camp or at least give
-him forty lashes, and he deserved it, too.
-
-He stood up just as a horse and rider came spurring to the gate. The
-rider dismounted hastily and approached the front door. He was a
-trim, neat man with fair hair, but he looked feverish and ill. Almost
-immediately a pint-sized man came out to let him in. The two shook
-hands.
-
-“Ah, Elbridge, Elbridge Gerry, my good friend,” murmured the newcomer.
-“It is folly to try to seize and hold Charlestown. Yet, I must go.”
-
-“Ah no, Dr. Warren,” pleaded the smaller man. “You are too well known.
-You stayed in Boston too long, and the British know too well what a
-great pillar of strength you have been to our colonial cause. As surely
-as you go up Bunker Hill, you will be slain.”
-
-“I know,” answered the doctor tensely. “I told the friends with whom
-I dined last night that I would go up the Hill today and never come
-off again. I slept wretchedly, and my head aches, but after an hour or
-two--”
-
-“Sirs,” interrupted Tom politely, “I am sorry to bother you when you’re
-about such weighty business, but I been here since six o’clock last
-night, trying to get some lead for Colonel Stark.”
-
-Elbridge Gerry gave a snort of impatience, but Dr. Warren turned and
-smiled at the boy.
-
-“I am sorry you had the long delay, lad. I myself saw that the lead was
-dispatched to Stark late yesterday afternoon. He’ll know what to do
-with it, if anybody does. His men will have melted it into bullets by
-now, and may be shooting it at the British, for all I know.”
-
-He turned again to Mr. Gerry. “Ah, sir, ‘_Dulce decorum_,’ as all men
-know or must learn. Let us go inside, and send someone to lead my horse
-away, for he is as spent as I.”
-
-Tom walked thoughtfully back to where his comrades would still be
-asleep in the empty cart. ‘_Dulce decorum_’! He knew what the Latin
-meant, for President Langdon had translated it yesterday afternoon.
-“It is sweet and fitting to die for one’s country.” But was it, he
-wondered. The sun felt gloriously warm on his back, and made his blood
-tingle. The birds were singing in the elm trees round the Common. Kitty
-was a pretty girl, and there were other pretty girls. Sweet to die?
-That sounded like a thing old men would think of, tired old men who
-never had to go out and fight, who would die in bed at ninety-three or
-so. Still, if you had to do it, you had to do it, and he guessed he was
-as ready as he’d ever be.
-
-Over towards Charlestown he heard the boom of a heavy gun.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Thirteen_
-
-THE WORLD TURNED UPSIDE DOWN
-
-
-Gerry Malory was back in Devonshire at daybreak on that hot June
-morning, only it did not seem to him to be morning, or any special time
-of day. He stood in a low valley opening toward the sea, and there were
-little farms all around him with hedgerows in between them, and here
-and there a church spire reaching toward the sky. He was not alone,
-for a man stood beside him, a man he had never seen before, about his
-father’s age, dressed in quaint old-fashioned clothes, and carrying an
-ancient gun. The gun looked like the one that belonged to the Yankee
-that had taken him prisoner in the tavern by Ipswich Green. The man was
-shaking his head and scowling. He seemed to be angry about something.
-Gerry was ready to protest that he hadn’t done anything wrong, when
-suddenly he thought that maybe he had. Maybe he’d been poaching again.
-
-Just then the man spoke. “It’s the coming country, lad,” he said.
-“Don’t make the mistake I did in my time.”
-
-“What mistake?” Gerry murmured, but he thought he knew. His words were
-drowned out by the deep boom of thunder. Again and again the thunder
-sounded, and the echoes rolled over valley and hill and sea.
-
-His body shook like an aspen in a storm wind; his eyelids snapped wide
-apart. He was in the warehouse behind the stables near Long Wharf in
-Boston, Massachusetts, and Sergeant Higgs had him by the shoulder. The
-thunder still boomed in his ears, but the Devon landscape had gone back
-into his memory, where it probably came from. He was lying on his own
-blanket on a heap of straw, with the regiment’s goat tethered nearby.
-
-“Wake up, lad! Don’t you hear the guns?” Higgs was saying.
-
-Gerry pulled himself erect. He found it hard to come out of the dream
-that had seemed so real to him.
-
-“Yes, I hear them,” he said. “Whose guns are they?”
-
-“Whose would they be?” scoffed the sergeant. “Do you think the Yankees
-have guns like that?”
-
-“No--no.” He was wide awake now, wider awake than he wanted to be,
-he thought, for the cannonading sounded ominous and near. “What’s
-happening, Jack? Are we marching against them? Have we attacked--or
-they?”
-
-“Can’t tell yet,” said Sergeant Higgs. “All we know is, we hear
-gunfire. Lieutenant Apthorp has gone to headquarters to find out. You
-better get some breakfast. It’s best we be ready for anything.”
-
-In the cobbled square outside, the men of the Twenty-third had built
-their usual cookfire, just as they did every morning, and gathered
-round it, salt pork spitted on bayonets and stale bread handed round by
-the mess sergeant. Lieutenant Apthorp did not come back, and Lieutenant
-Julian went to see what was keeping him. The cannonading went on. It
-was coming from the ships in the river beyond the North End, most of
-the men agreed. Maybe the Yankees had got together some sort of raft
-and were moving by water against Boston. The Twenty-third seemed more
-amused than frightened at this suggestion.
-
-And then, without any official announcement being made, the word was
-passed from mouth to mouth, and everybody knew.
-
-The Yankees had taken the hills above Charlestown in the night, and
-built some sort of entrenchment there. They were being fired at from
-three sides by the British men-o’-war, but it began to seem as if this
-would not be enough to dislodge them, as if a force would have to go
-out and drive them from the hill.
-
-In the town behind him Gerry could hear the rattle of artillery
-carriages, the thud of horses’ hoofs as the dragoons galloped here and
-there. General Gage had called for his officers to meet at the Province
-House, and some of the men went off to hover about that grim, narrow
-structure and get the word as soon as it was handed down.
-
-Gerry did not go to the Province House. He went to the edge of the
-wharf and sat there, dangling his legs over the side. The sun was
-getting higher and hotter, and he looked up at the sun, and then down
-at the thick grayish water lapping silently round the piers below. He
-thought about his dream, and he thought about the girl called Kitty,
-who was not so distractingly fair as Sally Rose, and wondered if she
-had got safe away. He thought about Captain Blakeslee lying dead under
-the locust tree. True, he had never wanted to be a soldier, but once he
-became one, he’d expected to bear his part well. Once he’d have been
-eager to march out when he heard firing, but he was none so eager now.
-Maybe he was afraid. Maybe that was a bad omen. He’d heard around the
-campfire that men who were going into their last battle often felt that
-way. If only he could forget the dream....
-
-The sounds of confusion in the town behind him seemed to increase and
-grow. Now that he thought of it, none of the usual daily noises could
-be heard: not the tapping of the carpenters’ hammers, nor the thumping
-of handlooms, nor the creak of wooden machinery. The little Negro
-boys were nowhere about with their cries of “Sweep oh! Sweep oh!” He
-suspected that the town of Boston would do no work this day. Everywhere
-men were shouting and bells were ringing: Christ’s Church with its
-royal peal, the North Church with its sour note, and half a dozen more.
-Just as usual, the breeze that blew over Long Wharf smelled of fish and
-whale oil and the nearby stables, of tar, and spice, and wood smoke,
-but now, or did he imagine it, it had an acrid brimstone tang.
-
-At eleven the men came trooping back, and the word was out. Every man
-knew what was to be the order of his day.
-
-At half past eleven the men of Gerry’s company paraded on the Common,
-splendid in scarlet and white and brass, equipped with full kit,
-blankets, and three days’ rations, and drawn up beside them were
-fifteen hundred more. The ships’ guns still roared away, and every now
-and then a terrible blast let go from the battery on Copp’s Hill.
-
-“They say it’s only a handful of farmers,” muttered Jack Higgs. “I’d
-not think they could stand such punishment for long.”
-
-Gerry looked at Boston Common, the rambling field that had become so
-familiar to him in the past year: the crooked cowpaths, and the little
-pond, and the thick clumps of juniper and steeplebush, so handy to come
-upon when you were walking in the moonlight with a girl; the gravel
-strip where the officers still raced their horses, in spite of all the
-town fathers could do. He looked at the gabled mansions and quaint,
-crooked houses round, as if he never expected to see them any more.
-
-“The Yankees’ll take more punishment than you’d think for,” he said.
-
-Once on the water, the barges from Long Wharf joined with the barges
-from the North Battery, twenty-eight of them moving in two long
-parallel lines, filled with scarlet-coated men. In the leading boats
-were two polished brass field pieces, and the noonday sun struck
-everywhere on colorful banners and gleaming arms. For the Tories in
-Boston, it must have been a splendid sight, but Gerry turned his eyes
-toward the Charlestown peninsula as the troops were rowed across the
-blue bay.
-
-Smoke and flame and awful sound kept pouring forth from the great guns
-of the fleet--the _Somerset_, the _Falcon_, the _Lively_. Dimly through
-the barrage he could see the little village where he had gone drinking
-at the Bay and Beagle and courting in the graveyard under the spring
-moon. On the hill above it, grown up overnight like a mushroom, stood
-a small square earthworks, silent, except for one erratic cannon that
-spoke now and then. Black dots of men moved about the earthworks, but
-no columns issued forth drawn up in battle array, no reinforcements
-poured in from any side.
-
-Gerry’s spirits rose and he cleared his throat. “Is that,” he asked the
-sergeant, “the great fortification we’re all ordered out to tear down?”
-
-The sergeant laughed grimly. “Don’t look very fearsome, does it?” he
-agreed. “But after the way they run us back through Lexington, I don’t
-trust them devils.”
-
-“And I thought it was Bunker Hill instead of Breed’s they’d be likely
-to fortify,” went on Gerry. “That’s how we would have chosen. But
-that’s Bunker Hill, standing up behind there, bare as a plate. The
-little dugout is on Breed’s Hill, below.”
-
-“Breed’s or Bunker makes no difference now,” said Sergeant Higgs. “Keep
-your cartridges dry in the landing. We’re headed in towards shore.”
-
-A few minutes later they were all drawn up in a low-lying field where
-Charlestown peninsula extended, pear-shaped, into the sea. Gerry found
-himself in the front line, far to the right, with the light infantry of
-the Twenty-third and the King’s Own. To the left stood the grenadiers,
-and behind him the Fifty-second and the Fifth. He was feeling cheerful
-and brave now, and as safe as London Tower. It reassured him even more
-when the order came to break ranks and dine on the rations in their
-knapsacks before going farther along.
-
-Sprawled in the hot sun, chewing his beef and biscuit, he eyed the
-landscape round him: the green, sloping fields, some cocked hay, and
-some standing grass; the swamp and brick kilns to the left; Breed’s
-Hill above, where the black dots still crawled around the tiny redoubt.
-He talked with the other men.
-
-All the young lads, he found, were in their glory that the attack was
-to be made straight on, that this detachment of the British Army would
-pound forward full force and set the Americans running, or beat them
-down into their native clay. But the old wise sergeants shook their
-heads and said it was a pity Gage hadn’t ordered them to land at the
-Neck. They could have bottled up the Yankees in Charlestown then, and
-starved them out, and not had to fire a shot.
-
-No, somebody else said, for to do that would have meant sending a force
-between two wings of its enemy, and that was a tactic frowned upon long
-before Caesar marched through Gaul. In the end they all agreed that
-they were well enough satisfied with the way things had fallen out.
-They’d march up that hill in double-quick time, drive the cowardly
-Yankees out of their burrow, and be back drinking beer in Boston before
-the sun went down.
-
-They were beginning to take out packs of dog-eared playing cards when
-the word passed among them that reinforcements were disembarking on the
-fields to the left; that Howe had sent for the reinforcements because
-the Americans were bringing in more troops, the earthworks had been
-extended far to the left, and he didn’t like the looks of things at all.
-
-Gerry began to put his uneaten food away in his knapsack. There wasn’t
-as much room in it as there should have been, because at the last
-moment he had decided to stuff in the rough shirt and breeches he wore
-when he went about the Yankee countryside. He smiled now, as he saw
-them there. Didn’t think he’d have a need for them, but you never know.
-Just then the bugles sounded and the officers called them to attention.
-Like one man the assembled army was on its feet. Gerry could see the
-newly landed troops drawn up away to the left, facing the redoubt.
-
-General Howe, dark, florid and heavily built, stood forth and spoke to
-his men.
-
-“Gentlemen, I am very happy to have the honor of commanding so fine
-a body.... I do not doubt that you will behave like Englishmen and
-as becometh good soldiers. If the enemy will not come from their
-entrenchments, we must drive them out, otherwise the town of Boston
-will be set on fire by them.... I shall not desire one of you to go a
-step further than where I go at your head. Remember, gentlemen, we have
-no recourse, if we lose Boston, but to go on board our ships ... which
-will be very disagreeable to us all.”
-
-General Howe stepped a little aside and stood smiling proudly round
-him, his hand on his sword. The troops stood tensely, bayonets in hand,
-waiting the order to move ahead. The cannonading from the ships was
-so steady that they did not hear it any more, but the guns of Boston
-now set up an iron clamor that seemed fit to shake the earth. Now the
-artillery rolled toward the redoubt.
-
-Gerry looked up at the serene blue sky, at a cluster of apple trees a
-little way ahead. There were trees like that on his father’s farm in
-Devon, and he wondered if he’d ever again see them growing there. He
-looked at the hill where spouts of dust shot upward as heavy balls hit
-the turf of the redoubt. Suppose they did have to board their ships
-and sail away? Maybe he wouldn’t sail away, maybe he’d go and find
-blue-eyed Kitty. Maybe he would....
-
-The artillery seemed to have slowed and faltered, bogged down in the
-miry earth at the swamp edge, crushing the blue flag lilies as it moved
-forward again. At last came the order the scarlet host had been waiting
-for.
-
-Gerry gripped his bayonet and stepped out as he had been trained to do.
-A rippling field of buttercups and daisies lay ahead, and beyond it a
-rail fence, but he saw no likely danger there. He glanced toward the
-redoubt where General Pigot was to lead the attack. Howe would march on
-the rail fence that joined a stone wall running to the waterside. Then
-Howe’s regiments and the light infantry would shatter the Yankees’ left
-and sweep across it, swinging inland to overwhelm the earthworks from
-behind. It seemed like an unbeatable plan.
-
-The light infantry, men from the Welsh Fusileers and the King’s Own
-forged steadily ahead--but not easily. The day was growing hotter. What
-with ammunition, food, blankets, and firelocks, they were weighted
-down a hundred pounds to a man. Gerry felt the sweat burst out on his
-face. He wished he had a drink. He wished he could run his finger under
-the stiff leather stock that gripped his throat. He wished he could
-rip off his beaver hat. Clouds of black smoke with white under-edges
-were billowing up to the west of Breed’s Hill. Looked like Charlestown
-Village was afire. Well, Admiral Graves had wanted to burn it long ago.
-
-He waded through the thick grass, almost to his knees, then out on a
-muddy strip of beach littered with driftwood and small dead creatures
-of the sea. Here they halted briefly to re-form.
-
-Grouped now in columns of fours, the Welsh Fusileers in the lead, the
-light infantry advanced along the narrow strip of shore. They drew
-close to the rough fieldstone wall. That it had been hastily thrown up,
-Gerry could see now. Undoubtably there would be Yankees behind it. He
-half lifted his bayonet. They drew nearer and nearer. They were ready
-to deploy and charge, when the blast came.
-
-The low stone wall seemed to leap forth at them in a searing torrent of
-fire. Like corn before the scythe, the men on both sides of him went
-down. More from shock than anything else. Gerry fell on his knees, but
-he lifted his gun and fired once from there. Where the bullet went, he
-never knew. Crouched in the foul-smelling mud, he tried to load again.
-Wounded men lay all around him. His own company seemed to be cut to
-pieces, but the King’s Own tried to form a charge and went streaming
-through. Again the tide of flame leaped forward. The scarlet line,
-broken in many places, reeled back. Again the officers rallied what was
-left of them, and again the charge came on. The whole world seemed to
-be dissolved in blood and fire, the cries of the wounded, the shouts of
-the officers, and the steady roar of the guns upon the hill.
-
-He tried to pull himself upright, but just then he felt a terrible
-blow against his head. His ears rang. Stars and circles swam before
-his eyes, orange, green, and rainbow-hued. He seemed to be no longer a
-living thing, only one huge dull pain sinking into darkness.
-
-He did not know how long it was before the darkness streamed past him
-and away, and he saw the stone wall abristle with smoking gun barrels.
-He lifted his head from the mud and gazed in the other direction.
-To his horror he saw the scarlet backs of his comrades fleeing
-helter-skelter toward the barges by the shore. He lay all alone, in the
-midst of the dying and the dead. One man was calling for a drink of
-water, and another man gasped out a prayer. Shattered muskets, ripped
-knapsacks, and the discarded wigs of the officers littered the beach
-about him.
-
-His head throbbed and seemed to be swelling larger every minute, big as
-the sun itself, the sun that still glared down from the pitiless blue
-sky. He couldn’t think clear, and he knew he’d have to think clear, if
-he ever got out of this alive.
-
-Finally he lifted up his head and saw a steepening of the river bank
-just ahead of him that made a sort of bluff he could try to crawl
-under. Inch by inch, painfully, he dragged himself among the fallen
-men. Most of them lay quiet now and were not troubled by his passage
-through. They would never be troubled by anything any more. They had
-not beaten the Americans, but they would never board the ships and sail
-away.
-
-Once under the safety of the bluff, he lay there and sipped a little of
-the brackish water which he scooped up in his hands. There was blood on
-his uniform, and blood was trickling down from somewhere over his left
-ear, but he did not put his hand up. He did not want to know how badly
-he was hurt--not right now.
-
-And yet, his own wound wasn’t the worst of it. The worst of it was the
-sight of the British Army running away. Running to the barges, fleeing
-back to Boston, beaten almost to destruction by a mob of American
-farmers at a stone wall and an earthworks on a hill! What was that old
-tune the band played sometimes on parade? _The World Turned Upside
-Down!_
-
-What would happen to him, he wondered, when the Yankees found him lying
-here? They didn’t have bayonets, most of them, so they couldn’t run him
-through, but there were other ways to kill a man.
-
-But maybe they wouldn’t, all of them, kill a wounded man, any more than
-he would. He’d gone among them, traveled through their towns, and found
-there men no worse than he. And at that he remembered the knapsack and
-the clothing in it. He reached down; yes, it still hung at his side.
-
-Painfully, haltingly, he pulled off the ruined uniform, the muddy
-scarlet and blood-stained white. Then he lay there naked in the mud a
-little while, under the bluff of sun-baked clay, till he had gathered
-strength enough to pull on the country clothes, the garb of most of the
-men behind the American line.
-
-“Maybe--if they find me--they’ll think I’m one of theirs,” he muttered,
-“take me in with their own wounded and bind my head up--and never
-know.” He managed a weak smile. The last prank he’d ever play on the
-Yankees, he guessed, but it was worth a try.
-
-Somehow he managed to crawl up the bank and out on the bloody grass. He
-lifted his eyes toward the redoubt. Could he believe what he saw? It
-had redcoats swarming all over it, their bayonets drawn, struggling on
-the parapet with the Americans, leaping down on those below.
-
-“So the lads have come back,” he whispered faintly. “We aren’t beaten
-after all. I should have known it couldn’t be--not Howe and Pigot! Not
-the Fusileers and the King’s Own.”
-
-He tried to get to his feet, but he couldn’t because his head was too
-big and heavy. His head was as big as the whole world. His head was
-drifting away on a tide of darkness that swept by.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Fourteen_
-
-THE YOUNG MAY DIE
-
-
-Kitty did not know what time it was or how long she had been asleep.
-She only knew that she was wide awake now, somewhere in the empty black
-middle of the night, and she could hear Gran’s voice from the taproom
-below.
-
-“You may be an officer, young man,” Gran was saying, “furthermore,
-you may have come all the way up here from Connecticut, but I’m not
-impressed with that. I’m not one of your soldiery, nor obliged to take
-your orders. This is my son-in-law’s house, and the taxes upon it paid.
-I mean to stay here till he orders me from it.”
-
-Kitty leaped out of bed and ran to the head of the stairs where she
-could hear better.
-
-“It’s only for your own safety, Ma’am,” a harassed young voice was
-explaining. “There’s going to be all hell to pay here tomorrow morning.”
-
-“So you’ve been telling me,” went on Gran calmly, “and in that case,
-I’d better get some sleep to be ready for it. Good night, young man.”
-
-Kitty heard the slamming of the front door. She crept downstairs.
-
-Gran was methodically taking all the best silverware out of the chest
-and wrapping each piece separately in flannel.
-
-“What’s the matter, Gran?” asked Kitty. She drew her flimsy nightrail
-around her and stood there shivering.
-
-Gran went on sorting out porringers and teaspoons. “There’s going to be
-trouble, child,” she said. “The town’s full of soldiers, and there’s
-more soldiers digging some sort of burrow above us on the hill. They
-say by daylight we can expect shooting.”
-
-“Are they British soldiers?” asked Kitty. After all, Gerry Malory had
-warned her, and she had passed the message on, telling Gran it was
-something she had heard in the street. Gran had scoffed at the idea,
-refused to be driven away.
-
-“British! No! They be still drinking and gambling in Boston, and like
-to stay there till the blast of Gabriel’s horn, if you ask me. These
-soldiers are our own lads, and they sent the word about that since
-they’ve entrenched themselves on a hill the British wanted, they look
-for a battle.”
-
-“If--if there is a battle, what will we do?” asked Kitty.
-
-“We’ll do what is needed,” said Gran shortly. “Right now I want you to
-wake Sally Rose. Put on your oldest dresses and good stout shoes. No
-flounces and toothpick heels, mind. Pick up whatever valuables you have
-and bring them to me.”
-
-Sally Rose, still sleepy-eyed, was enchanted at the prospect of
-adventure. She brought a whole little chest full of trinkets when they
-returned to the kitchen. Kitty had only her mother’s cameo brooch, and
-she pinned that inside her bodice. Gran held out a willow basket full
-of the carefully wrapped silver.
-
-“You girls take this down to the graveyard and bury it,” she ordered.
-“If the British come pouring in here tomorrow morning, looking for
-what they can find, new-turned earth in a graveyard will occasion no
-comment.” Across the lid of the basket she laid a wooden shovel.
-
-Carrying the basket between them, the girls picked their way through
-the town in the warm, dim starlight. Here and there they passed by
-little groups of men who seemed to be patrolling the streets, who
-looked at them curiously but uttered no challenge. Lights were burning
-across the river in Boston and on the masts of the _Somerset_ lying
-at anchor in mid-channel. Cries of “All’s Well!” sounded faintly at
-intervals from its decks and from the sentries in the town beyond it.
-
-There were no lights or sentries apparent on Bunker Hill, nor yet on
-Breed’s, when they looked that way, but both hillsides seemed to be
-alive with moving masses of shadow; a low hum rose above them like the
-swarming of many hives of bees. Now and then there was a tiny flash of
-light, or a clang as a shovel hit against stone.
-
-Kitty dug a shallow pit under the flowering quince tree where she had
-talked with Gerry Malory, and Sally Rose helped to cover it over, once
-the silver and her own treasures lay safe inside. Then they hurried
-back to the Bay and Beagle. Gran was trotting about the kitchen,
-setting many pans of bread to rise, pulling down hams from the rafters,
-heating the bake ovens red hot.
-
-“Get to work, girls,” she said as they came in, handing Kitty a carving
-knife and Sally Rose a wooden spoon. “Can’t tell how many men we may
-have to feed tomorrow.”
-
-When they finished the preparations she considered necessary, they sank
-down exhausted on benches drawn to the oak table. Kitty noticed that
-the hands of the tall old clock pointed to a quarter past three.
-
-“My soul and body,” said Gran, “I thought I’d learned to do without it,
-but a cup of tea would certainly taste good to me right now.”
-
-Sally Rose smiled and her eyes sparkled in the candlelight. “I can
-get you tea, Gran,” she said. “Father has some hidden away. He says
-he keeps it for times of need among womenfolk. ’Twas bought long ago
-before tea-tax time. Put the kettle on, Kitty.”
-
-She went flying into the taproom to the secret cache behind the bar. A
-little later they sat down again with steaming cups before them.
-
-But Gran’s face was sober, and she spoke more gently than was her wont
-to do. “I hope that whatever happens tomorrow,” she said, holding her
-teacup in her hand, not tasting the fragrant liquid, “you girls will
-behave in a fitting manner, though it may not be easy. There is bound
-to be much danger about in a battle, and many horrible sights to be
-seen. When the soldiers came here first and warned us to go away, I
-thought I would do as they advised me. And then I remembered an old
-great-grandmother of mine. She lived in a lonely garrison and when the
-Indians attacked her home, she did not run away.”
-
-“What did she do?” asked Sally Rose, her eyes wide.
-
-“She poured boiling water out of an upstairs window and scalded the
-varmints,” snapped Gran, with all her usual severity. “And if she could
-do that, it came to me that I could stay here and do whatever it was
-needful I should do.”
-
-“Do you think to pour hot water on the British, Gran?” asked Kitty,
-trying to suppress a giggle.
-
-“Times change,” said Gran, her eyes fixed on the dwindling darkness
-outside, on the tall hollyhock stems becoming visible in the garden,
-“and that’s not what will be expected of us, most likely. Only--it
-comes to me--that sometime, a good many years from now, all of us, yes,
-even you, Sally Rose, will be great-grandmothers, too.”
-
-“With gray hair?” asked Sally Rose plaintively.
-
-“With gray hair--or no hair at all,” continued Gran. “And then, at that
-time, we wouldn’t want the young folk of our blood to say we were
-afraid and ran away when the time of danger came.”
-
-She looked challengingly at the girls.
-
-“No,” said Kitty soberly. “We wouldn’t want that. But what will we do,
-Gran?”
-
-“Can’t tell for certain. But the way I see it, we keep a victualling
-house, and when there’s a lull in the fight, if a fight there be, the
-men will want food and drink. We’ll be here to provide it for them. All
-we have to do is the thing we do every day--”
-
-A low boom like thunder, and yet sharper and more explosive than
-thunder, rolled and echoed in the direction of Morton’s Point. A moment
-later the windows rattled and the tavern shook.
-
-Gran covered her ears and closed her eyes. “Merciful heavens, it’s
-begun! I’ll have to eat my fine words now! Under the table, Kitty,
-Sally Rose!”
-
-In a moment they were huddled together on the floor, with the spreading
-trestles round them and the stout oak planks above. The blast was
-followed by a silence, and in the silence they heard a derisive
-shouting from the crest of Breed’s Hill.
-
-“Sounds like the lads up there had suffered no harm from it,” murmured
-Gran, her voice a little steadier now. “That was a cannon shot, I
-think; most likely from one of their ships. I really doubt they’ll come
-ashore. Perhaps it would be safe--”
-
-The cannon boomed again. Now another cannon spoke out, a little to the
-left. Then another. There were no silences any more, only the steady
-booming, and with every fourth or fifth boom, the tavern shook. One
-after another the windowpanes began to shatter. Once they heard a great
-crash in the street.
-
-They did not speak to each other, for no human voice could penetrate
-the din. Kitty watched a streak of sunlight slowly widen and move
-across the floor. It told her that time was passing, and that this was
-a clear, bright day.
-
-After awhile a lull did come, and the cannonading died out into
-silence. The silence was broken by a heavy knocking on the street door.
-
-Gran’s eyes snapped and her face hardened. “’Pon my soul, no stranger
-is going to catch me hiding under a table, cannon or no cannon--nor my
-granddaughters, either. Kitty, go and see what’s wanted.”
-
-She got to her feet and smoothed her apron. Sally Rose followed her and
-stood still, her eyes wide with fright, her lips trembling. Kitty went
-to open the door.
-
-A gnarled old man stood there, holding a wooden bucket in each hand.
-He pointed to the tavern sign and then opened his mouth in a toothless
-grin.
-
-“Lass,” he inquired, “are ye doing business today?”
-
-“Yes,” said Kitty steadily. “I guess we are.”
-
-“Good. Will ye fill these pails with water for me. The lads has need of
-it on the Hill.”
-
-“Come in,” said Kitty. She took the two pails through the kitchen to
-the garden well. When she returned with them, there were half a dozen
-other men waiting, and they wanted water, too.
-
-The guns began again with a new fury. Gran and Sally Rose had stepped
-into the garden, and when Kitty returned there after the men had gone,
-she found them staring up the hill.
-
-A small, square earthworks stood on the green crest that had been bare
-at twilight. Small figures of men were working all around it, digging
-up turf, building it higher, stringing a wooden fence in front. Other
-men passed to and fro over Bunker Hill and the highroad that led to
-the Neck. Every now and then a column of dust shot skyward as a cannon
-ball plowed into the earth. But the men who were busy about the
-earthworks paid no attention to the cannon balls.
-
-Now and then there would be a moment’s pause in the firing, and that
-gave Gran and the girls a chance to speak to one another.
-
-“What’s going on up there, and where are the British?” demanded Gran.
-“Did those water boys bring you any news, Kitty?”
-
-“It’s just as you thought,” said Kitty hurriedly, knowing that the guns
-might interrupt her at any moment. “The ships are firing at us from all
-three sides. The lookouts say there’s a commotion in Boston, but it’s
-too early to tell yet what they mean to do. They say there are about
-a hundred people left here in the town, but there’s such heavy firing
-across the Neck they doubt that we can get away.”
-
-Just then there came a hail from the kitchen doorway, where a man stood
-with two empty water buckets. Gran went to talk with him herself, this
-time. When he had gone, she spoke her mind to the girls.
-
-“Nobody up there’s got time to be hungry, it seems, and they’ve plenty
-of strong drink amongst them, but two of their great hogsheads have
-been shot open, and the need’s for water. Sally Rose, you stay by the
-windlass and keep turning. Kitty, you carry the pails to the taproom to
-save the men the journey out here. Fill every tub and bucket and keep
-them full. I’m going to the roof to see for myself whatever there is to
-be seen.”
-
-It seemed to the two girls that the morning would last forever, as the
-sun toiled upward toward noon. Sally Rose ground at the windlass and
-swung the heavy buckets over the stone curb where Kitty’s hand received
-them and carried them inside. Round and round, back and forth, round
-and round, less like women of flesh and blood than like two parts of
-some wooden machine. They did not talk much together. They had not the
-breath for it, nor very much to say. Now and then Kitty looked up the
-hill to the earthworks, the tiny, gallant redoubt. The men were still
-toiling to reinforce it, and a man in a blue coat strolled fearlessly
-along the parapet as if he were telling them what to do.
-
-It was about noon by the kitchen clock when Gran came down stairs. Her
-face was grim. “Girls,” she said tensely, “leave your work and come
-with me. I want you to see a shameful sight. I want you to see the
-King’s soldiers coming out with guns against the King’s loyal people.”
-
-The Bay and Beagle was a square-built house of red brick, three stories
-tall, with a white railing about its flat roof. Gran led the girls to
-the side facing Boston, half a mile away. Kitty gripped the rail with
-both hands, though she would have liked to put them in her ears, the
-cannonading had become so much louder, the spaces between the blasts
-so brief and few. Sunlight sparkled on the blue river and on the three
-great ships pouring forth constant broadsides of fire. Flames leaped
-forth from Copp’s Hill, from floating batteries in the ferry way, and
-over all hung a mist of grayish white smoke.
-
-“Look there,” hissed Gran during a quiet interval, quiet except for
-the jangling bells of Boston that were doing their best to make their
-steeples rock.
-
-Kitty and Sally Rose let their glances follow her pointing finger,
-to the docks that lined the opposite shore. Two lines of barges were
-moving out on the full tide, one from Long Wharf, and one from the
-North Battery. They rode low in the water, being full to the gunwhales
-with soldiers clad in white and vivid scarlet. The sunlight gleamed on
-the steel of bayonets, on the brass mountings of the great black guns.
-It was a gorgeous and yet a terrible sight.
-
-All Boston seemed to go mad with the frantic clamor of bells. Shouts
-and cheers rose from its crooked streets that wandered up hill and
-down, and somewhere a band was playing. Its rooftops were black with
-tiny figures who had climbed there to watch the King’s troops move
-against the King’s people who felt they had always been loyal to
-him--so far.
-
-When the two rows of barges reached midstream they drew near to each
-other and then moved forward in two long lines, side by side, like
-pairs of marching men. They seemed to be headed for Moulton’s Point.
-Kitty watched them till they passed out of sight around a curve of the
-shore. Then she turned to face Gran and Sally Rose.
-
-“Do--do you think they’re going to land?” she asked.
-
-“Sakes alive, child,” answered Gran, “I don’t know what they mean to
-do, but we’ll go back downstairs and see if we can find out. There are
-sure to be more men coming after water.” She glanced up the hill toward
-the redoubt. Only a few figures moved about it now, but clouds of dust
-rose everywhere, thrown up by the impact of cannon balls, and the smoke
-from the guns themselves drifted that way. At that moment a handful of
-men appeared on the top of Bunker Hill, coming from the direction of
-the Neck. More men followed them, and still more. In orderly fashion
-they marched toward the redoubt where they were greeted with a faint
-cheering.
-
-“Looks like more of our lads had come to help,” said Gran, as she led
-them down the narrow stairs and into the taproom. Just as she had
-suspected, three water carriers waited there, and all the pails and
-tubs were empty.
-
-“Gran,” whispered Sally Rose, “I--I just don’t think I can turn that
-windlass any more.”
-
-Gran looked at her keenly. “It makes the arms ache, I know,” she said
-with surprising sympathy. “Kitty, you go to the well for a while, and
-let Sally Rose carry the buckets.”
-
-And thus their morning chores began all over again, though it was
-already early afternoon.
-
-At the end of her third trip between well and taproom, Sally Rose
-stopped to talk to Kitty in one of the rare intervals when no gun was
-going off.
-
-“Kit,” she said wanly, “I--I’m frightened, Kit. Do you think Gerry’s
-coming in one of those barges? Do you think he’ll have to shoot at our
-lads on the Hill? Do you think he might shoot at me?”
-
-Kitty had been wondering almost the same thing, but she would not tell
-her cousin so.
-
-“If you’re going to think about a lad at a time like this,” she said,
-“why don’t you think of Johnny? You’ve gone about with Johnny for a
-long time, Sally Rose, and Johnny’s on our side. Don’t you wonder if
-maybe he isn’t up there--in that earthworks on the Hill? Right there in
-the thick of the cannon balls?”
-
-“Well, I do wonder about Johnny,” she answered plaintively, “and about
-Dick, even about that New Hampshire boy with no manners--Tom what’s his
-name.”
-
-Kitty, too, had wondered about Tom, but not too much. There was a cold
-certainty in her heart that Tom Trask would be in the thick of whatever
-fighting there was to come. She knew that as well as if she could see
-him there.
-
-“Girls!” called Gran’s voice from the kitchen door. “Girls! come here
-to me!”
-
-Kitty let go the windlass suddenly, and the handle spun creaking round.
-Sally Rose set down her pail.
-
-Just then there was a loud whine somewhere overhead, and then a whoosh,
-a shower of splinters about them, and a roaring wind that flung them
-hard against the turf. For a moment they lay there, not daring to move.
-The smell of burning powder filled the air. Then another roaring wind
-went by, but not so close, and higher overhead.
-
-Kitty sat up. A cannon ball was bouncing across the grassy yard of the
-house next door. It had passed through the garden and shattered the
-pointed roof of the well-house where they stood. She reached out and
-grasped Sally Rose by the shoulder.
-
-“Quick,” she gasped. “Let’s get inside. They’re firing into the town,
-not just at the earthworks any more.”
-
-Racing into the taproom, they found Gran in talk with a tall man who
-wore an officer’s coat and three-cornered hat and did not carry a pail.
-
-“Girls,” said Gran, her voice frighteningly calm, “the British have
-landed, and ’tis plain they mean to charge the Hill. Whether they can
-take it or not, we don’t know. But they’re shooting straight into
-Charlestown now, iron balls and iron cases full of burning trash. The
-town’ll soon be in flames over our heads. ’Tis time to leave. There’s
-nothing more we can do.”
-
-A moment later they were in the street outside, trailing along after
-a sorry-looking group of men and women, poor folk, mostly, who had
-stayed in town in spite of all the warnings of danger, because they had
-nowhere else to go.
-
-“I’m glad,” murmured Gran as they plodded over the cobblestones, their
-eyelids smarting and their throats choked with the thick smokiness that
-seemed to be flooding over the whole world, “I’m glad we sent Timothy
-to Cambridge, two days back--Timothy and that poor horse, too. At
-least, we’re leaving no living thing behind to burn.”
-
-Kitty thought of all the living things who were left to their fate in
-that tiny fortress on the Hill.
-
-Iron shot blasted the roofs about them, and balls of living flame burst
-in the street. All along their way the old wooden houses were beginning
-to catch fire. Just as they passed out of town and into the green
-country at the rear of Bunker Hill, Kitty looked back. Clouds of black
-smoke billowed upward from the docks, the warehouses, the dwellings,
-the shops in the market square. The church steeple lifted up one
-soaring pyramid of fire.
-
-Her eyes hurt suddenly with tears that did not come from the smoke.
-
-“Come away, child,” said Gran, putting her arm about the girl’s
-shoulders, using her other hand to guide the half-blinded Sally Rose.
-
-How far they had gone before the little procession came to a halt, she
-did not know, but she did know they toiled a long way down the dusty
-road, constantly shelled by the heavy guns of the ships.
-
-When they did stop, it was in the front dooryard of a little tavern,
-The Sign of the Sun. The raggle-taggle company scattered themselves
-about on the grass, but Gran led the girls inside.
-
-“They say the firing’s too heavy for us to cross the Neck and flee
-inland,” she explained, “but ’tis to this place they are bringing the
-wounded men. Perhaps we can help here.”
-
-The taproom they entered was not unlike the taproom at the Bay and
-Beagle, but tables and benches had been moved back to clear the floor.
-Some dozen men in tattered shirts and bloody breeches were lying on the
-wide pine boards. Some moaned, and some lay very still. Three women
-worked among them, and a man in a buff coat, a doctor, most like, knelt
-by one soldier probing a wounded knee.
-
-Gran looked around her. “There’s water and bandages on the counter over
-there,” she said. “Get to work, Kitty, Sally Rose.”
-
-If the morning had seemed long, it seemed that that afternoon at the
-Sign of the Sun would never go. Kitty knelt and swabbed and tied
-bandages and held whiskey to men’s lips to ease their pain when Dr.
-Eustis’ probe went deep. Sally Rose and Gran were doing the same thing,
-too.
-
-Then the men came in so fast there was no room for them in the tavern,
-so they were laid in the yard, and all about the garden reaching up
-the hill. The air was full of booming sound and smoke, and over all
-burned the hot, hot sun.
-
-The British had charged the Hill and been driven back, she heard from
-the men she tended. The British had gathered themselves together and
-were about to charge again.
-
-She and Gran and Sally Rose were working over two men with shoulder
-wounds, trying to staunch the flow of blood, when Gran suddenly stood
-up and put her hand to her forehead. A strange look came across her
-face. Then she smiled, and the light in her eyes paled out and dimmed
-away.
-
-“The young may die,” she murmured, “but the old must.”
-
-She tottered and fell beside the soldiers on the bloody grass.
-
-“Dead. Stone dead,” muttered Dr. Eustis, kneeling above her a few
-moments later. “Her heart failed from the shock and strain of this day,
-I do believe. But she died with her hand to the plow. She died like a
-good soldier.”
-
-Sally Rose crouched on the steps of the tavern, put her head in her
-lap, and burst into uncontrollable weeping. She never moved from there
-the rest of the afternoon. After Gran’s body was carried to a chamber
-over the taproom, Kitty looked desolately about her for a few moments.
-Then she went back to tending the wounded men. She would do what it was
-needful for her to do.
-
-Word came down the hill that the British were driving on the redoubt,
-that powder horns were getting low.
-
-Sometime after that--she never knew how long--Kitty knelt beside the
-newest soldier to arrive. His head was bloody, and he wore a rough
-shirt and breeches like all the rest, but on his feet were the fine
-polished boots worn by the men in the British Army. When she washed the
-blood away, she found she was bending over Gerry Malory.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Fifteen_
-
-A TERRIBLE BLACK DAY
-
-
-“We be going down this hill now,” said Colonel John Stark, “to fortify
-and hold the rail fence there.”
-
-He stood out boldly on the bold bare top of Bunker Hill, his new blue
-and buff coat unfastened at the neck, his musket held lightly but
-warily in his hand. His New Hampshire troops were drawn up before him,
-farmers and woodsmen for the most part, and dressed as befitted their
-callings. They wore homespun shirts and breeches dyed in the sober
-colors of late autumn, after the red and gold are gone. They carried a
-variety of weapons: here a fowling piece made by a village blacksmith;
-there an ancient queen’s arm left over from the Siege of Louisburg
-thirty years ago; there a blunderbuss older than Plymouth Colony.
-
-Tom Trask, who carried the blunderbuss, looked past his colonel at
-the whole of Charlestown peninsula spread out before him in the early
-afternoon sun. Below, on Breed’s Hill, that Prescott’s engineers had
-made the surprise decision to fortify, stood the redoubt. He could look
-down into it, just as if he were standing in the top of a tree. The
-men had built wooden platforms to fire from, and they were massed and
-waiting behind their guns. Farther down, on the point of land between
-the sparkling blue rivers, the scarlet pride of the British Army
-sprawled on the grass eating its dinner.
-
-Stark went on, his voice low but piercing, a tenseness in it that made
-a man’s blood run hot with courage, rather than cold with fear. He
-gestured toward the shores of the Mystic, the side of the field away
-from Boston.
-
-“To the left of the redoubt, lads, you can see a rail fence, and
-Knowlton’s men have banked it with cut hay. But past the rail fence
-there’s an open stretch along the river, wide enough to drive a team of
-horses through. We’ll go down there now and build a stone wall across
-it. Isn’t a man among you don’t know how to build a stone wall.”
-
-He paused and looked proudly around him. “And when it’s built, we’ll
-take our stand there, there and along the fence, and fight. If there’s
-a man among you don’t know how to do that, he can go home.”
-
-The road back to the safety of Medford lay broad and smooth behind
-them, but nobody turned toward that road. They started to cheer, but
-the colonel held up his hand.
-
-“Wait till you got something to cheer for, boys,” he said. “But
-remember this--all! Don’t shoot till they be within fifty yards. Pick
-out the officers. Fire low, and aim at the crossing of their belts. Hit
-for the handsome coats and the commanders.”
-
-He lifted his head and stepped back. Tom stood close enough to see his
-burning eyes and the unflinching line of his mouth. “I don’t know how
-the rest o’ you feel,” Stark went on, “but for myself, I’ll fight to
-the last drop o’ blood in me. By the great Jehovah, I mean to live free
-or die!”
-
-“Fall in!” he shouted. He held up his arm and made a swooping motion
-toward the rail fence. The New Hampshire regiments followed him down
-the hill.
-
-Once on the narrow strip of muddy beach beyond the fence, they worked
-desperately to rear a wall across it before the British should come
-on. Some fetched stones from other walls that divided the pastures on
-the hillside. Others toiled to heap them in a bulwark straight to the
-water’s edge. Tom was with those who carried boulders flung from the
-bank and piled them ready to the builder’s hand. Once he climbed up the
-ledge himself to take a look at the field above.
-
-“Hey, Caleb,” he called eagerly, as he noticed a young man standing
-where the rail fence ended, a musket in his hand.
-
-Colonel Stark’s first-born son, sixteen-year-old Caleb, turned around
-and a grin broke over his lean face as he recognized his old hunting
-companion. He stepped forward.
-
-“Tom!” he exclaimed. “Haven’t seen you since you left for Newburyport
-with the log raft, back sometime in the spring.”
-
-“No, I ain’t had a chance to get home. Ever since Concord Fight I been
-in camp. Where you been?”
-
-“Round home mostly. Just got here this morning. Word’s gone all around
-the countryside that the British be about to attack. Figured my dad
-could use another man. Say, Tom, Jean’s been asking about you--”
-
-Fife and drum music burst forth from the red-coated ranks below the
-hill, and the bugles uttered an urgent cry.
-
-“Here they come!” yelled Tom. He leaped down the bank and ran to where
-he had left his blunderbuss, in the center of the stone wall.
-
-Crouched behind it, he watched the British come on. He could not see
-the field above him that sloped upward to the redoubt, and ’twas likely
-the heaviest charge would be there. But there were plenty of red coats
-and white breeches moving toward the New Hampshire line. Once the
-attackers stopped and reformed in groups of four. Then on they came.
-
-Just to his right a musket spoke, though they had received no order
-to fire. Tom lifted his own blunderbuss, but before he could pull the
-trigger Colonel Stark strode fearlessly between the opposing armies. He
-had a tree branch in his hand. With a sharp stab he thrust it into the
-earth.
-
-“Don’t another man fire till they pass this stake. Whoever does, I’ll
-knock him down,” he said.
-
-He looked around him to make sure his words were understood. Then he
-walked back to his own line as calmly as if he were going down to his
-sawmill on any summer afternoon. Behind him the advancing British fixed
-their bayonets. He leaped down into the shelter of the wall.
-
-When the word came, Tom was ready, and his blunderbuss spoke punctually
-as the British passed the stake. He could not tell how many times he
-fired, and he did not stop to see what damage he had done. Aim, fire,
-load. Aim, fire, load. He kept relentlessly on, scarce conscious that
-all around him other men were doing the same. He knew that the ground
-in front of the stone wall was covered with wounded and dying redcoats,
-but their line kept still coming on, and so long as it did, he would do
-nothing but fire, load, aim.
-
-As he had been told, he aimed at the handsome coats and the commanders.
-Once when he lifted his eyes to choose the next target, he saw,
-to his utter amazement, a man he knew. Captain Gerald Malory was
-advancing toward him, bayonet in hand. As he looked, his amazement
-turned to contempt. “Polecat!” he muttered. “Said he was captain.
-Done it to dazzle the girls, I’ll warrant.” Gerald Malory wore a
-private’s uniform. Turning away deliberately, Tom leveled his gun on a
-resplendent major. When he looked back again, his one-time prisoner was
-gone.
-
-The British line wavered and fell back. He could hear the shouts of the
-officers trying to rally their men. They lifted their guns and fired a
-volley, and Tom heard the shots whistle high above.
-
-“Gunning for hen hawks, maybe,” he told himself with a grin. “Won’t hit
-nothing else that high in air.”
-
-Now the red-coated line was drawing back, retreating down the beach
-toward the point from whence they had come. Now there were no redcoats
-within firing range any more.
-
-“Whew!” said Tom. He put down the blunderbuss and mopped his forehead.
-Now he took time to look around him.
-
-All along the New Hampshire line men were standing up to stretch,
-drinking water out of leather bottles, and beginning to move about and
-talk together. He did not know the grizzled oldsters on either side of
-him, but he soon learned they were veterans of the Indian War, and no
-strangers to powder and shot.
-
-“Think they’ll be back?” he asked, waving his thumb in the direction of
-the retreating British.
-
-His companions nodded. They were starting already to reload.
-
-Down at the open end beside the water lay a confused heap of wounded.
-Those who could still stand up and walk were helping to carry their
-less fortunate fellows away. The word went round that a hospital had
-been set up at The Sign of the Sun, a tavern on the back side of Bunker
-Hill.
-
-There came a hail from the bank above. Tom turned that way and
-recognized the shaggy gray head and sturdy figure of Old Put. The
-general was mounted on a horse, and had several other blue-coated
-officers with him. Colonel Stark and three of his captains strode over
-to the bank, and the two commanders talked for a long time. Then Stark
-walked resolutely back to the stone wall, with his head lifted, his
-gaze fixed straight before him. Old Put’s party rode off toward the
-redoubt.
-
-A bugle sounded far down on Morton’s Point. Once again the British
-must be coming on. Tom crouched and leveled the blunderbuss. Just then
-the man on his left leaned over and spoke.
-
-“Word’s gone down the line,” he muttered through a thick wad of
-tobacco, “that Johnny Stark’s lost his boy.”
-
-“Caleb? How?” gasped Tom.
-
-“Stopped a British ball somewheres up by the fence, they say.” The man
-spat brown juice on the trampled mud. “Don’t like the look o’ things,
-lad. My powder horn’s getting low.”
-
-“So’s mine,” said Tom numbly. He looked between the stones at the
-oncoming scarlet line. He knew the depth of quiet love that lay between
-that father and son. “When they told Stark--what did he say?”
-
-“Said he had no time now to talk o’ private affairs,” answered the
-veteran. “Look there, in the front ranks of ’em! That’s General Howe. I
-fought under him at Quebec in ’59. I’d know him anywhere.”
-
-Tom looked where the other pointed, but he did not see the proud
-pompous figure of the British general leading on his men. He saw
-instead a New Hampshire mountainside in the fall, young Caleb Stark
-walking under the golden beech leaves, with his head up, laughing
-in the crisp air. He saw Caleb skating on Dorr’s Pond in the winter
-moonlight; pitching hay on a summer afternoon. And now at the rail
-fence Caleb lay dead. By Jehovah, he’d fix the British for doing that
-to his friend.
-
-“Here they come, lad,” warned the man at his side.
-
-“I’m ready,” said Tom. He gripped the blunderbuss, and all his rage and
-vengeance sounded in the roar of it as it spoke.
-
-The British were not so easily beaten back this time. Stepping over
-their fallen comrades they marched up to the wall, staggered back at
-the withering blast of fire, and came on again. But at last their
-officers could no longer urge them forward. Once more Tom found
-himself staring at the redcoats fleeing away.
-
-It was a long time before they formed again, and the whole American
-line was jubilant. It began to seem as if a handful of farmers with
-nothing but courage and gunpowder had turned back the British Army. Tom
-climbed up the bank in the interval and took a look at the redoubt.
-It was untaken, and there were still, red-clad forms lying all over
-the slope before it, and the gleaming brass of abandoned artillery. In
-front of his own line the dead lay as thick as sheep in a fold.
-
-“We ought to send for more powder,” he muttered, as he went back to his
-place and loaded the blunderbuss. “More men, maybe.”
-
-“Prescott already sent for more men,” growled his neighbor. “Been
-sending for ’em all day. Ward keeps ’em all close to Cambridge because
-he thinks they’re in danger there. As for powder, there was only ’leven
-barrels in the whole camp this morning. Bet there’s powerful little of
-it left by now.”
-
-“I got three more loadings,” said Tom. “I’ll give ’em that. Then I’ll
-have to bash their skulls if I bring ’em down.”
-
-“Bash their skulls then,” said the older man. “That’s as good a way as
-any for the varmints to go.”
-
-When the British made their third charge, they sent only a token force
-against the rail fence. Their main attack was directed at the redoubt.
-Tom fired his last charge of powder and then flung himself over the
-bank to the field above. Many other New Hampshire men were doing the
-same, their powder likewise being gone.
-
-At his side he saw Hugh Watts, who had driven with him to Cambridge
-after the lead.
-
-“Bad news for the colonel,” said Watts.
-
-“Aye. Bad news for everyone who knew young Caleb,” answered Tom with a
-gulp. “He was a friend of mine.”
-
-“Hope they got enough powder up there on the Hill,” the Londonderry
-man went on. “Don’t seem as if they’re firing as lively as they should.”
-
-Tom looked again at the redoubt. Black smoke was pouring up the sky
-from over Charlestown way. The main force of the British was driving
-toward the little fortress, coming dangerously near. Now they passed
-the wooden fence. Now a handful of them began to swarm up a locust tree
-that stood in one corner of the earthen wall.
-
-“Great Jehovah!” gasped Hugh Watts. “They’re going in!”
-
-It was true. A last frantic burst of firing came from the redoubt, and
-then its guns were still. The British poured over the low walls in a
-triumphant scarlet wave.
-
-“No more powder. Or they’re all dead,” said Tom grimly.
-
-“Out, lads!” he heard Captain Moore calling behind him. “Spread over
-the field from Bunker Hill to the river and cover the retreat!”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Tramping back across Charlestown Neck in the sunset with the last
-straggling ranks of the Great American Army, Tom Trask slowly began
-to realize that he was not the same Tom Trask who had marched out
-so confidently to Bunker Hill. He had seen and heard too much that
-afternoon to remain the same. He had seen the King’s troops firing at
-him, and he had fired back, and he wanted no more of England and the
-King.
-
-When the bells began to ring in Newburyport last April and he heard
-the news of Concord Fight, he had gone to camp because all the other
-men were going. Only a cripple or a coward would stay at home. But
-he hadn’t thought much about it, much about why there had been this
-Concord Fight.
-
-He’d learned a little more from the talk around the campfire at Winter
-Hill, but nobody seemed to be sure whether they were fighting to make
-the King treat them better, or to get the country away from the King.
-Well, for himself, he was sure now. He knew when he heard John Stark
-say, “I mean to live free or die.” For that was the way he meant to
-live. He knew it for sure when he heard the news that Caleb had been
-shot.
-
-And he had good hopes that the time would come when he could live that
-way. Hadn’t he seen the British Army turn and run--turn and run away
-twice?
-
-“We’ll fight them from now till Judgment,” he muttered to himself. “But
-we’re going to be free.”
-
-A little group of his dusty, tattered fellows came toiling up and
-overtook him where he plodded along, trailing the empty blunderbuss.
-One of them hailed him, and he saw that it was Johnny Pettengall.
-
-“Hey, Tom! We almost licked ’em, didn’t we?” he called. “If our
-powder’d lasted one more time.... Where was you?”
-
-“At the rail fence and along the wall,” said Tom.
-
-“I was in the redoubt.”
-
-“We got slaughtered there,” said Tom.
-
-“Aye, many slaughtered,” agreed Johnny, falling into step beside him.
-“We was bayoneted like so many cattle. This’ll be remembered forever in
-New England as a terrible black day.”
-
-“I guess it will,” Tom said.
-
-“I saw them shoot Dr. Warren,” continued Johnny. “Shot him in the head
-just as he was leaving the redoubt.”
-
-“I seen him once in Cambridge,” muttered Tom. “He was a good man, I
-guess. It’s worse for me that we lost young Caleb Stark.”
-
-“The Colonel’s son?” asked Johnny, and his face brightened. “Oh no!
-That was a false report, Tom. I heard Putnam himself telling Prescott
-that. Said he was sorry the boy’s father ever got the word--but it
-didn’t make no difference in the way he led his men. He said Stark’s
-a soldier all the way through. Likely you and Caleb will be drinking
-beer together tonight on Winter Hill.”
-
-Tom drew a long breath. He looked out at the blue hills to the west,
-with the red hot ball of the setting sun behind them. He was glad that
-his friend was alive, but the good news hadn’t changed his mind about
-one thing. He still wanted to live free.
-
-
-
-
-_Chapter Sixteen_
-
-HANGING AND WIVING
-
-
-“Do you feel afraid now we’re really here?” asked Kitty. She put her
-hand to Gerald Malory’s sleeve with a light, possessive touch and
-looked up into his face anxiously. Gerry smiled down at her.
-
-He still wore his country clothes and a bandage round his head, but the
-healthy color was coming back into his face now. She had tended him for
-a week at the field hospital below Medford Bridge, and for a week after
-that he had been able to go walking with her in the sunshine every
-afternoon. She and Sally Rose slept at the house of Mrs. Fulton who
-directed the hospital. But Sally Rose was making new friends, and spent
-less and less time among the wounded men, even though Gerry himself was
-there.
-
-“Not half so afraid as I was that night we went back to Charlestown to
-dig up the silver,” Gerry said.
-
-They stood in the highroad in front of the old Royall House where
-Colonel Stark had his headquarters. In a few moments they would go
-in. Gerry would confess that he was not a New Hampshire man who had
-got knocked on the head at the rail fence and couldn’t remember what
-company he came from. He would admit that he was Gerald Malory of the
-Twenty-third. But they would not go in just yet. It was a soft summer
-night with the fragrance of garden flowers in the air. He drew her down
-beside him on the low brick wall.
-
-“What were you afraid of that night?” she asked him. “When we went to
-The Sign of the Sun to get a pass from the British major so we could go
-into town, I thought he seemed like a very kind man.”
-
-Gerry grinned down at her. “He was kind to you, certainly. From the
-look in his eye, he’d have given you Boston Common and Long Wharf too,
-if you’d asked for them. You’ve a way with us menfolk, Kitty.”
-
-Kitty let her long lashes fall across her cheek, then she looked up at
-him suddenly and smiled. “Do you know, it’s the strangest thing, I do
-seem to have a way with them lately. But before I knew you, I never had
-any way with them at all.”
-
-He cleared his throat and looked away from her. “Yes, you’re blooming
-out, my girl,” he said.
-
-Kitty sighed happily. “Oh I do hope so! For so many years nobody
-noticed me at all beside Sally Rose.”
-
-“Ah, Sally Rose!” he muttered. “Honestly, I feel guilty there. How am
-I ever going to tell her that I--that I--have taken a fancy to you,
-Kitty?”
-
-“Is a fancy all you’ve taken?”
-
-“A deep down kind of fancy.”
-
-“Oh!” She was silent for a moment, and then she said, “If you feel
-guilty about Sally Rose, how do you think I feel about Tom Trask, the
-New Hampshire boy? How am I going to tell him I’ve taken a fancy to
-you?”
-
-He did not answer, and after a moment she repeated her earlier
-question. “What were you afraid of when we went to Charlestown that
-night? It was sad, really, but I didn’t see any reason to be afraid.”
-
-She remembered the forlorn look of the town, its cellar holes still
-smoking, only a few old houses left near the millpond, the moss on the
-gravestones scorched away. But they had found and brought back the
-silverware.
-
-“I was afraid I might be recognized and sent to rejoin my regiment. You
-know I don’t want that to happen to me, Kitty.”
-
-Kitty slipped out of his encircling arm and jumped to her feet.
-“I know,” she said. “That’s why I coaxed you to come and tell the
-whole thing to Colonel Stark. If he says you can stay here and be an
-American, then you’ll have no more cause to be afraid.”
-
-“Suppose he says I’m a deserter and an enemy, and ought to be hanged on
-Cambridge Common? He may even think I’m a spy, Kitty.”
-
-He stood up and held out both his hands. “I don’t think he’ll do that,”
-said Kitty slowly. “Colonel Stark ought to understand any man who wants
-to be an American. You can’t go on pretending always--always being
-afraid.”
-
-They heard a throat cleared sharply on the other side of the low wall.
-
-“Don’t you young folks have any other place to do your courting?” asked
-Colonel Stark.
-
-Gerry turned quickly round, and Kitty drew a deep breath.
-
-“We--we were on our way to consult you, Colonel--about a small matter.”
-
-Colonel Stark inclined his head. “Come inside then,” he ordered. “I
-trust the young woman has no complaint against you.”
-
-“Oh no!” cried Kitty in embarrassment and alarm.
-
-The three of them walked together up the broad graveled path between
-the boxwood hedges, and in at the wide front door. Kitty had heard much
-about Isaac Royall, the owner of the house, a rich Tory who had fled to
-Boston, but she was not prepared for the carved elegance and panelled
-wainscot of the great hall. She had never before seen a room like the
-white and gold parlor where Colonel Stark seated them. It reassured
-her a little to see his somewhat battered musket leaning against the
-rosewood desk, a cartridge box flung down on a brocade chair.
-
-“O’erlook the disorder if you will,” he said, picking up the cartridge
-box. “I been at Cambridge all day, and Molly’s housemaids are forbidden
-to meddle with my field equipment. Well, lad,” and he turned to Gerry,
-his mouth severe, but a twinkle in his cold blue eye. “You say you come
-here to see me about some matter.”
-
-“Yes sir,” said Gerry, clenching his fists and leaning forward.
-“Colonel Stark, sir, I been abed in your field hospital ever since the
-battle at Charlestown. I said to all that I came from New Hampshire,
-but since I was wounded I couldn’t remember my town or the name of my
-captain. I told a lie, sir. I am Gerald Malory of the Twenty-third.”
-
-“I know it,” said Stark quietly. The twinkle in his eye deepened.
-
-“You--you know it? How?”
-
-“Haven’t forgotten you was our prisoner after the Ipswich Fright, have
-you? I won’t question you about the Fright too much. That’s water under
-the bridge. Might have enjoyed it myself, when I was a lad.”
-
-Gerry hung his head, and the Colonel went on. “You was recognized by
-more’n a dozen men when we carted you back from the Hill.”
-
-“Then--why?”
-
-“Why didn’t we clap you back in gaol again? Well, maybe we should have.
-I decided instead to have you watched. I wanted to find out your game.”
-
-“I haven’t any game,” said Gerry miserably.
-
-“So it was beginning to seem,” agreed Stark. “What are you? Tired of
-fighting? A deserter?”
-
-“I--I suppose so,” said Gerry. “I never meant to be a soldier. But
-after I got in trouble at home, it seemed the best way.”
-
-Stark cleared his throat. “You got a father?” he asked.
-
-“A father? Yes, sir.”
-
-“At home in England?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“How do you think he’d feel if he knew you was behaving so?”
-
-“I don’t believe he’d care,” said Gerry. “After my mother died, he took
-a young wife and has other sons. New one every year. ’Twas getting so
-there was no room at home for me.”
-
-Gradually, under the Colonel’s shrewd questioning, Gerry Malory’s whole
-story came clear. Kitty had heard much of it before, but not all. He
-told about his mother, the strolling player; how after her death he had
-left grammar school, and ranged with a wild group of friends about the
-farms and the town. Then he was taken up for poaching in the squire’s
-woodland--caught the first unlucky time he set a bit of a rabbit snare.
-And the recruiting sergeant came by in the thick of the trouble, and
-there you were. No, he wasn’t a captain and never had been. He never
-thought pretending to be one was a dishonest trick, since he never
-gained thereby. He thought it was like taking a part in a play, and
-better to choose a leading part. He wasn’t even twenty years old, as he
-had said; wouldn’t be eighteen till next December came.
-
-Stark pondered. “All that I can see,” he murmured. “I been a lad
-myself, though, thank God, none such a foolhardy one. But after the
-battle--what did you do with the boots you wore when they brought you
-in, the boots that went with your British uniform?”
-
-“My boots?” asked Gerry. He looked down at his feet. He was wearing
-a pair of cowhide shoes Kitty had bought for him at a shop in Medford
-Square. “Why, I don’t know what became of my boots.”
-
-“I hid them,” said Kitty defiantly. “I was afraid--if the doctors
-thought he was British--they’d just let him die. I pulled them off, and
-took them outside, and threw them down the well.”
-
-Colonel Stark slapped his knee and laughed with a quiet, wry kind of
-mirth. “So I suppose from now on the water at The Sign of the Sun will
-taste o’ British leather,” he said. Then he turned to Gerry. “Well, a
-spirited lass is none so bad to have for a wife. I got one myself. Do
-you mean to marry her for her kindness to you--if you don’t have to
-hang, of course?”
-
-“Not for her kindness,” said Gerry Malory firmly, his eyes lighting. “I
-mean to marry her--well, because I mean to marry her.”
-
-“Well enough said,” agreed the colonel. “But I mentioned the other, the
-hanging matter. Can you think of any reason against it?”
-
-A tragic look came over Gerry’s face, and his voice took on a deep
-vibrant note of pleading. It seemed to Kitty that she could see and
-hear his actress mother there.
-
-“You wouldn’t hang a man for a mistake, would you, Colonel? A mistake
-that was made a hundred and fifty years ago?” He paused and shut his
-eyes dramatically.
-
-Colonel Stark gave Kitty a slow, solemn wink, and she knew that he was
-thinking of the actress mother, too.
-
-“What was the mistake, lad,” he demanded, “and who made it? You weren’t
-making mistakes a hundred and fifty years ago. Yours were all ahead of
-you then.”
-
-“It was an old ancestor of mine, sir, who went down to the docks in
-Plymouth and thought to sail with the folk who came here to found your
-own Plymouth Colony. He thought he would come with them and be an
-American, but he changed his mind and went back to Barnstaple, and the
-family’s been there ever since. That was the mistake he made. If it
-hadn’t been for him--I might ha’ been fighting on your side in this
-war.”
-
-Colonel Stark gazed sharply at the young man and saw what Kitty hoped
-he would see: that for all the pretentious manner, the words were true.
-Then he turned away for a moment and stared through the window where
-the moonlight was turning white flowered stalks to silver in the garden.
-
-“My folks didn’t make that mistake,” he said abruptly. “They come here
-on a ship, like all the rest of us, except those who be Injun bred.
-Come out o’ Scotland, my folks. Had five young ones die on the voyage,
-and raised another five to replace ’em. Yes, your ancestor made a
-mistake, lad. But how do you think to right it? Peace time, you could
-come here like other Englishmen always did, and settle down and be one
-of us. But not now, now that we be at war.”
-
-“Couldn’t I, Colonel? That was what I was hoping for. It’s not that I’m
-afraid of fighting. But I don’t want to fight against you. And I can’t
-fight against my own.”
-
-“And what would you do, Private Malory, if I said, ‘Go to! Clear out of
-my camp and make your way as best you can?’”
-
-Gerry’s face lit up, and there was no play-acting about him this time.
-“Why, I’d thought about that, Colonel. Do you know what I’d do? I
-sailed from Plymouth myself, for my regiment took ship there, so for
-old times’ sake, I’d take the highroad and go down to your Plymouth in
-Massachusetts, and see if I could make my way there and settle in, and
-become a Plymouth man.”
-
-“We got a Plymouth in New Hampshire,” said Stark thoughtfully. “I don’t
-know whether all the land be taken there or no.” Then the lines in his
-face hardened.
-
-“I got the power tonight to send you on your way,” he said. “Tomorrow,
-I may be plain Johnny Stark, headed back to the sawmill again. We got
-a new commander coming up from the South to take over the whole army.
-Name o’ Washington. A Virginia man. Can’t tell what he’ll do.”
-
-On that July night the name of Washington meant nothing to Kitty
-Greenleaf and Gerald Malory.
-
-“Then let me go, Colonel Stark. Let me go tonight,” Gerry pleaded.
-
-The colonel looked down at the rich woven rug on the floor. His eyes
-seemed to be tracing the scrollwork pattern. Then he turned to Gerry
-again. “There’s only one thing still bothers me, Private Malory,”
-he said. “I believe you when you say you’d like to be an American,
-and settle down in America and make your way there, and do no harm
-to anyone. I commend you for it. But how do you feel toward your own
-people? Don’t you believe in Parliament and the King?”
-
-“I believe in them--over there,” said Gerry slowly. “But not over here.
-They rule fine in England, it seems to me. But in America--the way I’ve
-come to see America--they don’t know what they’re doing at all.”
-
-Stark’s grin told Kitty that he had heard the answer he wanted to hear,
-but he had one more word of caution. “Remember, you been knocked in the
-head, lad. Are you sure you know what you’re about? That you won’t wake
-up in a daze some morning and wish you was back with the Twenty-third?”
-
-“No,” said Gerry. “I won’t wish myself back.”
-
-Stark got to his feet. “Might happen,” he said mildly, “if you was to
-slip out of camp long about midnight, sentry would be looking the other
-way.”
-
-“Thank you, sir,” said Gerry fervently.
-
-“Thank me in ten years,” said Stark, “if you still want to then. It’s a
-crazy venture, and we can’t tell how it’ll turn out. But if it’s what
-you want, get on with it. They say hanging and wiving goes by destiny.
-And I guess you’re lucky in both o’ them matters, lad.”
-
-He led them toward the front door, and as they passed by a small parlor
-opening off the hall, Kitty caught sight of a couple inside it. They
-sat on a peacock-colored sofa, locked in a deep embrace. Startled at
-the sound of footsteps, they drew apart. Stark shot a quick look in
-their direction and grinned widely. “No harm in it,” he said, “they’re
-a betrothed pair.” He would have kept on down the hall, but Kitty stood
-still, gasping.
-
-The man on the blue sofa was Tom Trask, and the girl was a stranger
-to her; small and delicately formed, with a beautiful cameo face and
-shining red hair. Under their scrutiny Tom stood up. Some men would
-have been embarrassed, but not he. He scooped the girl to her feet and
-led her forward.
-
-“Well,” he greeted them, “so it’s Kit herself, and _Private_ Malory.
-I’d like you to meet Jeanie Morrison.” He looked down at the red-haired
-girl, and there was a tender merriment in his eye.
-
-“I kissed with all the girls some,” he continued. “But I always knew
-I’d marry Jean.”
-
-“Listen to the man!” trilled Jeanie. She gave him an enchanting smile
-that showed a dimple in her cheek.
-
-“Jeanie come down from Derryfield with my wife a few days back,”
-explained the colonel, sensing some tension in the air he could not
-understand. “She came to see Tom and bring him his gun. A Brown Bess,
-British made, one of the best guns in the army.”
-
-“Aye,” said Tom mockingly. “I got my own gun. You can have your
-blunderbuss back, Kitty. I’ll bring it to the hospital tomorrow.”
-
-“Don’t bother,” said Kitty, but Gerry’s eyes lighted.
-
-“Is there any way we could get it tonight?” he asked.
-
-Kitty knew what he was thinking, and she saw the rightness of it. He
-meant to go to Plymouth, armed with the Plymouth blunderbuss.
-
-Tom shrugged, “If you want it that bad,” he said. “As a matter of fact,
-I brought it with me. You’ll find it standing among the lilacs to the
-right of the front door.”
-
-After they had retrieved the old weapon and taken their leave of
-Colonel Stark, they walked quietly through the streets of Medford hand
-in hand.
-
-Kitty should have been relieved that she would have no painful scene
-with Tom, but she could not help feeling rueful at the knowledge that
-he had preferred red-haired Jeanie all the time.
-
-“You’re lucky,” Gerry assured her. “I wish--I wish I could get out of
-it so easy with Sally Rose.”
-
-He kissed her on the steps of the Fulton house.
-
-“I don’t know when I’ll be back, Kitty,” he said. “It may take me a
-long time to make my own way. And you--now your grandmother’s dead,
-where will you go?”
-
-“I think I’ll go back to her old house and wait till you come for me.
-You’ve never been to Newburyport, but you can find the way. You’ll be
-gone tomorrow, and I’m going to Cambridge and get old Timothy and take
-him home.”
-
-“Will Sally Rose go with you?” he asked.
-
-“What do you think?” said Kitty. “Look there!” She pointed to the
-parlor window just to the left of the front door.
-
-Sally Rose was standing inside the parlor. She was smiling up into
-the eyes of a tall young captain who wore the blue and white of the
-Connecticut line. She let her lashes veil her eyes and opened her
-pretty lips. “We’ve none such handsome lads in Massachusetts--” she
-said.
-
-Gerry Malory swallowed. Then he began to laugh. “Where, oh where,” he
-exclaimed, “have I heard those words before?”
-
-After he had left her, Kitty slipped into the house and up to the
-little chamber that she shared with Sally Rose. She went to the window
-and stood there, looking at the still town, and the moonlit river, the
-campfires on Winter Hill, the lights of the warships far down the dim
-bay.
-
-Less than three months back, it was, that they had all played
-hide-and-seek in Newburyport, but they would never play hide-and-seek
-again. Never again would they be that young.
-
-Even she and Sally Rose, Gran had said, would be great-grandmothers
-some day. How glad she was that Gran had had that last cup of tea.
-
-She turned from the window and began to undress, laughing as she
-remembered the struggle to get Sally Rose out of the stays. Never
-again, she thought, would they be as young as that.
-
-She was just climbing into bed when Sally Rose opened the chamber door.
-
-“Kitty,” she said, “there’s going to be handsome men in uniform about
-for ages. Captain Davenport was just telling me that he expects a long
-war. He says that since Bunker Hill, the word’s been in everybody’s
-mouth that we’re going to live free or die--and that will take a long
-time.”
-
-“Live free or die? What does that mean?” asked Kitty, bewildered.
-
-“Well, I don’t understand it myself,” said Sally Rose, taking the
-ribbon out of her curls, “but I have an idea of one man who might know.
-I think you’ll be likely to find out if you go and speak to Tom Trask.”
-
-Kitty lay in the wide bed and watched her cousin slip out of her dainty
-garments and fling them carelessly across a chair. Yes, she thought,
-there was, after all, some sort of unconscious wisdom about the pretty
-featherbrain. Hanging and wiving goes by destiny, Colonel Stark had
-said, and she had known that Gerry was her destiny, almost from the
-day she had seen him first from the door of the Bay and Beagle as
-he marched past with the prisoners’ cart. And she would not have it
-otherwise, for she loved Gerry. He would be as good an American as most
-others, some day. He had many virtues, and she would rejoice and be
-proud of them all her life, most likely. But when it came to a matter
-of living free, Sally Rose was right. Tom Trask was the man who would
-know.
-
-
-
-
-TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:
-
-
- Italicized text is surrounded by underscores: _italics_.
-
- Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
-
- Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/66623-0.zip b/old/66623-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index d421f0b..0000000
--- a/old/66623-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66623-h.zip b/old/66623-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 11d8f09..0000000
--- a/old/66623-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66623-h/66623-h.htm b/old/66623-h/66623-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index d41d70f..0000000
--- a/old/66623-h/66623-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,7978 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=us-ascii" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Road to Bunker Hill, by Shirley Barker&mdash;A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" />
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;}
-div.titlepage p {text-align: center; font-weight: bold; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 2em;}
-
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
-}
-
-
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {display: inline-block; text-align: left;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -2.5em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .indent {text-indent: 3em;}
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 40%;
- margin-right: 15%;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap {
- text-indent: -0.2em;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
- float: left;
- margin: 0.1em 0.1em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 250%;
- line-height:0.85em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap:first-letter
-{
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
-}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.xlarge {font-size: 150%;}
-.large {font-size: 125%;}
-.ph1 {text-align: center; font-size: xx-large; font-weight: bold;}
-.ph2 {text-align: center; font-size: large; font-weight: bold;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.figleft {
- float: left;
- clear: left;
- margin-left: 0;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-right: 1em;
- padding: 0;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .figleft {float: left;}
-
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
- padding: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The Road to Bunker Hill, by Shirley Barker</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:1em; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The Road to Bunker Hill</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Shirley Barker</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: October 27, 2021 [eBook #66623]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This book was produced from images made available by the HathiTrust Digital Library.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/cover.jpg" width="40%" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<h1>THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL</h1>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center"><i>Books by</i> SHIRLEY BARKER</p>
-
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><i>For Younger Readers</i></div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="indent">THE TROJAN HORSE</div>
-<div class="indent">THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-
-<div class="verse"><i>Poetry</i></div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="indent">THE DARK HILLS UNDER</div>
-<div class="indent">A LAND AND A PEOPLE</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><i>Novels</i></div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="indent">PEACE, MY DAUGHTERS</div>
-<div class="indent">RIVERS PARTING</div>
-<div class="indent">FIRE AND THE HAMMER</div>
-<div class="indent">TOMORROW THE NEW MOON</div>
-<div class="indent">LIZA BOWE</div>
-<div class="indent">SWEAR BY APOLLO</div>
-<div class="indent">THE LAST GENTLEMAN</div>
-<div class="indent">CORNER OF THE MOON</div>
-</div></div></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_title.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="titlepage">
-<p><span class="large">SHIRLEY BARKER</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="xlarge">The Road<br />
-to<br />
-Bunker Hill</span></p>
-
-<p>DUELL, SLOAN AND PEARCE<br />
-New York</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center">Copyright &copy; 1962 by Shirley Barker</p>
-
-
-<p class="center">All rights reserved. No part of this book in excess of<br />
-five hundred words may be reproduced in any form<br />
-without permission in writing from the publisher.</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>First edition</i></p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<div class="figleft"><img src="images/i_colophon.jpg" alt="" /></div>
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-
-<p><i>Affiliate of</i><br />
-
-MEREDITH PRESS<br />
-
-<i>Des Moines &amp; New York</i></p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-<p>&nbsp;</p>
-<p class="center">Library of Congress Catalogue Card Number: 62-12175</p>
-
-
-<p class="center">Manufactured in the United States of America for Meredith Press<br />
-Van Rees Press <b>&middot;</b> New York</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center"><i>For</i><br />
-
-
-<span class="smcap">Esther Doane Osman</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Contents</i></h2>
-
-
-
-<table border="0" cellpadding="2" cellspacing="2" summary="table">
-
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">1.</td><td> A Night to Be Young </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_3"> 3</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">2.</td><td> In Readiness to March</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_13"> 13</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">3.</td><td> Two to Begin</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_23"> 23</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">4.</td><td> The Courage to Go and the Feet to Get Him There</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_33"> 33</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">5.</td><td> The Great Ipswich Fright</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_42"> 42</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">6.</td><td> Fun While It Lasted</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_53"> 53</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">7.</td><td> Off to the Wars in Boston</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_63"> 63</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">8.</td><td> Saved by a Pipe-smoking Man</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_75"> 75</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">9.</td><td> No Clouds on Bunker Hill</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_87"> 87</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">10.</td><td> A Tryst with the Enemy</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_101"> 101</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">11.</td><td> A Great Secret</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_113"> 113</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">12.</td><td> Thunder in the Air</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_125"> 125</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">13.</td><td> The World Turned Upside Down</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_136"> 136</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">14.</td><td> The Young May Die</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_147"> 147</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">15.</td><td> A Terrible Black Day</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_160"> 160</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdr">16.</td><td> Hanging and Wiving</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_170"> 170</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-
-<p class="ph1">THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL</p>
-</div>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[3]</span>
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter One</i><br />
-
-
-<small>A NIGHT TO BE YOUNG</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;Nothing</span> ever happens in this town,&#8221; said Eben Poore,
-dangling his long legs over the edge of the wharf, and
-looking down river to the open sea. The sky was pale, almost
-white above the long sand bar of Plum Island, he noticed,
-but the streets were growing dark behind him, and twilight
-had begun to gather round the warehouses and tall-masted
-ships by the waterside.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; agreed Dick Moody, &#8220;nothing ever happens in
-Newburyport. Wish we could have a &#8216;tea party&#8217; like they had
-in Boston a spell back. I&#8217;d sure enough be glad to rig up like
-an Indian and heave a chest of bohea overside.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I guess all the merchants know better than to bring it
-in,&#8221; said Johnny Pettengall. &#8220;Nobody&#8217;d drink the stuff. We
-got no name o&#8217; being a Tory town.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny was older than the other boys, seventeen past. He
-had his own gun and drilled with the militia on muster days.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But something has happened in Newburyport,&#8221; he went
-on, &#8220;though I don&#8217;t suppose it would mean very much to
-either o&#8217; you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What did happen?&#8221; asked Dick lazily. &#8220;Somebody&#8217;s cat<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[4]</span>
-kitten, or Indian Joe take too much rum and do a war dance in
-Queen Street again?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny shook his head and smiled. &#8220;Sally Rose Townsend&#8217;s
-back,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>The other boys sat up, and their faces brightened.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t care much for girls,&#8221; said Eben, picking a piece
-of long brown seaweed from the dock&#8217;s end and shredding it
-in his fingers. &#8220;But Sally Rose is different. Maybe it&#8217;s her
-hair.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Having gold-colored hair never hurt a girl none,&#8221; declared
-Johnny, with the air of a man who knew about such
-things, a man grown. &#8220;But with Sally Rose&mdash;well, it&#8217;s the
-way she smiles, I think.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I like Kitty better,&#8221; said Dick stoutly. &#8220;Sally Rose is
-always grinning&mdash;at everybody. When Kitty smiles, there&#8217;s
-some sense to it&mdash;when she&#8217;s pleased, or you tell her a joke.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s Sally Rose doing in Newburyport this time o&#8217;
-year?&#8221; asked Eben. &#8220;She comes in the summer to visit
-Granny Greenleaf and her cousin Kitty, but it&#8217;s still early
-spring&mdash;April nineteenth, for I took me a look at the almanac
-this morning. See, there&#8217;s the first log raft from New Hampshire
-just tied up today.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The other boys looked where he pointed. Through the
-gathering darkness they saw that a drift of shaggy logs covered
-the whole surface of a little cove nearby. Lanterns
-flashed here and there, and a dim shouting echoed among the
-narrow lanes and small brick houses beside the river. The
-lumbermen who had brought the raft down from the great
-forests farther up the Merrimack, were moving about it now,
-making everything fast for the night.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s been a warm spring,&#8221; said Johnny, smiling quietly to
-himself.</p>
-
-<p>Dick shivered and turned up the collar of his homespun
-jacket. &#8220;Maybe it has,&#8221; he said, &#8220;but it&#8217;s cold enough tonight<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[5]</span>
-to freeze your gizzard. Hope there won&#8217;t be a frost, with
-the apple trees already budded and most o&#8217; the fields plowed.
-But what&#8217;s that got to do with Sally Rose? Her father keeps
-a tavern in Charlestown, shops and houses all round, and the
-seasons don&#8217;t matter. Spring don&#8217;t mean nothing there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There&#8217;s a lot stirring round Charlestown this spring,
-Sally Rose says,&#8221; continued Johnny. &#8220;Looks like the British
-soldiers in Boston might be &#8217;most ready to come out and fight.
-We been expecting it, and we got plenty o&#8217; powder laid by, at
-Concord and a few places more. Might need to use it any
-time now. Sally Rose&#8217;s father thought she&#8217;d be safer here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Did she tell you that?&#8221; asked Eben quickly. &#8220;You&#8217;ve
-talked with her then?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, I talked with her,&#8221; said Johnny. He turned his dark
-head a little and looked up the hill at the lighted town behind
-them, starlight over the dormer windows set high in the
-rooftops, the church steeple white against the night sky. He
-seemed to be watching for something. He did not say any
-more.</p>
-
-<p>A group of sailors swaggered by, jesting and laughing, on
-their way to the Wolfe Tavern after grog. The spring wind
-brought a salt smell up from the river, a fish smell, and the
-clean scent of pine logs from the raft in the cove. One lone
-candle burned in the window of a counting house nearby and
-showed them a figure hunched over a tall desk and open
-ledger. Dick pointed suddenly toward it.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Shiver my jib and start my planks if I&#8217;d want to be a
-counting-house clerk!&#8221; he exclaimed. Dick was apprenticed to
-his uncle in the ship-building trade, but what he wanted was
-to go to sea. Eben, an orphan, did chores at a boardinghouse
-in Chandler&#8217;s Lane, and Johnny helped his father on their
-farm below the town, a farm known for its poor soil and
-salt hay.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[6]</span>Before anyone could answer him, a girl&#8217;s laugh rang out,
-somewhere in the shadowy streets above.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s Sally Rose!&#8221; cried Eben. &#8220;I&#8217;d know her laugh in
-Jamaicy&mdash;if I was to hear it there! She&mdash;she&mdash;you knew she
-was coming down here, Johnny! You knew!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, I knew,&#8221; said Johnny. There was a light in his eye,
-a reflection from the counting-house candle, perhaps. &#8220;She
-said she and Kit might take a walk this way, if Granny Greenleaf
-would let them out.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, Granny did,&#8221; cried Dick, &#8220;for she&#8217;s coming, and
-Kitty with her. Look there!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Two girls came tripping gaily toward them, their full
-skirts sweeping the rutted lane, little white shawls drawn
-about their shoulders, their hair brushed back from their faces
-and falling in curls behind. One girl&#8217;s hair was soft brown,
-and the other&#8217;s yellow like Indian corn.</p>
-
-<p>The boys stood up. Johnny went forward. &#8220;I been waiting
-for you, Sally Rose,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose walked slowly toward him, her head lifted, her
-eyes shining. She put out both her hands. &#8220;My, you&#8217;re handsome,
-Johnny,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I&#8217;d forgotten how handsome you
-were. We don&#8217;t have lads like you in Charlestown, you know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny gripped both her hands against the front of his
-jacket and took a deep breath. The other boys looked embarrassed.
-Eben stared down at his feet. He suddenly realized
-that they were bare, bare and not very clean. He owned a pair
-of shoes, of course, but he only wore them on Sundays and
-in the wintertime.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Glad you came back, Sally Rose,&#8221; he said, not looking at
-her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, thank you, Eben,&#8221; she answered sweetly. &#8220;I&#8217;m so
-glad that you&#8217;re glad.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny opened his eyes wide and gave Eben an unfriendly
-stare.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[7]</span>&#8220;Hey, Kit,&#8221; said Dick, &#8220;I haven&#8217;t seen you since&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The brown-haired girl smiled. &#8220;You&#8217;d have seen me if
-you&#8217;d looked,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I passed you by the ropewalk last
-Friday afternoon. I was going to Polly Little&#8217;s to bring home
-some tulip bulbs for Granny. I waved to you, but you
-wouldn&#8217;t see me. You were too busy cleaning a tar barrel.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Dick looked down at the worn planks of Somerby&#8217;s Wharf.
-It was dark beside the river now, and the only light came
-from the windowpanes of the small houses along the street.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m sorry, Kitty,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It doesn&#8217;t matter, Dick,&#8221; she answered. Her blue eyes
-smiled at him. Her voice sounded soothing and kind.</p>
-
-<p>The five of them stood there, silent in the spring night
-and the sharp sea wind. Johnny shifted his feet uneasily.
-Even Sally Rose did not know what to do or say.</p>
-
-<p>Finally Eben spoke. His voice quavered a little, harsh,
-and self-conscious, and high. &#8220;If I had a shilling,&#8221; he said,
-&#8220;I&#8217;d ask you all to come up to the Wolfe Tavern and have
-a glass of beer.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Dick snorted. &#8220;Lot of good a shilling would do you there!&#8221;
-he said. &#8220;Ma&#8217;am Davenport&#8217;s real strict. She won&#8217;t sell drink
-to lads of thirteen.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Eben wilted for a moment. Then Sally Rose smiled at him,
-and he squared his shoulders and stood up taller than before.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t care for the taste of beer,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Perhaps I
-see too much of it in Father&#8217;s tavern as it passes over the
-board. But thank you, Eben. It was a kind thought.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She turned to Johnny, and her voice grew low and soft.
-&#8220;Will there be a moon?&#8221; she asked.</p>
-
-<p>He answered her gruffly. &#8220;Not till later. Much later, after
-the bells have rung curfew; after you girls are home abed.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh&mdash;?&#8221; answered Sally Rose provocatively.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, here we are, Sally Rose,&#8221; said Kitty in a brisk tone,
-&#8220;You said you wanted to come down to the river.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[8]</span>She looked out at the dark flowing stream with the river
-barges and fishing smacks and deep-sea-going ships moored
-on its quiet surface, lanterns in their rigging, their tall masts
-reared against the sky, and their sails furled tight. Ships home
-from Virginia and the Barbados, from all over the world,
-maybe; their holds full of sugar and rice and wine, silks and
-laces and oil, India muslins, and French knickknacks, and
-gunpowder out of Holland&mdash;even if they carried no tea. Try
-as they would, the King&#8217;s laws hadn&#8217;t been able to interfere
-too much with trade.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now that you&#8217;re here,&#8221; she went on, &#8220;what do you want
-to do?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We could go for a walk through the marshes, Plum Island
-way,&#8221; said Sally Rose, looking at Johnny.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All of us?&#8221; he asked her. Kitty and Eben and Dick ought
-to know that he meant for them to go away and leave him
-alone with Sally Rose. But they didn&#8217;t go.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We could all go back to our house and have plum cake
-and buttermilk,&#8221; suggested Kitty. &#8220;Granny cut a new plum
-cake yesterday.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Eben&#8217;s voice rose high and shrill again. &#8220;We could play
-hide-and-seek,&#8221; he announced boldly.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose giggled. Then she clapped a hand over her
-mouth.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s only for young &#8217;uns,&#8221; muttered Dick. &#8220;I be too
-big for that now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But suddenly Kitty defended the idea.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re right, of course, Dick,&#8221; she said wistfully. &#8220;But
-then, don&#8217;t you sometimes hate to feel you&#8217;re getting too big
-for the things that used to be fun? Eben&#8217;s the youngest of us,
-and he finished school more than a year ago. Soon we&#8217;ll be
-grown and married, with houses and children, and we won&#8217;t
-be able to run out after dark like this, and walk by the river,
-and watch for the moon. We&#8217;ll have to stay in, and rock babies,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[9]</span>
-and split firewood, and see that the doors are locked and the
-table set for breakfast. It&#8217;ll come on us all so soon now.&#8221; She
-looked at Johnny appealingly. &#8220;Let&#8217;s have one last play
-night&mdash;one night to be young&mdash;before we grow too old.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny&#8217;s eyes widened suddenly, and his mouth curved in
-a smile. Sally Rose had a cluster of apple buds pinned on her
-bodice, and their sweetness hovered all about. It made him
-feel sad, and happy, and unsettled as a girl, ready to agree to
-anything, even Kitty&#8217;s daft notion.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Right enough, Kit,&#8221; he said. &#8220;For one more night, we&#8217;ll
-be young. We&#8217;ll play hide-and-seek, if we never do again.
-I&#8217;ll count first, and the rest of you hide. This&#8217;ll be goal, this
-empty rum keg here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He sat down on the rum keg and buried his face in his
-hands. &#8220;Ten&mdash;fifteen&mdash;twenty&mdash;&#8221; he began slowly.</p>
-
-<p>With a little squeal, Sally Rose picked up her skirts and ran
-to hide behind a pile of lobster crates in a far corner. The
-others hesitated a moment.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Forty-five&mdash;fifty&mdash;&#8221; went on Johnny, still very slow.</p>
-
-<p>They scattered then. Eben crawled under a ship&#8217;s boat,
-broken and lying sideways on the wharf. Dick ran into a
-doorway across the lane. Kitty waited until she had barely
-time to crouch down behind a pile of wooden boxes marked
-with a black &#8220;W. I.&#8221;&mdash;West India goods.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ninety-five&mdash;one hundred&mdash;here I come!&#8221; Johnny
-shouted. He stood up and peered around him, but only for a
-moment. In almost no time at all he found Sally Rose, but it
-was a little longer before he pulled her out from behind the
-lobster crates. Perhaps he had peeked through his fingers,
-Kitty thought, so that he knew where to look. Perhaps he
-kissed Sally Rose before they were in plain sight again.</p>
-
-<p>Anyway, it was now Sally Rose&#8217;s turn to count, and she
-found Dick with little trouble.</p>
-
-<p>But after that they really did seem to be young again, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[10]</span>
-entered into the spirit of the game. Gradually the counting
-got slower, and the hiding places farther and farther away.
-Then Sally Rose and Kitty hid together behind a heap of
-mackerel nets, and Eben found them both at the same time.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tie find! Now which of you&#8217;s to count and go seek?&#8221;
-asked Dick, putting up his head in the sharp wind. &#8220;Just about
-once more, and &#8217;twill be curfew time, and we&#8217;ll have to go
-home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll count,&#8221; offered Kitty.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, let me,&#8221; said Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How about me having a turn?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was a strange voice that spoke, a boy&#8217;s voice, quiet and
-cool, but with a mocking note of laughter in it.</p>
-
-<p>They turned around suddenly and stared. There on the
-wharf behind them stood a tall fellow not much older than
-Johnny, with a lean face, sharp gray eyes, and sun-bleached
-hair. He wore cowhide boots and a loose hunting shirt over
-moosehide breeches. He carried a long pole with an iron barb
-on the end, such as the lumbermen used to break up log jams
-and herd the great rafts down the river.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m know I&#8217;m a stranger here,&#8221; he went on, &#8220;but I ain&#8217;t
-poison. I been watching you awhile. I&#8217;d like a hand in the
-game.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You came down river with the logs?&#8221; asked Dick slowly.</p>
-
-<p>The stranger nodded. &#8220;Aye, clear from the falls at Derryfield.
-A fellow can be lonely&mdash;away from his own town at
-night&mdash;first time away.&#8221; The sharpness went out of his eyes,
-and he looked younger, almost like a little boy.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course you can play,&#8221; cried Kitty, sympathy in her
-voice. &#8220;I&#8217;ve been lonely, too, sometimes, when I went to visit
-Sally Rose in Charlestown, and I know what it&#8217;s like. He can
-count this time, can&#8217;t he, Sally Rose?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course he can,&#8221; said Sally Rose, smiling at the strange
-lad, flicking her lashes.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[11]</span>Dick and Eben looked crestfallen. Johnny kicked the side
-of the rum keg. &#8220;Didn&#8217;t know backwoodsmen could count,&#8221;
-he sneered. &#8220;Tell us what your name is, if you want to play.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The stranger narrowed his eyes, then he opened them wide
-and smiled innocently. &#8220;My name&#8217;s Tom Trask,&#8221; he said,
-&#8220;and I can count.&#8221; He put his head down in the crook of his
-arm, but they did not hear the familiar &#8220;Ten&mdash;fifteen&mdash;twenty&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>After a moment, thinking he might be counting to himself,
-they started to straggle away. Kitty did not watch where the
-others went to. Seconds mattered at a time like this. She
-slipped behind a row of tar barrels at the corner of the counting
-house and stood there, listening to the water as it sucked
-at the piles underneath, to the sound of singing and fiddle
-music where the sailors were making merry on the deck of a
-ship moored a hundred yards off shore.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the voice of the young logger from up the
-Merrimack whipped out like the command of the captain to
-the volunteers who drilled on Frog Pond green come muster
-day.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ten&mdash;ten&mdash;double ten&mdash;forty-five&mdash;fifteen!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He reached his hundred all at once, leaped from the keg,
-and ran straight toward her, toward her, Kitty Greenleaf, of
-the High Street in Newburyport, who had never seen him
-before tonight. He ran to her, around the tar barrels, around
-the corner of the counting house. In a moment he had put his
-arms about her and kissed her on the mouth, kissed her hard.</p>
-
-<p>Not used to such sudden attack, not used to kissing any lad
-at all, except in kissing games where everybody looked on
-and laughed, or when Dick bade her a shy good night sometimes
-by the garden wall, she struggled, and sputtered, and
-pulled away.</p>
-
-<p>She wiped her mouth and looked up. &#8220;What&mdash;what did
-you do that for?&#8221; she gasped.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[12]</span>The gray eyes were smiling down at her, there in the chilly
-spring dark, the thin mouth crooked upward in a smile.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Like I said, a lad&#8217;s lonely in a strange town at night.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Before she could answer, she heard a soft little laugh
-beside them. She turned about. There stood Sally Rose. Sally
-Rose flickered her long lashes and opened her hazel eyes
-very wide.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There&#8217;s no need for you to be lonely,&#8221; she trilled. &#8220;My,
-but you&#8217;re a handsome lad! We&#8217;ve none such handsome lads
-in Charlestown.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom Trask eyed her coldly. His mouth was still smiling,
-but his eyes looked sharp and unfriendly in the candlelight
-that shone through the dusty panes of the counting-house
-window behind his head.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Charlestown can&#8217;t be much of a place,&#8221; he retorted,
-&#8220;though I wouldn&#8217;t know, for my business never took me
-there, and &#8217;tisn&#8217;t likely to. But&mdash;&#8221; He paused a moment, and
-his head lifted a little. &#8220;Up the Merrimack we got prettier
-girls than you. Maybe a score.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose&#8217;s eyes flashed, and she tossed her curls. &#8220;I don&#8217;t
-care what&#8217;s up the Merrimack. I look pretty enough in
-Charlestown! Pretty enough to please Captain Gerald
-Malory of the Twenty-third!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The logger did not answer her. He turned around and
-walked slowly down the wharf. Kitty could hear the ring of
-the iron nails in the soles of his country boots as he strode
-away.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[13]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Two</i><br />
-
-
-<small>IN READINESS TO MARCH</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;Insolent</span> plowboy!&#8221; exclaimed Sally Rose haughtily. She
-stood in front of the mirror wreathed with gilt cupids,
-her palms flat on the mahogany dressing table, and stared
-at her own reflection, curls loosened and falling over the
-shoulders of her white cambric night robe, her eyes narrowed
-and glinting coldly in the candlelight. Then the coldness
-dissolved away, and she giggled.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty, lying sprawled on the patchwork counterpane that
-covered the great four-poster bed, giggled too, uncertainly.
-Sally Rose had moods that changed so fast she was never able
-to keep up with them. So, as usual, she didn&#8217;t try, but spoke
-her mind in her turn.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He wasn&#8217;t a plowboy, he was a logger,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Maybe
-the owner of a whole forest as big as this parish. Some of
-them are, you know, those up-country lads. And he was too
-smart for you, Sally Rose. He knew you were making fun
-of him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose sat down on the counterpane and hugged her
-knees. She looked thoughtful. &#8220;Yes, he knew,&#8221; she said. &#8220;But
-when I said the same thing to Johnny Pettengall, Johnny<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[14]</span>
-thought I meant it. Inside, I almost laughed myself to death.
-I wonder why I couldn&#8217;t fool that backwoods boy, when I
-could fool Johnny.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe because he&#8217;s older,&#8221; suggested Kitty. &#8220;He looked
-older, anyway.&#8221; She got up, went to the chest, and blew the
-candle out.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; reflected Sally Rose, &#8220;older, but not really a man&mdash;not
-so much as twenty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Is that how old he is?&#8221; Kitty demanded. &#8220;Come on now,
-Sally Rose. Tell me all about him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;About who?&#8221; asked Sally Rose. &#8220;The logger? Tom
-Trask was his name, he said. I don&#8217;t know anything about
-Tom Trask, except that I caught him kissing you. I wonder
-why you didn&#8217;t stop him. If Granny finds out&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I didn&#8217;t have time to stop him,&#8221; retorted Kitty severely.
-&#8220;And don&#8217;t try to change the subject. The &#8216;him&#8217; I want to
-know about is that British officer. Captain Malory of the
-Twenty-third.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh!&#8221; exclaimed Sally Rose uneasily. She, too, left the
-bed, and went to stand between the patchwork curtains at the
-window. It was nearly midnight. Late moonrise silvered the
-sky over Plum Island, and the young leaves stirred restlessly
-in the sea wind, hiding the quiet darkness of Granny&#8217;s crocus
-and daffodil beds in the garden below.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You know you really want to tell me about him,&#8221; continued
-Kitty. &#8220;You always want to tell me about the lads
-you&#8217;ve taken a fancy to.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose did not turn, and when she answered, her voice
-was very quiet, with none of the usual merry undertones that
-made it so charming. &#8220;Oh, but this is different, Kitty. You
-guessed right&mdash;he is twenty. And Father says he&#8217;s an enemy.&#8221;
-She laughed ruefully. &#8220;In fact, Father says he&#8217;s a damned
-lobsterback, and I mustn&#8217;t see him again. But I sent him a
-note to tell him where I was going, and maybe.... But how<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[15]</span>
-did you know he was British? You only heard me say his
-name.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty could feel her face burn in the darkness. She still
-felt ashamed, though it hadn&#8217;t been her fault, really.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I read it in a letter,&#8221; she said with some stiffness, &#8220;the
-letter your father wrote to Granny, telling her why he was
-sending you here. I went down to meet the postrider, and
-when he handed me a letter addressed to C. Greenleaf, I
-never thought that it was for Granny instead of me, and so I
-read it. Of course she&#8217;s Catherine, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What did Father say?&#8221; asked Sally Rose. Her voice had
-a worried sound.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It began, &#8216;My dear,&#8217; instead of &#8216;Dear Mother&#8217;&mdash;that&#8217;s
-why I didn&#8217;t know it was for Gran, and I kept on reading. He
-said &#8216;I&#8217;m worried about our little girl.&#8217;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty paused, and Sally Rose did not question her any
-further just then. Both girls looked through the window,
-over the roofs of the town, at the wide dark waters of the
-Merrimack flowing seaward.</p>
-
-<p>Fifteen years ago, about this time of the year, Caleb Greenleaf
-had taken his wife, Becky, and his married sister, Anne
-Townsend, for a little jaunt on the river in the April sunshine.
-The young mothers had left their baby girls with
-Granny Greenleaf, and gone happily aboard his small fishing
-boat, and no one had foreseen the sudden mad wind, the
-squall of snow that would engulf them. Afterwards, Granny
-had brought up orphan Kitty, but Job Townsend had taken
-his motherless daughter back to Charlestown to his own
-people. The tragedy had brought him close to his mother-in-law,
-however, so that he still addressed her as &#8216;My dear,&#8217;
-and spoke of &#8216;our little girl,&#8217; and there had been much going
-back and forth between them.</p>
-
-<p>For a long moment now, the girls stared at the dark river.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[16]</span>
-Kitty was the first to take her eyes away. She did not refer to
-the old, sad loss, of which she knew they were both thinking.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Your father wrote that he was sending you to stay with
-us for a while,&#8221; she said quietly, &#8220;to get you away from that
-British officer you&#8217;ve been stealing out with. He said this&mdash;this
-enemy&mdash;puts on a homespun shirt and leather breeches,
-pretends to be one of our lads, and goes wherever he likes,
-on all the roads round Boston.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose gave a soft little laugh. &#8220;Yes,&#8221; she said, &#8220;Gerry
-does that sometimes. But I like him better when he wears his
-scarlet coat and his sword. He&#8217;s sure handsome enough to
-make any girl forget about Johnny Pettengall.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>There was a prideful note in Sally Rose&#8217;s voice as she
-shook back her yellow hair.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But he&#8217;s British, Sally Rose! He&#8217;s one of the King&#8217;s men
-who&#8217;ve captured Boston, and closed the port, and made so
-much trouble for the people who live there. Dick says they&#8217;ll
-march out and start shooting at us any day now. You&#8217;d be
-better off with a New England lad&mdash;even that logger.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose sighed. &#8220;I know,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Wars are hard on
-a girl, Kit. I know I&#8217;m supposed to hate the British, but how
-can I, when they are so handsome&mdash;when they have such
-gallant manners! I&#8217;ll bet wars don&#8217;t mean a thing to those
-cupids round the mirror. Love doesn&#8217;t know Whig from
-Tory. But why does he have to be&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Three sharp taps sounded on the other side of the bedroom
-wall.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Granny&#8217;s cane!&#8221; cried Kit softly, lowering her voice to a
-whisper. &#8220;That means we&#8217;re keeping her awake. But there&#8217;s
-so much I want to hear. How you met this Gerry, and&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hush!&#8221; breathed Sally Rose, remembering Granny&#8217;s
-outbursts of short-lived peppery wrath. &#8220;I&#8217;ll tell you tomorrow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They slipped into bed and lay quiet, side by side, arms<span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[17]</span>
-relaxed on the counterpane, watching the moonlight along
-the wall. First Kitty turned over and sighed. A few minutes
-later Sally Rose did the same. Finally Kitty sat up and
-punched her pillow. &#8220;I can&#8217;t sleep,&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Neither can I,&#8221; said Sally Rose. &#8220;I feel as if something
-were going to happen.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Below them in the town the church bells began to ring.</p>
-
-<p>They rang and rang, and kept on ringing. Kitty could see
-them in her mind, tossing wildly in their belfry, high over
-Market Square. She sat up higher in bed. Sally Rose sat up,
-too, and reached out for her cousin&#8217;s hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It must be a house afire,&#8221; said Kitty. &#8220;Can&#8217;t be a ship in
-trouble. The wind isn&#8217;t that strong.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She jumped out of bed and ran to the window, but no hot
-glare lit the sky, only the cold pale light of the April moon.
-Now a noise of shouting broke out in Fish Street, growing
-louder every minute. Lights flickered behind the windowpanes
-of the small wooden houses all about, and went on
-burning, steady and strong. Shadows moved across them.
-People were getting up.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty turned from the window. &#8220;Let&#8217;s get dressed!&#8221; she
-cried. &#8220;Maybe Granny will let us go and see what it&#8217;s all
-about.&#8221; But Sally Rose was already fastening her petticoat.</p>
-
-<p>Pulling large winter shawls about them to hide half-buttoned
-bodices and yawning plackets, they tiptoed into the
-hall, but Granny had got there ahead of them. She stood at
-the top of the stairs, small, and neat, and wizened, looking as
-if she were ready to go to church on a Sunday morning, her
-costume complete, even to gold eardrops and a chip bonnet
-with ostrich plumes. She had a lighted candle in one hand,
-and her cane, which she carried but seldom used, in the other.
-She opened her mouth to speak to them, but was interrupted
-by a heavy knocking on the front door and a man&#8217;s voice
-shouting for Timothy.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[18]</span>Timothy Coffin, Granny&#8217;s hired man who tended the garden
-and split the firewood, came tumbling down from his
-tiny attic chamber. Gnarled and weathered, not much
-younger than his employer, his arms were half in, half out
-of his woolen jacket, and he carried an old flintlock, like himself,
-a veteran of the siege of Louisburg thirty years ago.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Git out o&#8217; my way, women,&#8221; he shouted, as he tore past
-them. &#8220;I&#8217;ll bet it&#8217;s them varmints. I knowed they was about
-to strike!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Granny peered after him in bewilderment, as he fumbled
-with the lock of the heavy front door.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Does he mean the Indians?&#8221; she asked. &#8220;When I was a
-girl I used to hear stories&mdash;but it seems they&#8217;re too scarce
-hereabout to cause any trouble now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Timothy finally got the door open and stood there, listening
-to a hoarse excited voice that spoke in the dark outside.
-Suddenly he turned around.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m off, Ma&#8217;am Greenleaf!&#8221; he called to Granny. &#8220;Them
-British dogs has struck at last. I signed the pledge for a
-Minuteman. I swore to hold myself in readiness to march
-whenever I be ordered. An&#8217; I be ordered now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If you&#8217;re going far, you&#8217;d better take some food with
-you,&#8221; said Granny smartly. &#8220;Take all the bread in the cupboard,
-and the cold chicken&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And the plum cake,&#8221; interrupted Kitty. &#8220;We cut a plum
-cake yesterday.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where are you going, Timothy? Where did the &#8216;British
-dogs&#8217; strike?&#8221; asked Sally Rose, her eyes looking large in her
-white face.</p>
-
-<p>Timothy did not answer her. Instead he ducked into the
-kitchen. The front door yawned open, and through it they
-could hear the terrible clamor of the bells, the lift of excited
-voices as the townspeople hastened by.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[19]</span>&#8220;Come, girls,&#8221; said Granny. &#8220;I aim to learn what this commotion
-is all about.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They followed her out of the house and along High
-Street, past the Frog Pond and the new training green laid
-out where the windmill used to be.</p>
-
-<p>A crowd had gathered in front of the Wolfe Tavern, and
-they paused at the outskirts of it. Torches flared all about,
-lighting up the portrait of General Wolfe that hung on a pole
-near the tavern door, flickering on the windowpanes along
-Fish Street and on the startled faces of the Newburyport folk.
-Fashionable flounced ladies stood side by side with barefooted
-fishwives from Flatiron Point, while toddlers clung
-to their skirts, and urchins raced here and there, shouting with
-shrill voices, as if they played some sort of exciting game.
-Most of the men were gathered round the tavern&#8217;s high front
-steps, and new arrivals kept elbowing their way forward
-every minute. The throng bristled everywhere with gun barrels;
-a flintlock, a fowling piece, an old queen&#8217;s arm.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There&#8217;s Johnny,&#8221; said Sally Rose suddenly, and sure
-enough, Kitty craned her neck and saw him standing with
-the other men, his hands gripping a heavy musket. He was
-watching the tavern door intently. He did not look their
-way.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s going on here?&#8221; demanded Granny in a querulous
-tone. Everybody seemed to be talking at once, but nobody
-answered her.</p>
-
-<p>A man wearing a blue coat and carrying a sword came out
-of the tavern and stood still at the top of the steps, looking
-round him. He held up his hand. The urchins stopped shouting.
-The bells down the street pealed a time or two and then
-were silent. The voices of the crowd died away. A sudden
-burst of spring wind lifted a heap of dead leaves from the
-gutter and swirled it high in the face of the round white
-moon.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[20]</span>The man on the steps began to speak. &#8220;Men o&#8217; the Port,&#8221;
-he called out, in a voice that was low and deep, a voice that
-without lifting or straining itself could be heard in all the
-streets and lanes nearby, &#8220;New England blood&#8217;s been spilt,
-as some o&#8217; you know. But for them that don&#8217;t, I&#8217;ll read the
-word the postrider brought.&#8221; He waved a paper aloft, then
-held it square in front of him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;To all friends of American Liberty, let it be known!
-This morning before break of day, a brigade consisting of
-some twelve hundred redcoats ... marched to Lexington ...
-and on to Concord Bridge. Many were slain both sides, and
-the roads are bloody. Another brigade is now upon the march
-from Boston!&#8217;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He put the paper down. &#8220;Men o&#8217; the Port, such as signed
-the pledge, &#8216;We do enlist ourselves as Minutemen and do
-engage that we will hold ourselves in readiness to march!&#8217;
-All such men to the training green! Fall in by companies!
-Come, lads! Up the hill!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>With a cheer the men surged up Fish Street, shoulders
-hunched and heads thrust forward, their guns gripped in
-their hands. With cries of dismay and alarm the women
-began to trail after them. Granny stood still, leaning on her
-cane.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There&#8217;s Dick and Eben,&#8221; cried Kitty. &#8220;Dick!&#8221; She lifted
-her voice. &#8220;Dick, come here and tell me where they are
-going. Dick, are you going too?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But Dick and Eben were hurrying after the Minutemen.
-They looked at the girls and waved, and then ran on.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah, here&#8217;s Mr. Cary,&#8221; Granny exclaimed. &#8220;Now we&#8217;ll
-see what all this uproar is likely to lead to.&#8221; She trotted over
-to the minister who was moving swiftly up the street, his wig
-not quite straight, and the linen bands at his throat somewhat
-disordered. &#8220;Mr. Cary, tell me now, what does all this
-mean?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[21]</span>The minister paused, adjusted his wig, and mopped his
-brow with a lawn handkerchief. &#8220;I&#8217;m afraid it means war,
-Madame Greenleaf. It was bound to come. They&#8217;ve oppressed
-us too far. But about this latest outrage&mdash;I myself
-talked with the postrider, and he was there and saw it all. A
-frightful slaughter!&#8221; He looked at the girls and lowered his
-voice, but they heard him all the same.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He says that when he left, the whole rout was fleeing
-back towards Boston, but he heard Captain Parker say that if
-they mean to have a war, let it begin here. &#8217;Twould seem
-they so mean, and that it has begun.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Who were the redcoats?&#8221; asked Sally Rose in a small
-tremulous voice. &#8220;Did he say if it was the Twenty-third?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Cary looked at her sharply. &#8220;Who knows one redcoat
-from another, and what does it matter?&#8221; he demanded. &#8220;But
-I believe he did mention the Twenty-third. It seems they
-were not in the thickest of the engagement, but posted out to
-help their fellow scoundrels home to Boston.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose let her breath escape in a little sigh of relief.
-Granny tapped her cane on a granite horse block nearby to
-get Mr. Carey&#8217;s attention again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, what do our lads think to do about it? Why get
-folks out of bed in the middle of the night? Must we fortify
-the Port and barricade ourselves in our houses because there&#8217;s
-been a fuss in Lexington? Are the British headed for Frog
-Pond Green?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Cary started to smile and then bit his lip. &#8220;Hardly
-that, but our companies will assemble and march from there.
-The word&#8217;s been passed for such men as are able to bear arms
-to make their way to Cambridge with all speed.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Huh!&#8221; said Granny. &#8220;Cambridge is a good ways off. I
-hope Timothy took the plum cake. Come, girls! Now that
-I&#8217;ve satisfied my mind, I&#8217;m going home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh no, Gran,&#8221; pleaded Sally Rose, composed and sure<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[22]</span>
-of herself again, now that she felt reasonably certain her
-British Gerry had come to no harm. &#8220;I want to go up to the
-green and see them off. It&#8217;ll hearten them to have us there,
-to have us wave them good luck as they march away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Nonsense!&#8221; snapped Granny. &#8220;The lads will have other
-things on their minds. They got no time now for yellow hair.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The squeal of a fife and the solemn throb of a beating
-drum broke through the shouts of the crowd on the training
-green.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But I don&#8217;t want to go back to bed,&#8221; pouted Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And why did you think you were going back to bed,
-miss?&#8221; Granny demanded. &#8220;Parson Cary says there&#8217;s a war
-begun. That means we&#8217;ll into the attic and try to find those
-bullet molds I put away when I hoped we wouldn&#8217;t need
-them any more. They haven&#8217;t been used since your grandfather&#8217;s
-time, but I think likely they&#8217;re still there.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[23]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Three</i><br />
-
-
-<small>TWO TO BEGIN</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;I &nbsp;told</span> you they&#8217;d fight,&#8221; said the young man grimly,
-biting the end of a cartridge and letting a thin stream of
-black powder dribble into the pan of his flintlock. He knelt at
-the tail gate of the farm wagon that rattled and swayed from
-side to side as Sergeant Higgs of the Twenty-third drove it
-pell-mell down the Charlestown Road.</p>
-
-<p>His hat was gone and his red coat in tatters. His white
-breeches were stained with gunpowder and the blood of the
-wounded men who lay on the floor of the wagon; stained,
-too, with the gray earth of this unfamiliar country, so unlike
-the ruddy loam of his native Devonshire.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I told you they&#8217;d fight,&#8221; he repeated. &#8220;I been amongst
-&#8217;em, and I know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Nobody answered him, but he heard the roar of musket
-fire back in the hills, the roar of flames from a burning house
-in a grove of crooked trees a few yards away. He thought
-impatiently that it had never taken him so long to load
-before.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Shut your pan. Charge with your cartridge. Draw your
-hammer,&#8221; he muttered, as his fingers moved swiftly along<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[24]</span>
-the reeking barrel. No old hand at this business of soldiering,
-he felt reassured to find the phrases of the British Arms
-Manual fall so readily from his tongue.</p>
-
-<p>The cart rocked and rumbled down a narrow track at the
-edge of the salt marshes. Moors, clay pits, and scrubby oak
-trees stretched to the foot of the hillside on his left. To his
-right, in the middle of the river, he could see the lights on
-board the man-o&#8217;-war <i>Somerset</i>, and beyond them, the low
-roofs and steeples of Boston. Would he ever present arms on
-Boston Common again, or offer his own arms in another sort
-of way to the pretty girls who went walking there? He began
-to doubt it now.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Run down your cartridge. Withdraw your rammer.&#8221; He
-was ready at last. He lifted the gun and pointed it horizontally,
-pointed it, pulled the ten-pound trigger, and at the
-same instant stiffened his body against the powerful recoil.</p>
-
-<p>Then he heard a triumphant roar as the gun went off,
-sending its charge of powder and ball in the direction of the
-pursuing Yankees. Hooray! Sometimes it merely sparked
-and fizzled in the pan. God send he had hit somebody!</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Yankees don&#8217;t fire like that, lad,&#8221; he heard a voice
-mutter.</p>
-
-<p>Turning his head in surprise, he looked down at a battered
-veteran who crouched a few feet away, dabbing at a shoulder
-wound.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you mean?&#8221; he demanded. There wasn&#8217;t enough
-of the man&#8217;s uniform left to tell whether he was an officer
-or not. Best be safe and address him so. His voice had a ring
-of authority, for all it came so weakly from his throat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know.&#8221; The older man smiled through bluish lips.
-&#8220;You fire as you were taught, and so do I. Did you ever engage
-with the Rebels before?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not exactly, sir,&#8221; said Gerry Malory of the Twenty-third.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[25]</span>
-&#8220;I&#8217;ve gone amongst them somewhat&mdash;&#8216;incognito,&#8217; one
-might say.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah! Detailed for spy duty, perhaps?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry felt his face flush. I talk too much, he thought.</p>
-
-<p>The dusk was drawing in thickly now, with a little fog
-winding up from the river. Flashes of light burst out on the
-road behind him, like fireflies in a hawthorn thicket, all the
-way back towards Cambridge where the relief regiments
-under Lord Percy were trying to cover the rout of the troops
-that had charged so proudly that morning on Lexington
-Green.</p>
-
-<p>He heard a whoosh in the dull air behind them. &#8220;Duck,
-lads,&#8221; he cried, and flung himself down on the floor of the
-cart. The whoosh turned to a shrill whistle and then to a
-scream as it passed overhead. Then came a thud and a splash
-as the heavy ball fell harmlessly on the sludgy ground.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry lifted his head. &#8220;Drive like the devil, Sergeant,&#8221; he
-shouted. &#8220;Once we get over Charlestown Neck, we&#8217;re as safe
-as the Tower of London. They&#8217;ll never follow us under the
-guns of our own ships.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Causeway&#8217;s just ahead!&#8221; shouted back Sergeant Higgs,
-whipping the horses.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry stood up and looked around him. They were well
-down on the narrow neck of wasteland now, between the
-wide, sea-flowing mouths of the Charles and the Mystic. He
-could smell the salt air and feel the cool wind on his hot face.
-Groups of weary red-coated men straggled into the marsh
-grass to let them drive through. How many had preceded
-him into safety, how many were left in the running fight
-behind, he couldn&#8217;t tell. But he saw campfires on the smooth
-green hills above Charlestown village, and he thought longingly
-of the farms and orchards there, a little more longingly
-of the Bay and Beagle Tavern and a girl called Sally Rose.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[26]</span>&#8220;Not detailed for spy duty?&#8221; asked the veteran persistently.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry looked down at him, and he was enough of a soldier
-to realize that the wounded man wanted to engage in conversation
-in order to forget his pain. He seated himself on the
-floor of the wagon and answered evasively.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, but I go about sometimes. I like to know what kind
-of men the Rebels are, and what their country is like. Maybe
-walk out with a girl and play a prank or two. I be West
-Country-bred, and not too fond o&#8217; towns and barracks life.&#8221;
-Then he thought of a way to shift the attention to another
-matter. &#8220;But what were you saying about the way I shoot?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The man grinned. A bit of color had come back into his
-face now, and the dark stain was no longer spreading on the
-shoulder of his coat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, you load and prime your piece and blast away,
-hoping the shot will tell. The Yankees sight and aim. I saw
-the man who hit me. Stood up behind a stone wall, looked me
-over, head to toe, and marked me down. We fire line to line,
-and they fire man to man. We shoot in the direction of the
-enemy. They pick a target. That&#8217;s why they&#8217;ve got us running
-away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>You mean they shoot like poachers, thought Gerry. Like
-poachers after pheasants in the squire&#8217;s bit o&#8217; woodland. But
-he did not say it out loud. Every man&#8217;s past was his own, but
-to keep it so, he had to be wary.</p>
-
-<p>They had crossed the Neck by this time, and the road
-veered away to the right, circling the foot of Bunker Hill and
-heading for Charlestown village.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t hear them firing after us any more,&#8221; said Gerry,
-peering back the way they had come. Some of the sunset red
-was still left in the sky, and enough daylight for him to see
-that the road behind them was choked with carts and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[27]</span>
-stragglers, but the whole pace of the retreat seemed to have
-slowed.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, and you won&#8217;t hear them again tonight. They won&#8217;t
-dare follow us into Charlestown. Could you hold me up,
-lad? I do not breathe as easily as I am wont to do.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry knelt down, got his hands under the limp elbows of
-the fallen officer, and hoisted him into a sitting position
-against the side of the cart. The man drew a few painful
-breaths and then spoke again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Thank you for your trouble. I am Captain Blakeslee of
-the King&#8217;s Own.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8217;Twas no trouble, sir,&#8221; muttered Gerry uneasily. &#8220;I be
-Private Malory of the Twenty-third.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The captain&#8217;s face relaxed in a smile. &#8220;A fine regiment&mdash;the
-Welsh Fusileers. I was a guest when they made merry on
-last St. David&#8217;s day. Ah&mdash;it comes to me now. I knew I had
-seen your face before. Were you not the lad who led forth
-the goat with the gilded horns? He ran wild, I remember,
-leaped on the table, and up-ended our wine glasses just as
-we were going to drink to the Prince of Wales! A ludicrous
-scene!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry&#8217;s cheeks grew hot in the darkness, and he clenched
-his fists to keep his shame and resentment down. Yes, he had
-led the damn goat that according to army tradition preceded
-the Welsh Fusileers whenever they passed in review. Led,
-and cleaned it, and curried it, and bedded it down every
-night in a stable near Long Wharf, and twisted garlands
-about its horns on parade days. He still remembered the
-hideous embarrassment of the moment when the beast had
-escaped him.</p>
-
-<p>Signed up for a soldier, he had, reluctantly, but expecting
-his share of excitement and glory. Until today he had done
-nothing save tend that black-tempered goat. No wonder he
-had fallen into the habit of &#8220;borrowing&#8221; a captain&#8217;s uniform<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[28]</span>
-or an American&#8217;s homespun breeches and tow shirt, and gone
-swaggering out amongst the girls in the Yankee villages now
-and then! A man had to have his pride and sweetness and a
-bit of sport in life. He had learned to imitate the officers&#8217;
-pompous speech and attitudes, or to talk with a New England
-twang. Maybe he&#8217;d go for a strolling player when he got
-home again. Maybe he&#8217;d be good at it, he thought. But of
-course, it was in his blood, and no wonder if he should turn
-out that way.</p>
-
-<p>The farm cart ground to a stop just as Gerry was about to
-mutter that it was indeed he who led the goat. Sergeant
-Higgs leaned over to confer with an officer in fresh white
-trousers and trim jacket, a man who had obviously taken no
-part in the fighting that day. Then the officer stood aside, the
-sergeant pulled sharply on the reins, and Gerry felt the
-wagon leave the road and go lurching across a field at the foot
-of Bunker Hill. One of the wounded men sat up. The others
-began to moan and swear.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re off course, Higgs!&#8221; shouted Gerry, forgetting
-that his barracks-mate outranked him and was entitled to a
-more respectful salute.</p>
-
-<p>Higgs turned around, his broad face a white blur in the
-darkness. &#8220;I be following orders, Private Malory. We&#8217;re to
-wait by yon hill till the troops clears a way through the town
-so the boats can take us off. By midnight we&#8217;ll all be back in
-Boston.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Thank God,&#8221; murmured Captain Blakeslee, and then as
-Higgs drew up the cart in a little grove of locust trees, he
-turned to the younger man. &#8220;Will you help me down on the
-grass for a bit, lad? I&#8217;ve taken a notion to feel the earth under
-me. Better under than over.&#8221; He gave a weak smile.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Give us a hand, Higgs,&#8221; called Gerry, trying to lift the
-captain, almost a dead weight this time.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[29]</span>Jack Higgs was six years older than Gerry. This was not
-his first battle, nor the first wounded man he had seen. The
-moment he joined them in the bed of the wagon, he thrust
-his hand inside the tattered coat. Then he pulled it out again
-and muttered under his breath. For a long moment he stared
-at Gerry.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Is&mdash;is it bad?&#8221; faltered the young private, feeling suddenly
-afraid, as he had not felt all that afternoon when the
-Yankees were shooting at him as he retreated down the
-Charlestown Road.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Blakeslee gave a hoarse cough.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Bad enough,&#8221; said Higgs. &#8220;Tell you what, Gerry. Go
-down into Charlestown and see if you can find a surgeon. Tell
-him we got need of him here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Put&mdash;me&mdash;on the ground,&#8221; whispered Captain Blakeslee.
-He lay slumped against the side of the wagon and tried to lift
-his head, but he was not strong enough.</p>
-
-<p>Together Gerry and Sergeant Higgs got him out of the
-cart and stretched the limp body on the young grass under a
-locust tree.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll go quickly,&#8221; Gerry promised. &#8220;I&#8217;ll come back with
-the surgeon. I hope &#8217;twill be in time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good luck to you, lad,&#8221; said the sergeant. He was still
-bending over the wounded man when Gerry hastened off.</p>
-
-<p>The journey proved not to be a long one, but over all too
-soon. Ten minutes hard running across the fields, a brief
-encounter, and he came pounding back. Jack Higgs stood
-leaning against the wagon. He had lighted a little fire of
-dead boughs, and in its light his usually pleasant face looked
-somber, his eyes a little sick. He was in his shirt sleeves now.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;They told me I was a fool,&#8221; panted Gerry. &#8220;Told me no
-surgeon would come out this far to save one man, or three,
-or four, when so many lies bleeding there in the town. How
-is the Captain? Jack&mdash;where is your coat?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[30]</span>Sergeant Higgs motioned toward a dark heap under the
-locust tree. For a moment he stood silent, then he spoke.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Surgeons couldn&#8217;t ha&#8217; saved him, Gerry&mdash;not a whole
-regiment of &#8217;em marched out here two and two. When I put
-my hand to him, his flesh was already cold. He was about
-gone. I knew they wouldn&#8217;t come. I only sent you to get you
-away. You never been in battle, never seen men die before.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Your coat&mdash;?&#8221; faltered Gerry. Not that the coat mattered,
-but he felt he could not talk of anything that did.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I laid it across his face,&#8221; said Higgs, clearing his throat.
-&#8220;Afterwards. It seemed more decent-like, somehow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry sat down on the grass beside the little fire, there
-being nothing else to do. The moon had risen and was shining
-wanly down on the hills and pastures, on the roofs of Charlestown
-village. It made a path of silver across the black bay, a
-path to the lighted shores of Boston. Lanterns flashed in the
-midst of it, lanterns on the prows of the boats that were carrying
-the badly defeated British back to the town they had left
-so proudly the night before.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry thought how he himself and the rest of the Twenty-third
-had marched out that morning, fifers playing &#8220;Yankee
-Doodle,&#8221; and colors lifting on the spring wind. They had
-marched inland by way of the Neck, through Roxbury to
-Cambridge, and so far, it was all a game. But the sport ceased
-near Lexington where they met their fleeing comrades who
-had gone to Concord to raid the Yankees&#8217; powder magazine.
-Powerful grenadiers dropped exhausted and lay like dogs
-after a hunt, panting, their tongues hanging out. The Marines
-and Light Infantry scattered helter-skelter across the countryside,
-while the farmers fired at them from behind every wall
-and tree.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cover the retreat,&#8221; his regiment had been ordered, and
-they had done so, in a running battle all the way back to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[31]</span>
-Cambridge. It was there that an officer had detailed him and
-his sergeant to help get the wounded away.</p>
-
-<p>And now one of those wounded was dead, Captain Blakeslee.
-Why should it matter to him, when he had known the
-captain such a little time? But it did matter. A lump swelled
-and stiffened inside his throat. Then he looked down towards
-Charlestown and thought of Sally Rose. But she wouldn&#8217;t be
-there, of course. She had gone to visit her kin in a town called
-Newburyport, a town in the country somewhere. Her father
-had sent her away because he thought she was too good for
-a captain of the Welsh Fusileers. And if he felt that way
-about a captain, how would he feel about the private who
-tended a goat in stable and led it out on muster day? How
-would Sally Rose feel if she knew the truth about him? And
-then somehow Sally Rose began to dwindle in his mind, and
-for the moment she did not matter any more. He remembered
-that he had fought his first battle and come out alive,
-but Captain Blakeslee was dead, and maybe tomorrow there
-would be another battle, and he would be the one to lie under
-the locust tree, under some comrade&#8217;s tattered coat.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Open your haversack, lad,&#8221; said Sergeant Higgs, his voice
-cheery again. &#8220;I found a spring on the hillside a bit of a ways
-off, and I&#8217;ve been fetching water to the men in the wagon
-there. They be all somewhat easier now, and the boats will
-have us in Boston before long.&#8221; He threw another armful of
-dry branches on the fire. &#8220;You&#8217;ve salt pork and bread, like
-the rest of us, so eat up your supper. &#8217;Twill taste little worse
-for the fact that good men be dead, and we lost the day.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know we were driven back,&#8221; murmured Gerry, obeying
-the sergeant and taking out his small parcel of food. &#8220;But
-didn&#8217;t the troops get the Rebel stores they went for? Didn&#8217;t
-they get to Concord before...?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Higgs nodded. He had run the point of his bayonet through
-a lump of thick, greasy-looking meat and held it over the fire.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[32]</span>
-&#8220;Oh, they got there, all right,&#8221; he said. &#8220;But they&#8217;d been
-better off if they&#8217;d stayed in barracks, according to the way I
-heard. They broke up a couple of cannon, rolled some powder
-kegs into a millpond, and burnt a house or two. Then they
-was routed. But &#8217;twould be a different story if the Yankees
-would come out in the open and fight like men.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;They seemed to be in an almighty rage about something,&#8221;
-said Gerry, beginning to toast his own meat, keeping his eyes
-away from the shadow under the locust tree. &#8220;And they had
-no sort of uniformed army. Men in shirts and leather breeches,
-just as they&#8217;d come from the plow or workshop. Well, all
-spring we&#8217;ve been sure there was fighting ahead of us. Now
-it&#8217;s begun.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; said Jack Higgs, looking out at the dark shapes of
-the rescue boats that crossed and recrossed the moonlit water.
-&#8220;It&#8217;s begun, and it took two to begin it&mdash;we and they. But at
-the end&mdash;there&#8217;ll be left only one.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And it better be we!&#8221; Gerry felt his own features soften
-in a smile.</p>
-
-<p>He put up his head in the sharp night air and heard the
-bugles sounding on the peaceful green crest of Bunker Hill.
-They were British bugles, and they reassured him. For the
-last hour or so, he had been sure he would never have the
-heart to go forth disguised and playing pranks about the
-countryside again. But now it seemed to him that perhaps he
-might.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[33]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Four</i><br />
-
-
-<small>THE COURAGE TO GO AND THE
-FEET TO GET HIM THERE</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;Not</span> that way, child!&#8221; cried Granny warningly. &#8220;Lord
-o&#8217; mercy, Sally Rose, take care!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose stood by the huge brick fireplace in the raftered
-kitchen and stared desperately about her. In her hands she
-held a hot iron kettle full of molten silver-gray lead. It was
-too heavy for her to hold any longer, and she saw no place
-to set it safely down. Kitty would have figured out ahead of
-time what she meant to do with it, but not Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let me help you,&#8221; cried Kitty, jumping up from her
-place at the heavy oak table where she had been preparing
-the bullet molds while Sally Rose heated the lead. She
-reached her cousin&#8217;s side a second too late. The kettle tilted
-dangerously and fell from Sally Rose&#8217;s loosened fingers,
-just missing the yellow flames beneath. It lay on its side at
-the edge of the wide hearth, its contents spilling out harmlessly
-in a gray film over the rosy old bricks, sinking into the
-cracks between them.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m sorry, Gran,&#8221; said Sally Rose contritely.</p>
-
-<p>Granny sniffed. &#8220;Sorrow butters no parsnips,&#8221; she retorted.
-&#8220;Well, it&#8217;s no use crying over spilt lead, I suppose. That&#8217;s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[34]</span>
-one batch of bullets will do no harm to the British. But it&#8217;s
-a mercy you didn&#8217;t burn yourself or set the house afire.&#8221; She
-straightened her muslin cap and smoothed her plaid apron
-with thin, blue-veined hands.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty let her glance rove out of the window, at the gooseberry
-bushes in the kitchen garden and the moist brown
-seedbeds where Timothy had been spading yesterday. His
-old hickory-handled spade still leaned against the garden
-wall. No telling when he would use it again. Timothy had
-taken his gun and gone to Cambridge, and it seemed like half
-the town had gone with him. Even boys not much older than
-herself, boys like Johnny Pettengall. She still didn&#8217;t know
-about Dick, but then, Dick didn&#8217;t have a gun, so he&#8217;d probably
-be down at the shipyard, just as he always was. She&#8217;d make
-some excuse to go by there, later in the day. She wondered
-about the strange lad from up the Merrimack. Maybe, since
-the war was in Massachusetts Colony, the New Hampshire
-men would think they had no call to go. Still, with his keen
-eyes and sharp jaw, he looked like he&#8217;d be wherever there
-was a fight going on. She heard Granny&#8217;s brisk voice calling
-her attention back to the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I suppose you&#8217;d better run down to the gunsmith&#8217;s, Kitty,
-and fetch me some more pig lead&mdash;all he can spare. Sally
-Rose, you and me&#8217;ll get the bake ovens going. Uncle Moses
-Chase came by here awhile back, and he says they&#8217;re gathering
-supplies to send by oxcart&mdash;enough to feed the lads for
-a few days: hams, flour, meal, salt fish and cooked victuals;
-lint and medicines, too, in case&mdash;who told you to take your
-apron off, Sally Rose?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you think I&#8217;d better go with Kitty?&#8221; asked Sally
-Rose eagerly. &#8220;Lead&#8217;s apt to be heavy, you know, and&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What she can&#8217;t carry, the shop will send after her, I don&#8217;t
-doubt,&#8221; replied Granny. &#8220;Sally Rose, you start yourself for
-the flour barrels. Take half rye and half cornmeal....&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[35]</span>Sally Rose pouted. Kitty knew she was pouting, although
-she did not look at her. She tied on her new chip hat with the
-velvet roses, and hastened through the garden, into the street.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Kitty, take off that hat and put on your old serge hood!&#8221;
-Granny called after her. &#8220;It looks like there&#8217;ll be a shower
-any minute.&#8221; Kitty pretended not to hear her.</p>
-
-<p>She walked down the hill into the town, past Mr. Dalton&#8217;s
-mansion house and the Wolfe Tavern. People still loitered
-about in little groups, but last night&#8217;s excitement seemed to
-have given place to a quieter mood, uneasiness, anxiety, perhaps
-fear. The shoemaker stood in front of his gabled shop,
-a wooden last in one hand and a strip of purple kid in the
-other, talking to a grizzled old man who peddled clams in
-Water Street.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, we&#8217;ve heard no more,&#8221; he was saying. &#8220;No more o&#8217;
-the Concord Fight, or our lads that marched away. Whole
-colony&#8217;s up, though. Half Essex County&#8217;s gone, the stage
-driver says, and the men way out west beyond Boston are
-moving in from their side. Hope to squeeze the British in
-between.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye,&#8221; said the peddler. &#8220;The Hampshire lads has started
-across the river, too. Some by ferry, and some with smacks
-and dories, and they say there&#8217;ll be more. The word&#8217;s gone
-inland, way beyond Rockingham.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You mean they&#8217;re going to make cause with us and fight
-the King&#8217;s men?&#8221; asked the shoemaker, twisting the strip of
-purple kid in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>The peddler nodded. &#8220;They&#8217;ve long been sworn to. And
-everywheres now, them as was undecided whether to go
-Whig or Tory has got to make up their minds. You&#8217;ll find
-things&#8217;ll be different, now blood&#8217;s been spilt.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty walked on, and the words echoed disturbingly in her
-head. The street sloped sharply down to the water, with shops
-along both sides&mdash;the milliner&#8217;s, the baker&#8217;s, the butcher&#8217;s&mdash;shutters<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[36]</span>
-down and doors wide open, just as on other days, but
-nobody seemed to be buying anything. Most of the shopkeepers,
-like the shoemaker, had joined the uneasy groups
-in the street outside.</p>
-
-<p>The gunsmith&#8217;s shop was in a narrow lane behind the
-church, and when she reached it, she found its door tightly
-barred and a crude sign dangling from the latch. <i>Gorn to
-Cambridj till further notiz</i>, the sign said.</p>
-
-<p>She stood there uncertainly for a moment, and looked
-about her. The soft gray sky seemed to match her own mood,
-uncertain whether to pour down rain or let the sun shine
-through. Between the houses she could see the waters of the
-river, a darker gray. Not all the men had followed the gunsmith&#8217;s
-example, for busy crews were working about the
-wharves and slips, hammers rang from the shipyards, and
-the tall chimneys of the distillery lifted their plumes of
-smoke, just as if it were an ordinary morning. Somehow the
-sight reassured her. She&#8217;d go and look for Dick, she thought,
-and make sure that he hadn&#8217;t run off with the Minutemen.
-Then she&#8217;d go home and tell Gran about the gunsmith, take
-off her hat, and get ready to help with the baking.</p>
-
-<p>As she passed the sailors&#8217; boardinghouse in Chandler&#8217;s
-Lane, she noticed Eben in the backyard chopping wood, and
-she called to him. He straightened up, looked at her for a
-minute, then put his ax down and came over to the board
-fence.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What are you after, Kitty? &#8217;Tisn&#8217;t no use looking for
-Dick,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t know that I was looking for Dick,&#8221; said Kitty
-tartly, chagrined because Eben had read her mind so plain.
-&#8220;But now that you speak of him, I don&#8217;t suppose he&#8217;s off
-for Cambridge, too?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Eben nodded solemnly. &#8220;Ye-a, Dick&#8217;s gone.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[37]</span>Kitty felt shocked in spite of herself. &#8220;But how could he?
-He doesn&#8217;t have a gun.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;s got a tomahawk,&#8221; said Eben. &#8220;Tomahawk they
-took out o&#8217; his great-grandmother&#8217;s head when the Indian
-tried to scalp her up in Haverhill in &#8217;96.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, I know that old thing,&#8221; cried Kitty. &#8220;It&#8217;s duller&#8217;n
-a hoe. We played with it when we were children. Might as
-well try to fight with a warming pan!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Eben shrugged. &#8220;Colonel told him to come along,&#8221; he
-said. &#8220;Told him there&#8217;d be men there was poorer armed, he
-didn&#8217;t doubt. Said the courage to go and the feet to get him
-there was all he&#8217;d really need.&#8221; Suddenly he fell silent. He
-looked down at his own bare feet and stubbed one great toe
-in the moist earth.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty felt a little shaken. So Dick had gone off to fight
-the British. Dick, that she&#8217;d played with when they were
-toddlers and he lived in an adjoining house on High Street.
-How excited they had been, that day when they first found
-out they were big enough to scramble back and forth over
-the low fence. And now he had taken his old tomahawk and
-marched away, a man with other men! And she was left here
-to do Gran&#8217;s bidding, just as if she were still a little girl. But
-she did not feel like a little girl. She felt sad and tremulous
-and excited, as if she had the weight of the world on her
-shoulders, and still, a little happy in spite of it all. Maybe
-this was the feel of growing up. Maybe last night when they
-played hide-and-seek had really been their last night to
-be young, though they hadn&#8217;t known it then. Mostly, she
-thought, we never know when we do anything the last time.</p>
-
-<p>She suddenly realized that a soft rain had begun to fall,
-cooling her checks and gathering mistily in her hair.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Eb&mdash;en!&#8221; shouted a buxom woman from the back steps
-of the boardinghouse. &#8220;Take in my washing off the line!
-Step lively there!&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[38]</span>Eben muttered, and his face burned crimson as he walked
-away.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty looked after him for a moment, and her heart stirred
-with quick sympathy. It must be hard for Eben to be left
-behind to do such humble chores while his friend had gone
-off to war and been accepted as a man. The soft drizzle
-turned into a downpour. She thought, belatedly and with
-some alarm, of the roses on her hat. She turned and hurried
-back to Market Square and up the hill, walking with her head
-bent because of the rain, trying to shield her finery with one
-lifted hand. So it was that she did not see him until they
-almost collided under the tavern sign that hung on a long
-pole high over the sloping street. Then she caught her breath
-and stepped back, and looked up into the eyes of Tom Trask,
-the logger from Derryfield.</p>
-
-<p>He stood there, bareheaded in the rain, and he wore the
-same hunting shirt and moosehide breeches, but he was not
-smiling now, though his gray eyes lighted with recognition.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Playing games on the dock tonight, Miss Kitty?&#8221; he asked
-her, and in spite of his sober face, his voice had a teasing note
-in it.</p>
-
-<p>She smiled and shook the rain from her lashes. &#8220;How did
-you know my name was Kitty?&#8221; she asked him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Heard &#8217;em call you that times enough&mdash;last night, I
-mean, whilst I was looking on.&#8221; His eyes smiled now, but
-his mouth remained a thin line. He seemed to be waiting
-for her answer.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; she said. &#8220;We&#8217;re not often so silly, and besides, I
-doubt if the rain will stop. And even if it did&mdash;there are
-hardly enough of us left to play.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He nodded. &#8220;I seen two o&#8217; your friends marching off last
-night,&#8221; he said. &#8220;All our crew was asleep on the raft when
-the bells begun to go, but when we got into town and heard
-the news, &#8217;twas no surprise. I was over to Johnny Stark&#8217;s sawmill<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[39]</span>
-just before I started down river, and he said he figured
-Boston had stood about all they could o&#8217; the British, and the
-British had stood about all they could o&#8217; Boston. Said he expected
-to be taking his gun down any day. Well, if he&#8217;s got
-the word, he&#8217;s likely there, him and the rest o&#8217; the boys, and
-I aim to join them, only&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty could feel her hair turning dank and the raindrops
-thickening on her lashes. She thought of her sodden hat, and
-sighed inwardly, but she made no move to excuse herself and
-leave the stranger.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&mdash;only I left my musket at home in Derryfield, and the
-gunsmiths here ain&#8217;t doing business today. Has any o&#8217; your
-menfolk got a spare gun, Miss Kitty?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She hesitated. He held out his lean hard hands with
-freckles on the backs of them. &#8220;I suppose I could use these
-on the varmints,&#8221; he muttered. &#8220;But powder and ball&#8217;s the
-quicker way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There is a gun in the barn loft that belonged to my
-father,&#8221; she said slowly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You speak like your daddy&#8217;s dead,&#8221; he answered, not
-looking at her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. He drowned in the river just below here, not long
-after I was born.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t remember much o&#8217; mine, either. Killed when we
-took Quebec in &#8217;59. Shooting shoulder to shoulder with the
-British then we was, and now we&#8217;re shooting at &#8217;em.&#8221; He
-shrugged his lean shoulders. &#8220;Well, I&#8217;d sure like to borrow
-your daddy&#8217;s gun, if your mother don&#8217;t object none to the
-idea.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My mother&#8217;s dead, too, and Granny would likely make
-a fuss, but I don&#8217;t think we&#8217;ll ask Granny.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty had finally made up her mind. &#8220;Come on,&#8221; she said,
-flicking her fingers lightly against his sleeve.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[40]</span>His fingers were not light when they gripped her arm.
-They were sure and steady. Together they walked up Fish
-Street and turned right to pass the Frog Pond and the new
-training green. He strode proudly along with his head up,
-but he did not talk to her. Instead he whistled a plaintive air
-she had never heard before.</p>
-
-<p>When they got to Gran&#8217;s neat clapboarded house, she
-guided him through the front gate and along the garden
-path, half screened by lilac bushes growing thick and tall.</p>
-
-<p>A small whitewashed barn stood at the rear of the property,
-but Granny kept no livestock any more, and the inside of it
-smelled clean and musty like an attic, with no scent of dung
-or hay. The loft had two tiny windows set high under the
-eaves, but no other light, and it took Kitty a few minutes
-before she could make out the old gun hanging on the wall
-between a moth-eaten lap robe and a long wooden fork for
-pitching hay.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There it is,&#8221; she murmured, pointing, breathless and a
-little proud.</p>
-
-<p>He strode forward and pulled down the short, thick-barreled
-gun. When he spoke she caught a note of dismay
-in his voice.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;An old blunderbuss,&#8221; he murmured. &#8220;An old blunderbuss!
-Looks like the one Adam must ha&#8217; carried when they
-driv&#8217; him out o&#8217; Eden.&#8221; He peered into the flaring muzzle.
-&#8220;Might shoot, at that. Don&#8217;t believe I&#8217;ll try it in here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Groping around on a shelf, Kitty found an empty powder
-horn, which he took a little more gratefully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There&#8217;ll be powder enough where I&#8217;m going,&#8221; he told
-her, &#8220;and I better be getting there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The rain tapped steadily on the shingles overhead, but the
-tiny window that faced westward showed a streak of blue sky.
-Carrying the old blunderbuss carefully, he moved toward
-the ladder that led below. Uncertain what to do or say, Kitty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[41]</span>
-stood and stared at him. He paused and turned toward her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll take good care o&#8217; this,&#8221; he said, &#8220;and I&#8217;ll see you get
-it back when I don&#8217;t need it any more.&#8221; He took a step in
-her direction. Suddenly her throat began to hurt, and she felt
-as if she were going to cry. He took another step. &#8220;I&#8217;ll make
-sure of it,&#8221; he said. &#8220;When I get to camp and can set down
-for a spell, I&#8217;ll cut your name and the town where you live&mdash;right
-here on the butt.&#8221; He tapped the end of the thick gun.
-&#8220;And then, maybe somebody else will send it home if I don&#8217;t&mdash;come
-back this way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He took her by the shoulders and kissed her quickly on
-the mouth.</p>
-
-<p>She gulped and felt the tears slip down her cheeks. Under
-his hands her shoulders were shaking.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But I aim to come back,&#8221; he said. He scrambled down
-the ladder and away. Like Dick, he had the courage to go
-and the feet to get him there, and she was left without so
-much as a window to wave him good-by from, and how
-could he put her name on the gun when he did not know her
-name?</p>
-
-<p>It came to her suddenly that she had to run after him and
-tell him her name was Catherine Greenleaf. If he didn&#8217;t
-know it, he&#8217;d never be able to send her father&#8217;s gun back to
-her, and she wouldn&#8217;t want a stranger to keep her father&#8217;s
-gun. Dashing the tears away, she stumbled down the ladder
-and ran through the lilacs where she met him slowly coming
-back. He looked down at her and smiled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come to my mind that a thing you do for luck, you must
-do three times,&#8221; he said. He bent and kissed her again. Then
-he turned and ran through the front gateway.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Stop, thief!&#8221; yelled Granny, tapping furiously on the
-parlor windowpane. &#8220;That&#8217;s my son&#8217;s blunderbuss! Call the
-watch! Call the constable! Call the sheriff! Stop, thief, stop!
-Come back, come back!&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[42]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Five</i><br />
-
-
-<small>THE GREAT IPSWICH FRIGHT</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;I &nbsp;can&#8217;t</span> think whatever put you up to such devilment,
-Catherine,&#8221; sputtered Granny. &#8220;&#8217;Twas bad enough for
-you to spile your new hat, without giving your father&#8217;s gun
-away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ve told you over and over again that I didn&#8217;t give him
-the gun,&#8221; sighed Kitty. &#8220;I only loaned it to him. He promised
-to bring it back. He looked like a lad who&#8217;d keep his word.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Granny clucked to the raw-boned sorrel horse and tugged
-expertly at the reins as the animal plodded round a curve in
-the sandy road.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tom, Tom, the piper&#8217;s son/He ran away with Father&#8217;s
-gun!&#8221; sang Sally Rose under her breath.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hummp!&#8221; snorted Gran.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty looked across the plowed fields to where the Merrimack
-flowed behind a hedge of willows. They dipped their
-long green boughs in the flooding stream, and here and there
-the water gave back a flash of bright sun. How peaceful everything
-looked in the soft April afternoon. How hard it was
-to believe that the lads she knew might be facing the redcoats&#8217;
-bayonets only a few miles off. But everyone did believe it.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[43]</span>
-Everyone was frightened and apprehensive. Folk turned out
-everywhere to shade their eyes and watch the roads that led
-southward, Boston way.</p>
-
-<p>It was more than twenty-four hours since Tom Trask had
-made off with the old blunderbuss, but Granny was still scolding
-about it. She would have scolded more, probably, if there
-hadn&#8217;t been so many chores for all of them, getting supplies
-ready to send after the Minutemen. All day yesterday they
-had baked, and this morning she and Sally Rose had gone
-from door to door collecting old linen for bandages. Then
-Uncle Moses Chase brought the borrowed wagon and suggested
-that the three of them might help by driving into the
-country to see what they could procure from the cellars and
-smoke houses of the farmers round.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If you&#8217;d let it go to one o&#8217; the Port lads&mdash;say Dick
-Moody, now&mdash;I could have understood,&#8221; Granny rambled
-on. &#8220;Why, I don&#8217;t know how many years that gun has been
-in our family! My grandmother told me it was brought from
-England in the days of the coming over. Her father got it
-in trade for an old horse down in Plymouth County.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty gave a sudden giggle. &#8220;Tom said it looked old enough
-to belong to Adam,&#8221; she said. She pulled her bonnet off and
-felt the warm sunlight on her brown hair, felt a warmth
-inside her when she said his name.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hoity-toity, so we call him &#8216;Tom&#8217;!&#8221; cried Granny.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose reached out and caught her grandmother&#8217;s
-ruffled taffeta sleeve. &#8220;Granny,&#8221; she said, &#8220;there&#8217;s a farmhouse
-down that cart track under the shagbark trees. Uncle
-Moses said to call at every place and not miss a single one.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty gave her cousin a grateful glance as Granny turned
-the sorrel off the highway and into a rutted lane. Stone walls
-bordered the fields on each side of them, and little brooks of
-water flowed in the gutters, draining the wet black land. In
-one field a plow stood abandoned in mid-furrow, and half a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[44]</span>
-dozen cows waited patiently at the bars, but nobody came to
-drive them off to pasture.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can&#8217;t be anyone at home,&#8221; said Granny, &#8220;&#8217;Bijah Davis
-lives here, and he&#8217;d never treat his animals so.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>As they drove into the yard of the weathered farmhouse,
-a young woman came to the door, a pale young woman with
-a baby in her arms and two toddlers pulling at the skirts of
-her blue calico dress. A half-grown yellow cat ran between
-her feet, almost upsetting her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Land&#8217;s sakes, Nance,&#8221; cried Granny. &#8220;You&#8217;re looking
-poorly this spring. Is &#8217;Bijah round somewhere?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young woman shook her head. &#8220;&#8217;Bijah took his gun
-and put for Cambridge,&#8221; she answered. &#8220;I wrapped him up
-a clean shirt and a hunk o&#8217; corn&#8217; beef. I don&#8217;t know when
-he&#8217;ll be home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Granny tut-tutted. &#8220;Many gone from around here?&#8221; she
-wanted to know.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Pretty nigh all the men,&#8221; said the young wife sadly.
-&#8220;Like you say, Ma&#8217;am Greenleaf, I been poorly this spring,
-but I got both bake ovens going just like other folks, I can
-tell you. We&#8217;re cooking up victuals to send after the lads.
-Two oxcarts has gone already, and by tomorrow we can fill
-two more.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Granny nodded in agreement. &#8220;We&#8217;re doing the same at
-the Port,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Don&#8217;t suppose you got any foodstuffs
-you could spare us, something you don&#8217;t need for your own?&#8221;
-She pulled out a beaded purse and fingered it significantly.</p>
-
-<p>Nancy Davis put up a hand to smooth back the stray wisps
-of hair from her forehead. &#8220;Could be some eggs in the
-haymow where the hens steal nests sometimes,&#8221; she murmured.
-&#8220;Could be. I ain&#8217;t had the gumption to go look.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;ll go,&#8221; cried Sally Rose eagerly. &#8220;Come on, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;d better take this basket,&#8221; said Gran, reaching under
-the wagon seat. &#8220;And don&#8217;t be gone long. It&#8217;s nigh on to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[45]</span>
-sunset time. When we finish here, we&#8217;ll start home.&#8221; She
-turned again to the farm wife. &#8220;I suppose folks is pretty well
-stirred up around here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young woman nodded. &#8220;That we be. Nervous and on
-edge till we&#8217;d run a mile if we was to hear a pin drop. Fear&#8217;s
-about us on all sides, just the way I&#8217;ve heard my grandmother
-tell it was down to Salem in the witchcraft time. It&#8217;s because
-we don&#8217;t know what&#8217;s happening, I think&mdash;nothing since the
-first word. Sure, the British was driv&#8217; back to Boston once,
-but maybe they&#8217;ve marched out again. Maybe our lads
-couldn&#8217;t stop &#8217;em, and they&#8217;re headed this way. And how can
-I tell whether &#8217;Bijah be still in the land o&#8217; the living or no!&#8221;
-She began to cry.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Folks is all upset at the Port, too,&#8221; said Gran soothingly,
-getting out of the cart to go to Nancy.</p>
-
-<p>The girls scurried into the mossy-roofed rambling barn,
-climbed to the loft, and began searching through the hay.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Which are you the most worried about, Kit,&#8221; asked Sally
-Rose. &#8220;Dick, or&mdash;?&#8221; She sneezed violently and wiped her
-eyes and nose with a lace handkerchief. &#8220;My, this hay dust
-makes me think of the time when I was little and got to
-playing with Father&#8217;s snuffbox. Which one? Tell me, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m worried about all of them,&#8221; said Kitty slowly. &#8220;Even
-your wretched Gerry. I wish men would keep their guns for
-deer and wild ducks. I don&#8217;t see why they have to kill each
-other.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose shrugged. &#8220;I know,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I don&#8217;t understand
-it either. But you have to realize, Kitty, some things
-about men we&#8217;ll never understand.&#8221; She pulled a large brown
-egg out of the hay and placed it carefully in the basket. &#8220;I
-wonder,&#8221; she said thoughtfully, &#8220;if the men on both sides
-were all shut up in gaol, just how the women would go to
-work to settle the matter.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t know,&#8221; said Kitty, adding two more eggs to their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[46]</span>
-collection, &#8220;but I&#8217;m sure there&#8217;d be cups of tea for everybody.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tea doesn&#8217;t have much to do with this war, Father says,&#8221;
-went on Sally Rose quickly. &#8220;And Gerry says the same. They
-both say it&#8217;s to decide who will rule America&mdash;King and
-Parliament, or the men who live in this country.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I should think King and Parliament would have enough
-to do at home,&#8221; answered Kitty. &#8220;What&#8217;s that? I thought I
-heard someone shouting.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Both girls sat up in the shadowy mow to listen.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Turn out! Turn out! For God&#8217;s sake!&#8221; thundered a
-hoarse voice from the highway.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe he&#8217;s brought news of the lads,&#8221; cried Sally Rose,
-upsetting the basket in her haste to scramble down the ladder.
-Forgetting the eggs, Kitty followed her. They ran out of the
-barn and across the yard under the hickory trees. Granny and
-Nance, with the children straggling after them, had already
-started up the lane.</p>
-
-<p>A black-coated rider came spurring toward them from the
-direction of the Port, waving his cocked hat with one hand
-and whipping his horse with the other.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Turn out!&#8221; he shouted. &#8220;Turn out, or you will all be
-killed! The British have landed at Ipswich and have marched
-to Old Town Bridge! They are cutting and slashing all
-before them!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He paid no attention to the huddled group of women, but
-galloped past.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Turn out! Turn out!&#8221; he panted. &#8220;The British have
-landed at Ipswich!&#8221; His voice grew fainter as he rounded
-the end of a low hill and swept out of sight.</p>
-
-<p>They stood looking at one another. &#8220;If you ask me, his
-wits are addled,&#8221; said Gran stoutly. &#8220;He had a mad look in
-his eyes. I&#8217;d want some further word&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then a chaise hurtled down the road, swaying from side<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[47]</span>
-to side, driven by a lean woman with gray hair streaming
-about her shoulders and a swansdown hat hanging on one
-ear. &#8220;The British!&#8221; she choked as the chaise went rocking by.</p>
-
-<p>After her came a young couple on horseback, and then
-three farm wagons loaded with family groups and household
-goods. A wooden churn fell off and rolled into the brimming
-gutter, but they did not stop to retrieve it; they drove furiously
-on.</p>
-
-<p>Nance stood there, as silent and rooted to earth as one of
-her own hickory trees. Kitty and Sally Rose held hands
-tightly and looked at each other, uncertain whether to laugh
-or be afraid, waiting to see what would happen next.</p>
-
-<p>Then it seemed as if half the Port went streaming by. Gran
-stood at the side of the road and waved her beaded purse at
-the mad rout of chaises and wagons, but nobody would stop
-for her. Finally a farmer hastened by on foot, leading a plow
-horse that had gone lame. She stepped up smartly and caught
-him by the front of his tow-colored smock. &#8220;Young man,
-what is the meaning of this?&#8221; she demanded.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;God Almighty, are ye deaf, Mother?&#8221; he growled, spitting
-tobacco juice into the dust of the road, just missing her
-dainty kid slipper. &#8220;The British ha&#8217; come ashore. Come
-ashore at Ipswich, and hacked their way past Old Town
-Bridge. I rode over twenty dead bodies as I come from there.
-They&#8217;ll be at the Port now, heading this way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>For the first time Kitty began to feel that this was not
-some ridiculous mistake. Her throat grew tight, and her
-nerves began to tingle with fear.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where is everyone going?&#8221; she cried.</p>
-
-<p>The farmer turned to answer her. &#8220;They&#8217;re all trying to
-get across the river into Hampshire,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Some&#8217;s for
-the woods and swamps nearby. Better get along yourselves.
-You&#8217;ll be the safer, the further you can go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He urged his old horse forward again.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[48]</span>Gran turned back from the highroad as another half dozen
-wagons rattled past. &#8220;He looked like an honest lad, and he
-saw it with his own eyes, Nancy,&#8221; she admitted reluctantly.
-&#8220;You bundle up the children and whatever food you&#8217;ve got
-on hand, and come along in our wagon. I&#8217;m going to drive
-as hard as I can for Haverhill Ferry. I trust we&#8217;ll get across.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Nance, bewildered and numb with terror, tried to follow
-out Granny&#8217;s instructions. Back in the kitchen she fumbled
-through the bin, brought out a sack of potatoes, and stood
-there helplessly, holding it. Gran reached past her. &#8220;Take
-the apples, instead,&#8221; she advised. &#8220;They&#8217;ll taste better if we
-have to eat them raw.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Finally the young wife got herself, the two children, and
-the shawl-wrapped infant into the wagon. She sat on the seat
-with Granny, and Kitty and Sally Rose crouched on a sack
-of turnips a farmer had given them early in the afternoon.
-How long ago that seemed! In the gathering twilight they
-drove swiftly along the winding river road.</p>
-
-<p>The lower Merrimack Valley above the Port was not
-sparsely settled country in those spring days of 1775. There
-were farmhouses and parish churches and crossroads villages
-scattered all about it, and few dwellers there who could not
-see their neighbor&#8217;s chimney smoke or the lights of his kitchen
-when they looked out at night. But now the peaceful district
-was overrun with strangers and refugees streaming through.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty and Sally Rose huddled together on the turnip sack
-for warmth, looking back down the road every now and then,
-to see if the British were in sight, if the glare of burning towns
-lighted the sky. But all they could see were the frightened
-folk of Essex County hurrying for the swamps and the forests,
-for the low hills of New Hampshire Colony across the
-wide dark stream.</p>
-
-<p>Women, and a few old or feeble men, were toiling across
-the farmyards here and there, carrying favorite gowns, or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[49]</span>
-chests of silver, or pewter teapots to conceal them in wells
-and hollow trees. And from almost every doorstep strong
-arms laboriously hoisted old folk and invalids into carts to
-haul them away.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you think&#8217;ll come of it, Kit?&#8221; asked Sally Rose
-in a low worried voice. &#8220;Do you think Gran will take us over
-the river to Haverhill? I don&#8217;t want to go to Haverhill. It&#8217;s
-a sleepy country town, and it&#8217;ll be worse than the Port, with
-all the lads away. I&#8217;d almost rather get caught by the British,
-I think.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But they&#8217;re cutting and slashing all before them,&#8221; Kitty
-reminded her grimly. &#8220;That farmer said he rode over twenty
-dead bodies on the way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, I do not think they would cut and slash me,&#8221; said
-Sally Rose, smiling confidently in the dark. &#8220;Oh, Kit, look
-there!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They were passing a tiny cottage half hidden by leafy apple
-trees. An armchair had been placed firmly on a scrap of lawn,
-and in the chair sat a man with a lantern beside him and a
-musket across his knees. He was enormous, and almost perfectly
-round. &#8220;Let the British come!&#8221; he shouted, and waved
-his musket. &#8220;I be too fat to budge for &#8217;em! I&#8217;ll stay here and
-shoot the bloody devils down!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A little way farther on they came across a group of women
-bending over another woman who lay on the ground in the
-curve of a stone wall. Granny hesitated, and then drew rein.
-&#8220;Is the poor critter sick?&#8221; she called to them. &#8220;Can I help?
-Perhaps we could make a place for her.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A tall woman in a gray shawl straightened up. &#8220;No,
-thank&#8217;ee, Ma&#8217;am,&#8221; she called crisply. &#8220;It&#8217;s only Aunt Hannah.
-She wheezes so with the asmaticks, her noise would give
-us away to the British. We&#8217;re going to cover her over with
-leaves and let her rest, all snug and out of sight, here by the
-wall.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[50]</span>At that Nancy Davis began to laugh. She laughed and
-laughed, and then she began to cry. Gran slapped her face
-hard and drove on. &#8220;None o&#8217; that foolishness, Nance,&#8221; she
-said severely. &#8220;Mind your children. &#8217;Bijah would expect you
-to. Kitty and Sally Rose&#8221;&mdash;she lifted her voice&mdash;&#8220;is all well
-with you back there?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Let&#8217;s not go any farther, Gran,&#8221; pleaded Sally Rose.
-&#8220;There are lights at the inn we just passed by. If the folks
-haven&#8217;t run away, maybe they&#8217;ll have beds for us. Maybe
-if we hide in bed, the British will ride on and never know
-we&#8217;re there. I don&#8217;t want to go to Haverhill, Gran.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;When I say you&#8217;ll go to Haverhill, to Haverhill you&#8217;ll
-go,&#8221; said Gran, and drove on into the night. &#8220;I hope I can
-make the ferry in time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty sensed the note of anxiety in Gran&#8217;s voice, and that
-frightened her more than anything that had gone before it.
-Not when the smallpox struck and folk lay dying in every
-house in town, not when a great tree crashed through the roof
-in the midst of an autumn storm, had she known Gran to feel
-afraid. She looked over her shoulder again, and then around
-her at the dark fields, the thickets here and there along the
-road. Frightened women had come this way in other times,
-she knew, when Indians with tomahawks lurked behind every
-tree. She had heard, too, of the dreadful times at Salem that
-Nancy spoke about, when the devil had walked abroad in
-Essex County, or folk thought that he had, though they never
-saw the devil. The most terrible fear, she thought, is the fear
-of an unseen thing. A British Army marching toward them
-with drums and banners and bayonets would not be so terrible
-as the shadows that might hold any nameless menace, the
-shadows drawing closer in....</p>
-
-<p>She turned to Sally Rose, but Sally Rose was humming a
-little tune. There was boredom rather than terror in her hazel
-eyes. Sally Rose had found one redcoat to be a gallant and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[51]</span>
-handsome lover, so she believed they would all be that. But
-Kitty had heard tales of their cruelty to Boston folk. She
-remembered that blood had been shed at Concord Fight and
-on Lexington Green. She crouched on the turnip sack and
-shivered with cold fear.</p>
-
-<p>Somehow the road seemed to be less crowded now. No one
-had passed them for half an hour. Then they met a little
-group of horsemen slowly riding back. Granny hailed them.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Are you headed for Newburyport? Is the battle over?
-Where are the British?&#8221; she wanted to know.</p>
-
-<p>The leader took off his cocked hat, and Kitty noticed that
-he had a bald head and very black eyes. &#8220;We begin to think
-the British are in Boston and have been there all along, that
-they never stirred from there. We have found no trace of
-them, and we scoured the countryside. The whole commotion
-is either a sorry jest or a coward&#8217;s error, it seems. At least,
-we have recovered sufficient courage to ride back toward
-Ipswich and see.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I suspected as much,&#8221; said Gran, tightening her mouth.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ho hum!&#8221; said Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>The men rode off, and Gran pulled the wagon to one side
-of the road. They were facing a small common with a white
-steepled church at the edge of it. Houses clustered round
-about, darkened and deserted, their doors hanging open, their
-inhabitants fled away. Overhead the elm boughs tossed eerily
-in the light of the cold moon.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Get out, girls, and stretch your legs,&#8221; Gran ordered.
-&#8220;Then I&#8217;m going to turn around and drive back to my own
-house at the Port. You can come with me, Nance, if you&#8217;re
-afraid to bide at home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m not afraid any more,&#8221; said Nance wanly. &#8220;Not if the
-British are still in Boston. Do you think they are still in
-Boston, Ma&#8217;am Greenleaf?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I feel sure of it,&#8221; declared Gran firmly. &#8220;Well, the Bible<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[52]</span>
-says the young men shall dream dreams. That&#8217;s what that lad
-who said he rode over twenty dead bodies must ha&#8217; done.
-Let&#8217;s all go over to the church steps and give thanks to God.
-Dream, joke, or error, I don&#8217;t care which it was. It&#8217;s over
-now, and high time we went home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The two children were asleep on the seat of the wagon,
-but Nance carried the shawl-wrapped baby and held it in her
-arms as they knelt on the church steps of gray old stone. Gran
-lifted up voluble thanks to the Almighty, and Kitty&#8217;s attention
-wandered. She watched a husky youth who had been
-hiding in the crotch of a pear tree climb sheepishly down and
-sidle off, gnawing a piece of salt pork. He had apparently
-taken provisions to his refuge, in case the British kept him
-treed for a long time. The sight of the pork made her hungry,
-and Nance must have seen it, too, and thought of food, but
-not for herself. The minute Gran rose from her knees, she
-asked if they could wait while she suckled the baby.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why of course,&#8221; said Gran heartily. &#8220;My, there&#8217;s not
-been one peep out of the little thing. I trust it hasn&#8217;t got
-smothered in all this uproar.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Nancy sat down on the step, carefully pulled the shawls
-away, and bent her head while the others stood looking on.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she screamed. They peered closer.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;God save our souls alive!&#8221; gasped Granny.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose giggled. Kitty swallowed and made no sound
-at all.</p>
-
-<p>In her haste Nance had wrapped up the wrong creature,
-and now it was the half-grown yellow cat that slept peacefully
-in the crook of her arm.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[53]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Six</i><br />
-
-
-<small>FUN WHILE IT LASTED</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">The</span> young man sat on the steps of the tavern by Ipswich
-Green and stared about him; at the old brown roofs
-with yellow moss growing on their seaward sides, at the little
-rocky river that flowed like liquid amber under its stone
-bridge, at the steepled church on the rocky hill. Shadows lay
-long in the deserted streets of Ipswich, and far to the west
-the sun was going down.</p>
-
-<p>The young man wore a rough woolen shirt and homespun
-breeches. He had a cleft chin, deep blue eyes, and black curly
-hair. He looked uncommonly pleased about something.</p>
-
-<p>The landlord came to the open doorway behind him and
-stood there, peering into the dusk. He was a short plump
-man with a lame leg and a worried expression.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not a sign o&#8217; the British yet, be there, lad?&#8221; he asked
-anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>The young man shrugged his shoulders. &#8220;Could be they&#8217;ve
-turned aside and gone another way,&#8221; he said in a lilting tone.
-&#8220;Well, I guess I&#8217;ll be taking the road myself, while there&#8217;s
-a bit o&#8217; the daylight left. How far did you tell me it was to
-Newburyport, sir?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[54]</span>The landlord shifted his feet uneasily. &#8220;It&#8217;s a piece of a
-journey yet, and the roads will doubtless be clogged with
-fleeing folk, if one&#8217;s to judge by the rout that streamed out
-of here; likewise the half o&#8217; Beverly tagging through. Why
-not stay the night? I&#8217;ll give ye free lodging. It&#8217;ll mean there&#8217;s
-one able-bodied man in town, besides a handful of petticoat
-folk.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Again the young man shrugged his shoulders. &#8220;Well
-enough, if &#8217;twill please you&mdash;and supper be included in the
-offer.&#8221; He got to his feet and stood there smiling.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come in, lad, come in,&#8221; cried the landlord in relieved
-tones. &#8220;Come, and I&#8217;ll give ye supper, such as &#8217;tis. Cook&#8217;s
-run off to the hills like all the rest, but my daughter Nanny&#8217;s
-here, and Nanny can do. Come and bring your box, if ye will.
-Where&#8217;d ye say ye be from? Have ye traveled far?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young man stooped and lifted a small leather chest
-bound with iron. Deep in the lid was burned the name
-&#8220;G. Malory.&#8221; It was a peculiarity of his that although he
-often played other men&#8217;s parts and wore other men&#8217;s clothing,
-he would never abandon his own name.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Barnstaple,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Gerry Malory of Barnstaple, shoemaker.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Barnstable? Down Cape Cod, ain&#8217;t it? A fair ways from
-here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, Barnstaple&#8217;s a fair ways off,&#8221; said the young man.</p>
-
-<p>Together they stepped into the dark smoky taproom. It
-was deserted except for a little maid, scarce more than a child,
-who stood in the doorway of the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>The landlord went to the hearth and stirred the dwindling
-fire. &#8220;What&#8217;s in the pot, Nanny?&#8221; he asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Dandelions,&#8221; said Nanny pertly. &#8220;Dandelion greens and
-a ham bone. But the ham bone don&#8217;t smell like it should,
-Father.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[55]</span>&#8220;Warm up the chowder then,&#8221; he ordered, and turned to
-his guest. &#8220;Are ye handy with firearms, Gerry?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ve a pistol in my chest here, among my shoemaker&#8217;s
-tools. Guess I know what to do with it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, no,&#8221; cried the landlord impatiently. &#8220;I got no faith
-in such pop guns. I mean a man-sized weapon. Son Rob took
-my musket to Cambridge, but there&#8217;s a fowling piece hung
-up on the kitchen wall. I don&#8217;t see as well to aim as I did
-once. Who was it spread the word about town? Did ye happen
-to hear?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The shoemaker shook his head. &#8220;I couldn&#8217;t say, sir. As I
-told you before, I was just passing through here on my way
-to Newburyport to see a girl, when all at once a great stir
-began, and folks went rushing to the green. Somebody
-shouted that the British had landed at Ipswich Bar and were
-cutting and slashing all before them. Next thing I knew, the
-wagons started rolling out of town, and everyone took to the
-highway, afoot and on horseback. I watched them for awhile,
-and then came here to catch my breath and maybe have a
-bite of supper.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Again the landlord went to the door and peered nervously
-into the thickening night. &#8220;Not a light in town,&#8221; he said.
-&#8220;Folk that hasn&#8217;t fled away be keeping their houses dark,
-&#8217;twould seem. Do ye mind if I don&#8217;t light up, lad? Can ye
-see by the glow o&#8217; the fire?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8217;Tis no trick to find a mouth the size of mine,&#8221; said the
-young man gallantly. Then as Nanny put a steaming bowl
-on the table in front of him, his nostrils quivered. &#8220;Did the
-ham smell stronger than this, my lady?&#8221; he asked her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; said Nanny flatly, stepping back into the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>He sat down on a bench, picked up a ladle, and tasted the
-chowder gingerly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;None for me, Nanny,&#8221; called her father. &#8220;I be that
-worried about the British, I wouldn&#8217;t relish victuals none.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[56]</span>&#8220;Right, sir,&#8221; said Gerry, putting down the ladle. &#8220;It comes
-to me that I, too, am worried about the British. Still, a piece
-of bread now&mdash;it need not have butter&mdash;I could eat it dry.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Slice up a loaf of bread, Nanny,&#8221; called the landlord.</p>
-
-<p>Nanny&#8217;s thin piping voice came back from the kitchen.
-&#8220;The bread&#8217;s moldy. All that wasn&#8217;t, we sent to Cambridge.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry Malory sighed resignedly. &#8220;Well, perhaps a glass
-of milk then&mdash;unless all the cows have fled away. Nothing
-stronger. I must keep a clear head on me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The landlord himself brought a pitcher of milk and poured
-two glasses full.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Be ye just up from the Cape, Gerry? And did ye come
-by Cambridge? We&#8217;ve had no news from there since the
-word o&#8217; Concord Fight come through.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young man shook his head. &#8220;I haven&#8217;t been near
-Cambridge, and it&#8217;s a long time since I went Barnstaple way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where ye been, then?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh&mdash;round Charlestown most of the time, I guess. You
-know Job Townsend&#8217;s tavern there?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Job Townsend? Keeps the Bay and Beagle, don&#8217;t he?
-In Crooked Lane near Harvard Street. I knowed him when
-he was your age. Too bad. He lost his wife young. Got a
-right pretty daughter, I&#8217;ve heard. Sally Rose, or something
-like.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, he&#8217;s got a pretty daughter,&#8221; said Gerry Malory,
-draining his glass. &#8220;I been around the Bay and Beagle some.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t get down that way much myself,&#8221; said the landlord
-thoughtfully. &#8220;What&#8217;s the news thereabout? Do they
-think the British&#8217;ll fight? And if they do....&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young man shook his head solemnly. &#8220;You got no
-chance against the British,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>The landlord looked up sharply. &#8220;Ye say &#8216;you&#8217; and not
-&#8216;we,&#8217;&#8221; he protested. &#8220;Does that mean Barnstable don&#8217;t intend
-to join against the cruel laws o&#8217; the King? That they be not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[57]</span>
-with the rest o&#8217; Massachusetts? The Hampshire towns be
-with us, and I hear that so be the west and south, New York
-and Virginia, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh no, no, I do not mean that at all,&#8221; cried the young
-shoemaker. &#8220;&#8217;Twas a slip of the tongue. Of course Barnstable&mdash;on
-Cape Cod&mdash;will join cause with you. I only mean that
-the outlook is dark, sir, dark, for those who would fan the
-flames of rebellion in America.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He put down his empty glass and leaned forward, his
-hands clenched before him on the table. &#8220;How can <i>we</i> defend
-a thousand miles of seacoast with only a few scattered towns,
-against a great battle fleet of three hundred ships and armed
-men? We can scarce put thirty thousand soldiers in the field.
-England has one hundred and fifty thousand, and can summon
-more. We lack guns, ammunition, money, and trade.
-More than that, we lack the tradition of love of country, a
-tradition that will make the meanest man fight and die
-bravely. For a thousand years men have been giving their
-lives for England. What man has ever given his life for
-America before?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sounds like you been listening to some Tory make
-speeches, lad. Happens there was a few gave their lives at
-Concord and Lexington the day before yesterday,&#8221; retorted
-the landlord. &#8220;There&#8217;s a first time for everything, Gerry.&#8221;
-His voice was milder than the milk in his half-empty glass,
-but his eyes held a sharp look, a look of question. Suddenly
-his face went white.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Lord in heaven, I&#8217;ll fetch the gun for ye! Here they
-come!&#8221; he cried, dashing from the room, tripping over a
-footstool unseen in the light of the fire.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry Malory lifted his head. He heard a shouting in the
-road, the creak of wagons rumbling along. He, too, got up,
-went to the door, and stared out into the soft April night.
-The moon had not yet risen, but as he turned to look to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[58]</span>
-north he could see swaying lights and shadowy figures, moving
-painfully slow, but drawing closer. He waited, silent, to
-see what would emerge out of the dark.</p>
-
-<p>As the cavalcade became more sharply visible, he saw that
-it consisted of three oxcarts piled with boxes, kegs, and
-baskets, escorted by some half dozen men. The oxen lumbered
-along wearily, and the men seemed weary, too, as they
-plodded at the side. They were not young men, but grayish
-and old and frail, except for a thin-faced lad with tow-colored
-hair and an ancient gun gripped casually in his right hand.
-The wagons drew to a halt in front of the tavern, one man
-stayed with the oxen, and the others came forward eagerly,
-seeking refreshment.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry stepped back into the taproom and turned to face
-the landlord who rushed out of the kitchen with a badly
-rusted gun held in front of him. &#8220;No British,&#8221; he said reassuringly.
-&#8220;Just some teamsters who want to wet their whistles,
-I expect.&#8221; He retired to the shadows near the great chimney,
-found a stool there, and sat down.</p>
-
-<p>The landlord bustled forward to welcome the visitors. In
-a few moments they were seated at the table, and Nanny was
-helping her father to set out food and drink, greens, ham
-bone, chowder, and all.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not a fit man amongst us,&#8221; sighed the oldster with a face
-like a russet apple and a scar across his forehead. &#8220;I fought
-in too many wars already. But once we get these stores to
-Cambridge, likely I&#8217;ll stay there and enlist for one more.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t know how we&#8217;d ha&#8217; got this far, if this Hampshire
-lad hadn&#8217;t o&#8217;ertaken us,&#8221; said another. He turned to the thin-faced
-youth who was eating chowder, the old blunderbuss
-leaning against the table close to his elbow. &#8220;We was sure
-glad to see you, Tom Trask, when our cart broke down the
-other side of Rowley last night. A proper wheelwright you
-turned out to be.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[59]</span>Tom Trask did not look up from his chowder. &#8220;Be a wheelwright
-when I have to,&#8221; he muttered, &#8220;or most any other
-sort of thing.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tell me, lads,&#8221; questioned the landlord eagerly, &#8220;did ye
-see aught of the British that&#8217;s supposed to be marching on us,
-cutting and slashing all before?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We heard the rumor, o&#8217; course,&#8221; went on the russet-cheeked
-man, &#8220;and saw the rout go past. Didn&#8217;t trouble us
-none. We kept on our way. Word&#8217;s gone about now, that
-there be doubts the British ever was nearer than Boston.
-Truth to tell, sir, I surmise we been made fools of.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The landlord made a clucking sound with his thin lips.
-Tom Trask was staring hard at the small iron-bound leather
-box on the table in front of him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Who&#8217;s that there belong to?&#8221; he asked suddenly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&mdash;oh, that belongs to Gerry Malory over in the
-corner. Gerry&#8217;s a shoemaker from Barnstable&mdash;on his way to
-Newburyport to see a girl.&#8221; The landlord&#8217;s voice was gay
-and jovial in his relief, now that he had no further cause to
-fear the British. After all, he had not fled away at the false
-rumor. He had not been made a fool of. He strutted a little
-as he walked about the room, filling the glasses, replenishing
-the fire. When his shame-faced neighbors came straggling
-back, he&#8217;d be able to indulge himself in a boast or two. Then
-suddenly he pricked up his ears. The tow-headed lad from
-New Hampshire Colony was speaking. He held the leather
-chest in his hands, turning it about.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8216;G. Malory,&#8217; it says here. And Landlord says G.&#8217;s for
-Gerry. Gerry Malory&mdash;going to Newburyport to see a girl.&#8221;
-He sounded thoughtful.</p>
-
-<p>The landlord noticed that the young shoemaker from
-Barnstable had edged his stool further back into the shadows.
-He said no word.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[60]</span>&#8220;Seems to me,&#8221; went on Tom Trask, &#8220;I might know what
-girl he&#8217;s going to see. A peacock-proud girl named Sally
-Rose, I wouldn&#8217;t wonder. Seems to me I heard o&#8217; Gerry
-Malory.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>His voice deepened, and there was a sharp edge to it that
-caught the attention of everyone in the room and made them
-listen.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s her!&#8221; cried the landlord excitedly. &#8220;Sally Rose!
-Job Townsend&#8217;s daughter! He said he hung around the Bay
-and Beagle some!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Still the young man in the shadows did not speak.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Gerry Malory I heard of,&#8221; went on Tom Trask,
-&#8220;was said to be a captain in the Twenty-third. That&#8217;d mean
-he&#8217;s a British officer.&#8221; He waited accusingly.</p>
-
-<p>The landlord slapped his thigh. &#8220;Well, pickle my brains
-in rum!&#8221; he cried. &#8220;I think ye be right, lad. He was talking
-like a Britisher just before ye got here. Saying times was dark
-for us, and no man would give his life for America. Out o&#8217;
-that corner, sir, and answer the charge! Be ye a lobsterback
-come in disguise among us?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then indeed Gerry Malory stepped forward. &#8220;You&#8217;ve
-mistaken yourselves,&#8221; he said easily. &#8220;There may be a man
-with the same name as mine in the ranks of the British. I
-doubt that I be the first Gerald Malory since the world was
-made. I doubt if I be the last. I be a shoemaker of Barnstable,
-loyal as any man here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Loyal to what?&#8221; demanded Tom Trask. Then he bent
-down, pulled off one crude cowhide boot, and held it out.
-&#8220;Here. I got a hole clear through my sole leather tramping
-these rocky roads of Essex County. If you be a shoemaker,
-prove it! Cobble my boot!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry Malory took the boot in his hands and examined
-it. Then he shook his head. &#8220;&#8217;Tis scarce worth fixing, my
-good man,&#8221; he said condescendingly. &#8220;Get yourself a new<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[61]</span>
-pair when you arrive in Cambridge. That is the best advice I
-can give you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You lie,&#8221; said Tom Trask steadily. &#8220;I can fix it myself, if
-you&#8217;re unable. All I ask you to do is prove you be a shoemaker.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The teamsters, the landlord, even Nanny, were staring in
-silence at the two young men. Gerry Malory studied the boot
-in his hand. He frowned. &#8220;Well enough,&#8221; he said. He
-opened the small chest and fumbled inside it, took out a
-wooden last, hammer, and awl, a packet of pegs and nails.
-&#8220;Ah, this should do it,&#8221; he murmured judiciously. He selected
-a strip of leather and tried to fit it over the ragged hole
-Tom had pointed out.</p>
-
-<p>All eyes were upon him. No lips made any comment. He
-gripped the boot with one hand under the instep. He fitted
-the leather over the hole with the other hand. Then he stood
-there, conscious suddenly that he had no third hand to set the
-nails in place, no fourth hand to wield the hammer. He put the
-boot down and started all over again.</p>
-
-<p>But his face was growing hot and his fingers even more
-clumsy. Suddenly he ceased his efforts. &#8220;I am sorry,&#8221; he said.
-&#8220;I forgot my most needful tool. You must wait until you get
-to Cambridge, unless you can find another cobbler.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom Trask stood up. He held the old gun lightly in his
-hand. &#8220;Your most needful tool is there,&#8221; he said, &#8220;but you
-don&#8217;t know enough to know it. Put the boot on the last, you
-should have. That would ha&#8217; held it firm, and left your
-hands free to get on with your cobbling. Right enough, we&#8217;ll
-go to Cambridge, and we&#8217;ll take you along as our prisoner,
-Captain Malory o&#8217; the Twenty-third. All the world can see
-you&#8217;re no shoemaker. Johnny Stark will know what to do
-with you. Landlord, have you a length of rope, or better, a
-few links of chain, about the place? For safety, we&#8217;ll tie him
-up now.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[62]</span>Gerry Malory, of Barnstaple in English Devon, bit his
-lip and stared around him somewhat wildly. That cursed
-Yankee with the gun that looked as if it came out of Noah&#8217;s
-ark stood between him and the open doorway. He doubted
-if it would shoot, but even if it didn&#8217;t, its owner looked like
-no easy man to handle. And the Yankee had his friends
-about him.</p>
-
-<p>While he hesitated, two old men ambled forward and
-bound his wrists together with a heavy length of clanking
-chain. Then they stepped back, and the whole company continued
-to stare at him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Captain,&#8221; said Tom Trask thoughtfully, &#8220;I be not so
-sure as I was that you come this way to see a girl. Likely you
-did, but likely, too, you might ha&#8217; spread the false report that
-the British was upon us. It might ha&#8217; been a word o&#8217; yours
-that sent us flying over hills far and wide as if the devil was
-after. A fool&#8217;s prank, maybe&mdash;maybe a smart trick to spread
-confusion amongst us.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Gerry Malory remembered the scenes of the
-afternoon: lean spinsters rocking along like giraffes in the
-animal garden on Tower Hill, fat men waddling off, their
-faces red and their eyes popping with panic. He laughed
-aloud and looked down at his hands bound stiffly in front of
-him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In either case, it was fun while it lasted,&#8221; he said.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[63]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Seven</i><br />
-
-
-<small>OFF TO THE WARS IN BOSTON</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;Cousin,</span> I see no future for us in this place,&#8221; said Sally
-Rose bleakly.</p>
-
-<p>She was sitting in the soft grass on the hill behind the Frog
-Pond, looking down the dusty street that led through the
-Port, straight to the wharves and warehouses along the river.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty pulled herself up on her elbow and let her glance
-follow her cousin&#8217;s. There appeared to be as many white sails
-in the channel as usual, the same blue spring haze on the far
-shore, and the familiar curve of sky overhead. But the town
-below them, commonly bustling with life on a warm May
-afternoon, looked strangely deserted and still. A brown dog
-slept in the middle of High Street, and two old men hobbled
-past the Wolfe Tavern in the direction of Market Square. A
-farm cart ground its slow way towards Old Newbury, and a
-group of children ran hither and thither across the training
-green with laughter and shrill cries.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty pulled a golden dandelion blossom from the grass
-and began to tear it apart in her fingers. &#8220;I think I see what<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[64]</span>
-you mean, Sally Rose,&#8221; she said. &#8220;It is dull here with no one
-to talk to but grown folk&mdash;and of course, the other girls. I
-never realized how many girls there are in town. There
-never seemed to be so many before. I never thought I bothered
-myself much about the lads, but what a difference it
-makes&mdash;now they are all gone away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gone, and not likely to return very soon, from what I
-hear,&#8221; said Sally Rose thoughtfully. &#8220;A few have come home,
-but mostly the older men with families, or the fainthearted
-ones. Last night I heard Uncle Moses telling Granny they
-plan to stay where they are and form a mighty army that will
-circle round like a wall of iron to keep the British penned in
-Boston.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then there&#8217;s no knowing when they&#8217;ll be home,&#8221;
-answered Kitty. It made her uneasy to admit to herself, as
-she had been forced to do, that all her eagerness and anxiety
-were not for her long-time friend, Dick Moody, but for that
-other one, the thin lad from New Hampshire who had taken
-her father&#8217;s blunderbuss away.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No knowing,&#8221; agreed Sally Rose. &#8220;Three weeks it&#8217;s been
-since Concord Fight, maybe more. More than a month since
-I&#8217;ve seen Gerry. I thought he might write to me, but he never
-has. Some of the Tory girls in Boston are very fair,&#8221; and she
-sighed. &#8220;I thought I might find someone to take his place,
-but I should have known I never could&mdash;here in this dull,
-stupid, country town.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re better off not seeing him, since he&#8217;s British,&#8221; said
-Kitty sharply. &#8220;I&#8217;m sure, most times, you&#8217;d find better lads
-than him, walking down Queen Street any day. But just now&mdash;well,
-you know where they&#8217;ve all gone. They&#8217;ve gone to
-fight for the rights of our colony, and you ought to be proud
-of them, Sally Rose.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ummmm,&#8221; said Sally Rose, chewing a dandelion stem
-and then making up a face when its bitter white milk puckered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[65]</span>
-her mouth. &#8220;Of course I&#8217;m proud of them. How old
-does one have to be before they&#8217;re an old maid, Kitty? It
-seems like I might be approaching the time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh no,&#8221; cried Kitty. &#8220;We&#8217;re only sixteen. No one would
-think that of us&mdash;not for at least two years more!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose stood up and tossed her bright hair in the sun.
-&#8220;Two years isn&#8217;t long,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Well, you can sit here in
-the Port and wither if you want to, but I&#8217;ve got other fish in
-the pan.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She started walking quickly in the direction of Granny
-Greenleaf&#8217;s weathered house.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty watched her with apparent unconcern for as long as
-she could. Then she jumped to her feet and hurried after.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where are you going?&#8221; she panted.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose smiled at her. &#8220;Why,&#8221; she said, &#8220;I think I&#8217;ll go
-back to my father&#8217;s house in Charlestown. If there&#8217;s a war in
-Boston, we&#8217;ll be in the midst of everything there. Why don&#8217;t
-you come along, Kit? Tom Trask may not be back this way,
-you know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty felt her face turning hot and red, but she chose to
-ignore the last part of her cousin&#8217;s remark. &#8220;You can&#8217;t go to
-Charlestown,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Granny won&#8217;t let you go where
-there&#8217;s likely to be fighting. You know that as well as I.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They had turned in at the front gate now, and were walking
-under the budded lilac bushes, Sally Rose in the lead,
-Kitty following breathless, a few steps behind.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A fig for Granny!&#8221; cried Sally Rose. &#8220;I love her, of course,
-but she&#8217;s a timid old lady, fit only to huddle in the chimney
-corner. She doesn&#8217;t know what it&#8217;s like to be bold and daring&mdash;the
-way a girl has to be these days. Of course she won&#8217;t let
-me go, and so I shan&#8217;t ask her. She drove out to see Nancy
-Davis this afternoon. When she gets back at suppertime, I
-won&#8217;t be here. I&#8217;ll be halfway to Rowley&mdash;or further on.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[66]</span>She opened the unlocked kitchen door and ran lightly up
-the back stairs to their chamber.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty followed, a little more slowly. She sat down on the
-edge of the high four-poster and dangled her feet over the
-side; watched while Sally Rose gathered ribbons, laces, and a
-few toilet articles and tied them up in a shawl.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a long walk to Charlestown,&#8221; she said tartly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not so far for a horse,&#8221; answered Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You have a horse then?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know where to borrow one. I know where I can borrow
-two. Uncle Moses Chase keeps half a dozen in his barn on the
-Old Newbury road, and he&#8217;s gone with Granny, so he won&#8217;t
-know if we take them. He won&#8217;t care, when he finds out.
-Why don&#8217;t you come with me, Kitty? We&#8217;ll have a gay time
-in Charlestown.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty shook her head, but without much conviction. &#8220;I
-couldn&#8217;t go behind Granny&#8217;s back,&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose smiled sweetly. &#8220;I&#8217;m sorry you feel so, Cousin.
-Perhaps I do wrong to make a jest of everything, but that is
-my way. Have you never thought, when you hear all these
-preparations for war, that there is work for us as well as for
-the lads? Who&#8217;s to cook and wash and sew for them, and bind
-up their wounds when the fighting is over? I&#8217;m going where
-I can be of use to my country. If you&#8217;re afraid to come with
-me&mdash;well, you can stay here and sleep in the sun by the Frog
-Pond every afternoon. You&#8217;ll surely be safe enough&mdash;unless
-a horsefly bites you, or the dry rot settles in.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She took a quill pen and inkpot from the mantelpiece, sat
-down at the dressing table, and began to write.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty jumped from the bed and took a few turns up and
-down the room.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Do you really think we ought to go, Sally Rose?&#8221; she
-asked. &#8220;Do you think&mdash;we might be needed there?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I certainly do think so,&#8221; said Sally Rose. &#8220;Don&#8217;t bother<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[67]</span>
-to pack any clothes, Kit. At home in Charlestown I have more
-than enough for two.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Under Sally Rose&#8217;s urging, Kitty opened a top drawer in
-the old mahogany chest and began slowly to sort out the few
-possessions she wanted to take with her, if she did go; an
-ivory comb, a pleated linen fichu, her mother&#8217;s cameo brooch.
-Her fingers flew faster every minute, as her heart warmed to
-the plan.</p>
-
-<p>Her throat grew tight, and she felt tears of eagerness and
-excitement sting her eyelids. She was going to serve her
-country, like Tom and Johnny and Dick, and all the Newburyport
-lads, all the lads of the Bay Colony, and maybe
-other colonies, too. She was going to take part in a serious,
-and a mighty, and a very grown-up thing. Wars were history,
-and she was going to help make history. It had been done
-before by other girls who were just as young. She was glad,
-she thought, that she was to have a chance to do it in her time.
-Her heart stirred just as it did in church when one or another
-of the old warlike hymn tunes rose on the air.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;d better take a cloak, Kit, for it&#8217;ll grow cold after
-sundown, and we may ride late,&#8221; advised Sally Rose, pulling
-her own fleecy shawl from the carved old press. &#8220;Come, let&#8217;s
-be off to the wars in Boston!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>On her way to follow Sally Rose&#8217;s bidding, Kitty caught
-sight of her cousin&#8217;s note as it lay open on the dressing table.</p>
-
-<p><i>Dear Granny</i>, the note began, in dainty, pointed script,
-<i>Forgive me for leaving you so suddenly, and practically forcing
-poor Kitty to go along. But I dare not travel by myself,
-and I find that a sudden yearning to see my father takes
-me....</i></p>
-
-<p>Kitty stood still for a moment and almost gave up all idea
-of this desperate journey.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;ll have a gay time in Charlestown.&#8221; &#8220;I want to serve
-my country.&#8221; &#8220;A sudden yearning to see my father takes me.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[68]</span>Sally Rose could give many reasons for what she wanted
-to do. And she would always give the ones most likely to get
-her what she wanted. And what was her true reason? No one
-knew except Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Nevertheless, Kitty found she did not turn back, but
-folded her cloak over her arm and hastened downstairs after
-her cousin. After all, what was her own reason for wanting to
-go to Charlestown? She did want to serve her country, but
-she was quick enough to see that she could serve it quite as
-well at home, if she had chosen so. But she had not so chosen.
-Was not she, Kitty, slyer, more secret and stubborn than
-Sally Rose in getting her own way?</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>It was black dark when they rode into Ipswich, very few
-lights in the town, and very few people still awake. The moon
-was hidden away behind the clouds somewhere, and a light
-mist had begun to fall.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I hoped we could get as far as Beverly,&#8221; said Sally Rose,
-&#8220;but we&#8217;ve come only half the way. Uncle Moses said he had
-plenty of horses in his barn, but he didn&#8217;t say they were plow
-horses. Well, there&#8217;s a light in the tavern. I&#8217;ve stopped there
-before, and I know the landlord&#8217;s daughter. A pert, homely
-little wench, but I&#8217;m sure she&#8217;ll find us a bed.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I hope so,&#8221; said Kitty dubiously, climbing down from her
-horse and following her cousin up the wide stone steps and
-through the low front door.</p>
-
-<p>The taproom smelled of cider and fish and the smoky
-wood fire burning on it blackened hearth. It was dimly lit and
-empty, except for three old men who sat at a table with
-glasses in front of them, and a sharp-faced, sallow girl polishing
-other glasses behind a narrow bar.</p>
-
-<p>When Sally Rose walked across the uneven floor, her head
-up, her eyes shining in the candlelight, her hips swaying ever
-so slightly, the heads of the old men turned toward her as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[69]</span>
-sunflowers turn to follow the golden light of day. Kitty
-walked demurely behind her, but nobody noticed Kitty.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Nanny,&#8221; cried Sally Rose, putting out her hand to the girl
-eagerly, as if there was no one in the world she would be
-gladder to see than Ipswich Nan. &#8220;Nanny, we&#8217;re o&#8217;ertaken
-with darkness, and we need a bed for the night, my cousin
-and I.&#8221; She drew Kitty forward, and they stood together at
-the bar. &#8220;We&#8217;ll need supper, too, Nanny,&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>Nanny curtsied. &#8220;Yes, Miss Sally Rose,&#8221; she answered,
-beaming adoringly at the pretty, smiling face turned toward
-her. &#8220;The bed in the east chamber is aired and ready. Should
-I serve you there, or....&#8221; She glanced about the taproom.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose began to pull off her embroidered gloves, put
-up a hand to pat her golden hair. &#8220;Oh&mdash;at that table by the
-fire, please. It was chilly, coming the last mile through the
-swamp willows, and with all the fog about.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Nanny lighted a candle in a pewter holder and carried it
-to the table by the fire. &#8220;I&#8217;ll bring you supper right off, Miss
-Sally Rose. We got dandelion greens and a ham bone&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose made up a face. &#8220;Oh Nanny,&#8221; she pleaded,
-&#8220;you know my stomach&#8217;s delicate.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty clapped her hand over her mouth so that she would
-not giggle. Sally Rose had never been sick in her life, and
-could probably digest brass nails if she had to.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Couldn&#8217;t you find a bit of chicken, Nanny?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Chicken I&#8217;ve not got,&#8221; answered Nanny. &#8220;But there&#8217;s a
-piece of spring lamb I just been a-roasting for the minister&#8217;s
-wife. She&#8217;s got Salem company coming tomorrow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The lamb will do nicely,&#8221; said Sally Rose, sitting down
-at table.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;About our horses,&#8221; asked Kitty, taking the chair across
-from her cousin.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, of course. I&#8217;ll speak to one of the men and have them
-seen to. I noticed the landlord as I came in.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[70]</span>They turned to look at the three men by the table. The
-men were all staring at them and talking together in low
-voices. One of them now rose and came forward. He wore
-a leather apron tied around his middle and walked with a
-decided limp.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Job Townsend&#8217;s daughter, ain&#8217;t you?&#8221; he demanded of
-Sally Rose. &#8220;Visit kin in Newburyport on occasion?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose smiled and dimpled. &#8220;Why, how clever of you
-to remember me! Of course I&#8217;m Job Townsend&#8217;s daughter,&#8221;
-she said. &#8220;And I&#8217;m on my way home from Newburyport
-right now. I&#8217;ve often told my cousin Kitty here, about your
-tavern&mdash;there isn&#8217;t a better one in the whole of Essex
-County.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Strangely enough, the landlord was not smiling at Sally
-Rose, and he ignored her compliment.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We had a young fellow here a short time back. A young
-fellow who said he hung around the Bay and Beagle some.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He waited, his face expressionless, for Sally Rose to speak.
-In the silence Kitty heard the rattle of dishes from the
-kitchen. She caught the delicious odor of roast meat, the tang
-of crushed mint leaves.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose&#8217;s smile grew no whit dimmer. &#8220;We&#8217;ve many
-young fellows who hang around the Bay and Beagle,&#8221; she
-said. &#8220;My dad would go poor, if we didn&#8217;t. They keep the
-till full. Did he tell you his name?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The landlord spoke accusingly. &#8220;He said his name was
-Gerry Malory. He said he was going to Newburyport to see
-a girl.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose shrugged her graceful shoulders. &#8220;Plenty of
-girls in Newburyport,&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Do you know this Gerry Malory?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I might,&#8221; she answered cautiously. &#8220;Was he a dockyard
-hand now, or maybe a farmer from Breed&#8217;s hill&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;This one was took up for being a British officer,&#8221; said the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[71]</span>
-landlord grimly. &#8220;Took up, right here in my tavern. Irons
-put on his wrists&mdash;part of an old ox chain I had&mdash;and he was
-took to the camp at Cambridge under guard. Likely they&#8217;ll
-hang the damn redcoat. I hope they do.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose&#8217;s smile looked a bit frozen, but it did not vanish
-away. There was a tremor in her voice, but she spoke imperiously
-still. &#8220;All very interesting, Landlord, but your daughter
-has undertaken to fetch us a supper of spring lamb. We
-are tired with long riding, and if you could ask her to be spry
-about it, we should be grateful. Our horses, also, are at your
-door and in need of attention.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She sat down and turned her back upon him.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty watched the lame man shake his head. Then he
-stumped off toward the kitchen. She looked again at her
-cousin, and Sally Rose&#8217;s eyes were shining with more than
-the candlelight.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He was coming to see me,&#8221; she murmured happily.
-&#8220;Gerry was coming to see me when they caught him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty felt her face twist in a frown and spoke her disapproval.
-&#8220;Which he shouldn&#8217;t have been doing, of course. He
-belongs with the other British in Boston. Well, he&#8217;s got himself
-in trouble now. A prisoner of our men, and the landlord
-talked of hanging. Aren&#8217;t you worried about him?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose took off her bonnet and shook back her shining
-hair. &#8220;Not a little finger&#8217;s worth,&#8221; she said. &#8220;They won&#8217;t
-hold him long. He can come and go like a breath of east
-wind, Gerry can. My, oh my&#8221;&mdash;and she patted the front of
-her muslin gown&mdash;&#8220;I&#8217;m so hungry. I wish Nanny would
-hurry and bring that spring lamb!&#8221;</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Twenty-four hours later they were hungry again, much
-hungrier, and very tired. But they were riding down Crooked
-Lane in Charlestown, with the Bay and Beagle almost in
-sight, and over the river the lights of Boston.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[72]</span>&#8220;My, it&#8217;s been a tiresome day,&#8221; sighed Sally Rose. &#8220;Losing
-my purse, horse going lame, taking the wrong turn in Danvers&mdash;I
-don&#8217;t see how I could have been so stupid as to do
-that.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The black flies were the worst,&#8221; complained Kitty. &#8220;I&#8217;m
-bitten in a dozen places, I vow. And I don&#8217;t dare scratch the
-bites, for if I do, I&#8217;ll look as if I had smallpox.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She thought back over their long day&#8217;s riding: village
-greens with white steeples&mdash;Wenham, Beverly, Salem; long
-stretches of salt marsh with the sea beyond it; then Lynn and
-Malden, as the towns drew closer in. It was already night
-when they came to Medford, and there a constable had
-ridden with them through town, straight to the Penny Ferry.
-Part of the great New England Army was camped on the
-hills about and overflowing the streets and taverns, he said,
-and he feared for the safety of young maids abroad so late.
-What were their folks thinking of, anyway?</p>
-
-<p>For once Sally Rose had been too tired to be charming.
-She bowed her head meekly and accepted his rebuke. But her
-spirits rose as they left river and causeway behind them and
-took a field path so as not to have to pass the Sign of the Sun
-tavern where there were apt to be British officers about.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My, but Daddy will be surprised,&#8221; she said. &#8220;I want a
-glass of Spanish wine and a meat pasty. And then, bed! Oh
-Kitty, think what it&#8217;ll be like to have a featherbed under us
-again! I swear, I&#8217;ll roll and wallow in it! Why&mdash;why here
-we are, and there aren&#8217;t any lights in the windows!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They drew up their horses uncertainly in the deserted
-street. All the houses were dark around them, and the cloudy
-sky was dark overhead. A lantern burned at the top of a pole
-a little way off, so that Kitty could make out the weathered
-sign before her uncle&#8217;s tavern, the wooden profile of a tall
-bay horse pawing the air, and at his feet a trim, alert hunting
-dog. But as Sally Rose said, the diamond-shaped panes were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[73]</span>
-dark. Peering closer, however, she noticed some letters traced
-in whitewash on the iron-bound door.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Look, Sally Rose, there&#8217;s a sign, but I can&#8217;t read it,&#8221; she
-said.</p>
-
-<p>They got down from their horses and walked closer.
-&#8220;Neither can I,&#8221; said Sally Rose. She tried the door. It was
-locked tight.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know how to climb in by the buttery window,&#8221; she
-murmured, for once a little crestfallen, &#8220;but I still want to
-know what is written on the door. I wonder where Father can
-be. He always keeps late closing time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She stood irresolute a moment. Then she drew a quick
-breath as if something pleased her, and ran down the street
-to the lantern swinging on its pole. Reaching, stretching,
-pulling herself up, she managed to lift it down and hurry
-back, holding it proudly aloft, flashing it on the paneled door.</p>
-
-<p>In the light that flared uncertainly behind the thin panes
-of horn, the two cousins bent close and read aloud the words,
-&#8220;Closed. Gone to the wars till the damn British be beat. J.
-Townsend.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They stood still and looked at each other. A salt-smelling
-wind blew down the old street, and a wisp of fog came with
-it. Fog was dimming the lights of Boston, that even now,
-close to midnight, still burned on the other side of the river.
-The lights looked unfriendly, Kitty thought, as she remembered
-that Boston was in the hands of the enemy. Down by
-the wharves men were shouting and the shouts had an angry
-sound. A burst of musket fire broke out, somewhere off Medford
-way. The girls looked at each other and shivered. They
-were hungry and tired and fly-bitten. They were a little
-frightened, maybe.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What will we do now?&#8221; asked Kitty. The tone reminded
-Sally Rose that she was to blame for the plight they were in,
-even if the words did not.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[74]</span>&#8220;I&mdash;don&#8217;t&mdash;quite know,&#8221; faltered Sally Rose. &#8220;We can
-get into the house. We&#8217;ll have a roof over our heads, and a
-bed to sleep in. Maybe there&#8217;s something to eat in the cupboard.
-We&#8217;ll be safe for tonight. But it&#8217;s after that I&#8217;m thinking
-of. We can&#8217;t run the tavern alone, without father, and
-how are we to live if we cannot run the tavern?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We could send for Gran,&#8221; said Kitty a little mockingly.
-&#8220;Of course she&#8217;s a timid old lady, but I notice she&#8217;s able to
-do most everything that comes her way. I&#8217;ll bet she&#8217;d be able
-to serve up cider, or rum toddy, or hot grog&mdash;or whatever it
-is they drink.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly Sally Rose was smiling again. &#8220;Kitty, that&#8217;s a
-wonderful plan. Let&#8217;s climb into the house now, and have
-supper, and sleep forever. When we wake up we&#8217;ll send her
-a letter by the first post. The buttery window&#8217;s around here
-at the back, under the apple tree. Come along. I can unfasten
-the catch, but you&#8217;ll have to hoist me in.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[75]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Eight</i><br />
-
-
-<small>SAVED BY A PIPE-SMOKING MAN</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">Standing</span> in the wet salt grass at the end of Chelsea Neck,
-Tom Trask shifted the old blunderbuss from one shoulder
-to the other.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wisht I had my own gun,&#8221; he said to himself. &#8220;I&#8217;d rather
-try to lug a young pine tree, roots and all, than this critter
-here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then he smiled sheepishly as he thought of the pretty girl
-who had loaned him the aged weapon. She was a pretty girl,
-too. Likely he&#8217;d go to her house and see her when he went
-down river with the logs next spring. Guess she wouldn&#8217;t
-have any eyes for the Newburyport lads when he was about.
-This fuss would all be over by then, and folks back where
-they belonged, plowing their own ground.</p>
-
-<p>He shivered with the cold that goes before sunrise and
-tried to peer through the blackness and mist around him to see
-if the others were getting as restless as he. There were three
-hundred or more of them, New Hampshire and Massachusetts
-men, here where the Neck narrowed down. Not a torch, not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[76]</span>
-a lantern, General Putnam had warned, and if any man felt
-the need of tobacco, let him cut plug and chew, like an old
-cow with cud. It was worse than being lost in the devil&#8217;s
-pocket, but even at that, it was better than sitting around
-camp playing cat&#8217;s-cradle, like they&#8217;d been doing for the past
-month. A man could get gray whiskers before his time, that
-way.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the lads who came a-running so quick after Concord
-Fight had got tired of the game and put for home already,
-but Tom hadn&#8217;t quite been able to convince himself he
-ought to go along. No, so long as Colonel Stark saw a reason
-to sit around waiting for the British to jump, he guessed he,
-Tom Trask, could wait too. He himself hadn&#8217;t been far from
-the camp at Medford, but he&#8217;d heard Boston was all ringed
-round with Massachusetts and Connecticut men keeping the
-redcoats shut up tight.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can you hear me, lads?&#8221; bellowed a gruff voice up ahead.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye,&#8221; came a dozen shouts from the tall reeds around
-him, and an equally gruff voice added, &#8220;Aye! We be listening
-all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Volunteers! Old Put wants volunteers!&#8221; roared the first
-speaker. &#8220;There&#8217;ll be an officer come amongst you. There&#8217;ll
-be....&#8221; His voice grew fainter as he turned to deliver his
-message in another direction, but the words still sounded
-plain.</p>
-
-<p>Tom put his blunderbuss down and leaned on it. He spoke
-to the man who stood in the marsh grass just ahead of him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Got any idea what this is about?&#8221; he asked.</p>
-
-<p>The other man took his time in answering. He was older,
-Tom sensed, and more heavily built. In the silence they
-heard shouting and the rattle of musket fire. A ship&#8217;s gun
-flashed on the dark waters of Chelsea Creek.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yea&mdash;a,&#8221; said the man slowly. &#8220;I was down by the ferry
-stage awhile back.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[77]</span>&#8220;Was there fighting there?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Fighting there was. The British ships firing at us, and
-our men waist-deep in water shooting back&mdash;even the General
-himself, Old Put.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Did you hear what the volunteers be for?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe. You haven&#8217;t been here all along? You&#8217;re one o&#8217;
-the reserves who come in late last night? One o&#8217; Stark&#8217;s
-men?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye. One o&#8217; Stark&#8217;s men, and proud of it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The man was chewing tobacco, Tom&#8217;s keen nose told him.
-He spat suddenly into the reeds, his own mouth tasting rancid.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Likely some day you may have something to be proud of.
-You done no more yet than anyone else, as I can see.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom ignored the rebuke. &#8220;Volunteers now,&#8221; he murmured.
-&#8220;If I knew what &#8217;twas about, likely I might take a
-notion to go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Likely they wouldn&#8217;t want you,&#8221; sneered the older
-man. &#8220;If I was Putnam&mdash;which I ain&#8217;t&mdash;I&#8217;d give the job to
-one o&#8217; the Essex County boys.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Because &#8217;tis a seafaring operation, of a sort, and there be
-none like the Essex men for maneuvers at sea.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The firing from the river was steady now.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe,&#8221; said Tom. &#8220;What is this operation that takes
-such a picked crew? I never see salt water yet will fight a man
-as hard as old Merrimack when the freshets come down.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Volunteers!&#8221; sang out a voice nearby. A man, bareheaded,
-wearing a torn brown coat, stood before them holding
-a carefully shielded lantern in his hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Eleven picked men I got. I need one more.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Twelve men, you got,&#8221; said Tom, shouldering his blunderbuss.
-&#8220;Where do I go?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The man held up his lantern so that the dim light shone
-on his new recruit.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[78]</span>&#8220;Built for it, you be,&#8221; he said after a moment. &#8220;Long, and
-lean, and tough, by the look of you. Are you tough, lad?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tougher&#8217;n a biled owl,&#8221; said Tom imperturbably.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can you swim?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Like a muskrat.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The man grinned. &#8220;What&#8217;s your trade?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m a timber man. Floating logs downstream out of the
-Hampshire woods is my trade.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good! Come along then. Down by the water. Ike Baldwin
-has charge o&#8217; the action, and he&#8217;s gathered his men
-there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom followed as he was bidden, down a rough path to the
-border of Chelsea Creek. Looking over his shoulder once, he
-saw in the sky a long streak of sunrise, salmon and silver-gray.</p>
-
-<p>The Neck ended in a narrow strip of shaly beach, and as
-Tom moved out of the protecting reeds he drew his head
-down turtle-fashion. A British ball whined past him, and
-then another. Half an hour now, and it would be broad daylight.
-Whatever this seafaring operation was, they&#8217;d better
-get it over, and soon. Then a little group of men loomed up
-in the thinning mist ahead of him. Eight, nine, he counted,
-most of them no older than he. They were stripped to the
-waist and unarmed, save for their leader, a stalwart man in
-a blue coat and knee breeches who leaned on a musket. Tom
-and his guide approached the group.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here&#8217;s your twelfth, Ike,&#8221; said the brown-coated man.
-&#8220;Swims like a muskrat, tougher&#8217;n a biled owl, and is used to
-riding log rafts down the Merrimack. Think he&#8217;ll do.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Ike cleared his throat and spat into the water lapping
-gently along the beach. &#8220;Have to, now,&#8221; he said. &#8220;We&#8217;ll be
-sitting ducks in fifteen minutes more. Cal and &#8217;Lisha&#8217;s gone
-for a keg of pitch.&#8221; He turned to Tom. &#8220;You one o&#8217; Stark&#8217;s
-men?&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[79]</span>&#8220;Aye. Tom Trask of Derryfield.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good. Get rid of your gun and strip down.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom looked around and found an outcrop of ledge where
-he thought he could probably leave the blunderbuss in safety.
-Then he peeled off his hunting shirt. British mortar fire still
-droned overhead&mdash;too high; he had heard back in camp that
-the British usually shot that way. As he shook his hands free
-from the loose sleeves and flung the garment down, he lifted
-his head and looked at the man nearest to him. Then a wry
-smile twisted his mouth.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I think I seen you before,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>The other lad peered through the thinning mist, then his
-eyes widened in recognition and he smiled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye,&#8221; he answered jauntily. &#8220;Last time I seen you, you
-was playing hide-and-seek. You grown up yet, I wonder?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There was others playing it, too,&#8221; retorted Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, others. Kitty Greenleaf, you&#8217;ll likely remember.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Kitty Greenleaf! So that&#8217;s her name. I never did know
-the whole of it. Promised her I&#8217;d call by and see her, if I ever
-happened back that way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t take the trouble. Kitty&#8217;s closer now. She&#8217;s in
-Charlestown with her cousin, Sally Rose. I went home to
-get some clean shirts and a better gun, and &#8217;twas there I heard
-it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In Charlestown?&#8221; asked Tom in surprise. &#8220;Charlestown&#8217;s
-not held to be very safe these days. &#8217;Tis thought the British
-may strike at us from there. I heard there be only a couple
-hundred people left in the town, and most of the women sent
-away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I heard so, too. But Sally Rose took a notion to go home
-and nothing would stop her, so Kitty went along. I ain&#8217;t got
-over there yet to see them, but I mean to. I heard Granny
-Greenleaf went legging after them, mad as time.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[80]</span>Tom laughed in spite of himself as he remembered the
-thin old voice quavering excitedly, &#8220;Stop, thief, stop!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe I&#8217;ll just go along with you, when you do go,&#8221; he
-said. &#8220;What&#8217;s your name now? Eben, was it?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Eben! No! You&#8217;re thinking of Eben Poore. He&#8217;s naught
-but a foolish little lad. I be Johnny Pettengall.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So,&#8221; said Tom. In the river ahead of him he could see
-two low green islands getting plainer every minute as the
-mist cleared away. &#8220;Well, Johnny, for old times&#8217; sake then,
-tell me what&#8217;s afoot and what are we down here for?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny&#8217;s face brightened and his voice grew eager, now
-that he was intent again on the business in hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Likely, being a New Hampshire man, you come in with
-Stark&#8217;s reserves last night.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No. I wasn&#8217;t detailed to go&mdash;nor to stay, either. Couldn&#8217;t
-sleep, and long in the night sometime, I thought I&#8217;d just
-wander this way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I been here all along. We was sent over to Noddle&#8217;s Island
-yesterday to drive the cattle off. Farmers who pasture
-there have been selling beef to the British. We&#8217;d cleared off
-Noddle, burned the house of one man who resisted, and was
-on our way back across Hog Island, when a sloop and a
-schooner sailed close in. Fired on us, they did, and o&#8217; course
-we answered back.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;O&#8217; course,&#8221; agreed Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Been firing ever since, except for the schooner&mdash;the
-<i>Diana</i>, she is, one of our men said who recognized her. She&#8217;s
-run aground and been abandoned. It&#8217;s her we&#8217;re going out to
-burn.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom looked where the other lad pointed. Sure enough,
-there in the gray light, not very far from shore, rode a two-masted
-schooner, listing badly to one side. Her foresail hung
-in long streamers that stirred as the morning wind blew<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[81]</span>
-through them. Her colors had been shot away, and the lower
-side of her deck was all awash with sea.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;All right, boys!&#8221; Ike Baldwin straightened them to attention
-with his command. &#8220;Here&#8217;s Cal and &#8217;Lisha with the
-pitch. Now we can go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Two young men, dark-haired and muscular, came panting
-up with a heavy keg between them, swung in a cradle of stout
-rope. Baldwin went on, speaking rapidly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cal and &#8217;Lisha will tow the pitch out to the schooner.
-Got that now?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>General murmurs of assent passed among the little group.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye,&#8221; murmured Johnny brightly, like a smart lad repeating
-catechism.</p>
-
-<p>Tom inclined his head and chewed nervously at a bit of
-grass he had picked up somewhere. It had a rank salty taste.
-He wished he knew exactly what he was supposed to do.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The rest of you ain&#8217;t going along for the swim, remember,&#8221;
-the relentless orders went on. &#8220;You&#8217;re there to help
-get the pitch aboard and spread it around on whatever parts
-of her is driest and most likely to burn. Don&#8217;t want her to go
-back into British service again. Don&#8217;t want the British to think
-they can come shooting amongst us any time they choose
-without having to pay.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He stood still for a moment, in a defiant attitude, waiting
-for his words to take effect.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How we going to kindle the pitch, Ike?&#8221; asked a voice at
-the rear of the group. &#8220;Flints and tinderboxes&#8217;ll be wetter&#8217;n
-a drowned cat &#8217;fore we get there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Isaac Baldwin frowned. Then his face cleared and he
-waved a nonchalant hand. &#8220;Likely there&#8217;ll be a cookfire in
-the galley,&#8221; he said. &#8220;She ain&#8217;t been abandoned long. Likely
-you&#8217;ll find a tinderbox there&mdash;or somewhere else aboard.
-Her crew must ha&#8217; had some means to light a fire.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe,&#8221; said Tom. He stood thoughtfully for a moment,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[82]</span>
-wondering how much time he would have before Ike
-Baldwin ordered them into the water. It would take a few
-minutes, the thing he wanted to do.</p>
-
-<p>Luck was with him, for Baldwin bent over just then to
-speak with Cal and &#8217;Lisha who were tightening the cradle
-ropes about the keg. He looked up the hill in the direction he
-had come, then back at the creek again. Out beyond the
-stranded <i>Diana</i>, the guns of the sloop were still firing harmlessly
-away. After a moment of indecision, he turned and ran
-up the hill.</p>
-
-<p>He found the man he had been talking to a short time
-before, seated now on a tuft of marsh grass, his gun beside
-him. He was just in the act of filling a pipe, as Tom had
-gambled he would be. The New Hampshire man loped up
-and accosted him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You with that pipe there!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The man did not look up. His fingers moved leisurely
-with flints and tinder. He lit the pipe, drew on it deeply, then
-took it from his mouth and asked, &#8220;Was you speaking to
-me?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. General Putnam gave out the word there was to be
-no smoking amongst the men. He sent me to collect every
-pipe I found lighted. Like this.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom&#8217;s hand reached forth lightning quick and snatched
-the pipe from its owner&#8217;s startled jaws. Then he sprinted off,
-down the Neck.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hey! Give me back my pipe!&#8221; yelled the man, scrambling
-to his feet, his arms flailing the air. &#8220;Them orders
-against pipes was night orders only. It&#8217;s safe enough, now
-day&#8217;s come.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tell it to General Putnam,&#8221; called Tom over his shoulder.
-He did not slow his pace until he reached the beach. Cal
-and &#8217;Lisha had waded out waist-deep, floating the keg between
-them. The others plunged in now, and began swimming<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[83]</span>
-toward the schooner. Their officer laid his musket
-down and shed his clothes, obviously intending to follow
-them, like a shepherd after his sheep.</p>
-
-<p>Tom stood still, put the pipe in his mouth, and took a pull
-on it. Great Jehovah, it tasted worse than sulphur and molasses
-that the old women dosed you with in the spring. It
-tasted worse than wormwood and bear&#8217;s grease, worse than
-dragonroot tea. Ike Baldwin stepped into the water now, and
-Tom followed at a little distance. By and by he felt the river
-floor sloping away under his feet, but he managed to keep on
-wading, though the others launched forth and swam. He held
-his head high and his neck still, and kept puffing on the pipe.
-The schooner was only a little way off, stranded in shallow
-water, but it seemed to Tom as if he would never get there,
-with the ill-smelling wooden bowl and its little treasure of
-fire. Maybe they wouldn&#8217;t need it, he thought, but if they did
-they would need it bad, and he meant to have it on hand.</p>
-
-<p>Once a British ball struck close by, throwing up a shower
-of spray that left him shaken and half blinded, but he kept
-puffing away at the pipe and forged steadily ahead. Then
-another ball struck even closer. The British were finding the
-range, he thought. They must have realized what their opponents
-meant to do.</p>
-
-<p>When he reached the schooner, she was so sharply tilted
-that he found it as easy to climb aboard her as it would have
-been to swarm up a sloping beach. The other lads were there
-ahead of him, busy spreading pitch on a pile of canvas mattresses
-and hammocks fetched up from the sleeping quarters
-below, spreading it on the dry parts of the deck above water
-line.</p>
-
-<p>A brisk wind sang through the <i>Diana&#8217;s</i> broken rigging. It
-struck cold on Tom&#8217;s bare shoulders and drove the last of the
-mist away. Sounds of firing came from the British sloop, but
-he forgot the sloop. He cupped his hands about the pipe bowl<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[84]</span>
-to shelter its living contents from the wind. He took a long
-puff.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So this is the way Stark trains his lads!&#8221; Isaac Baldwin&#8217;s
-voice lashed out at him. He turned sharply and looked into
-the grim, angry face of their leader.</p>
-
-<p>Tom took the pipe cautiously from his mouth. &#8220;&#8217;T hasn&#8217;t
-got nothing to do with Stark,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If this were a regular engagement, you could be court-martialed.
-Smoking a pipe! Skulking here smoking a pipe!
-Look at the other lads!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom stared miserably at the busy group who were still
-heaping up whatever inflammables they could find. Then he
-put the pipe back in his mouth and gave another dogged puff.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here! Give me that!&#8221; Livid with rage, Ike Baldwin
-made a grab for the pipe.</p>
-
-<p>Tom put one hand up before his face and ducked away.
-The deck under his feet was worn by the tramp of many men,
-and it was slippery with morning dew. He fell, half recovered
-himself, and then went down on his knees, his teeth still
-clamped to the pipestem.</p>
-
-<p>From the hatchway that led below came confused cries.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, Captain! Tell the Captain there&#8217;s not a spark aboard
-her! Galley fire&#8217;s been put out and the ashes raked over! Not
-a flint! Not a tinderbox! How&#8217;s to have a burning without
-fire?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom felt his pulses quicken. It was as if there were shooting
-sparks of triumph in his blood. His guess had been right,
-then. He lifted his head. Baldwin had turned away, having
-greater troubles now.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There must be flints somewhere,&#8221; he exclaimed crustily.
-&#8220;Have you searched the officers&#8217; quarters? The mess cabin?
-The hold?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, sir. Everywhere.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom got to his feet and looked around him. The men were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[85]</span>
-standing idle now, about the heap of mattresses. They looked
-bewildered and&mdash;well, not afraid&mdash;uneasy, maybe. Turning
-his head a little, he saw the green shores of Hog Island with
-Noddle&#8217;s Island just beyond it, and far beyond that, the roofs
-of Boston touched with the morning sun. In the foreground
-hovered the British sloop. Her guns were silent now, but her
-sails were spread and she seemed to be drawing close. Perhaps
-this was the time for him to speak.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Give me that pipe!&#8221; Isaac Baldwin&#8217;s command had a different
-tone to it this time. Before he had been angry and
-somewhat scornful. Now his voice was full of eagerness,
-quick and keen.</p>
-
-<p>Tom took the pipe from his mouth. &#8220;Yes, sir,&#8221; he said. &#8220;I
-thought we might need it, sir. That&#8217;s why I brought it along.
-I&mdash;I&#8217;m not much of a smoking man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good boy,&#8221; said Isaac Baldwin.</p>
-
-<p>He walked quickly across the deck, knelt down, and ripped
-a bit of tow from a mattress, testing the dryness of it with his
-fingers. Then he placed it lightly across the bowl of the pipe.</p>
-
-<p>The other men were holding their breaths as they looked
-on. Tom watched, too, but he felt a strange dizziness coming
-over him, so he went and clung to the rail.</p>
-
-<p>At first nothing happened. Then it was as if the tow began
-to melt away. Ike held a larger piece of tow above the first
-one&mdash;a fluffed-out piece. Suddenly the fluff burst into open
-flame. Someone started to cheer and quickly choked the
-sound back. From the fluff, Ike lighted a still larger piece of
-tow and dropped that on the heap of bedding. The men
-watched, fascinated. First one little tongue of flame leaped
-up and then another. Then a tiny roaring sound began, growing
-louder every moment.</p>
-
-<p>When he saw that there was a splendid bonfire a-going,
-Tom turned to the rail and hung weakly overside. He knew
-now that his trick had worked and the British schooner would<span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[86]</span>
-soon be a seething mass of flame. Soon his comrades, their
-mission accomplished, would be leaping overside and swimming
-back to Chelsea Neck. When that time came, he knew,
-he would straighten himself up and go with them, but right
-now there was a rancid taste in his mouth and the smell of
-burning pitch in his nostrils. He&#8217;d had enough of pipe-smoking
-to last him a lifetime, and he didn&#8217;t feel very well&mdash;in
-fact, he didn&#8217;t feel well at all.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[87]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Nine</i><br />
-
-
-<small>NO CLOUDS ON BUNKER HILL</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;Never</span> expected to see you keeping a public house, Ma&#8217;am
-Greenleaf&mdash;leastwise, not one with a strong drink
-license.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Old Timothy Coffin&#8217;s voice had disapproval in it, Kitty
-thought, as she turned from the small oak bar where she was
-polishing glasses. The warm June sunshine struck through
-the diamond-shaped panes and lay in pools of light with
-rainbow edges on the sanded floor, on the worn tables and
-benches. A gentle breeze stirred the tall hollyhock stems outside
-the window. Sally Rose was weeding the hollyhocks&mdash;or
-supposed to be. Now that Gran had come to take charge,
-there was a task for everyone.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re a-going to see a deal of things you never expected
-to see,&#8221; said Gran tartly. She was seated by the hearth shelling
-peas, while Timothy swept the tiles with a birch broom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Happen you&#8217;re right, Ma&#8217;am,&#8221; agreed the old man.
-&#8220;Never expected to see the King&#8217;s men shooting at us&mdash;and
-we going to meeting, praying for the King, all the while.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, it&#8217;s a strange state of affairs, Timothy,&#8221; answered
-Gran. Her voice had turned suddenly thoughtful, and her<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[88]</span>
-fingers played idly with the empty pods as she stared through
-the open door at the empty house across the way.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty looked at the empty house, too. Most of the houses
-in Charlestown were empty now, and scarcely any women
-left in the town at all. The men came back sometimes to cut
-hay and weed their gardens, but they had sent their families
-away to the inland towns, and swore they would leave them
-there till this fuss with the British soldiers was ended, one
-way or another.</p>
-
-<p>This was bad for business, of course. Here it was, nearly ten
-o&#8217;clock of a fine hot Tuesday morning, sixth of June by the
-almanac, and she hadn&#8217;t served a single customer.</p>
-
-<p>Everything seemed to be set up in terms of this &#8220;fuss,&#8221;
-nowadays. For instance, she and Gran and Sally Rose living
-here in Charlestown and running the Bay and Beagle, while
-Uncle Job was away with the Massachusetts troops somewhere.
-Not knowing they were here, thinking Sally Rose
-was safe in Newburyport, he hadn&#8217;t come home. Then when
-Gran came to join them, hopping mad at the trick Sally Rose
-had played, she brought Dick Moody and Timothy along to
-do the men&#8217;s work about the place. They hadn&#8217;t stayed in
-camp long, for Dick was young and couldn&#8217;t shoot well
-enough, and Timothy was old, and his bones creaked. But
-all they wanted to talk about was the camp and the goings-on
-there. But they didn&#8217;t call it a &#8220;fuss&#8221; like Gran did. They
-called it a war. And that had a much more important and
-terrible sound.</p>
-
-<p>War was terrible, Kitty knew, so terrible that it couldn&#8217;t
-be going to happen right here in front of her eyes, to people
-she knew, maybe to herself&mdash;not really.</p>
-
-<p>Dick came in from the backyard with an armful of wood
-and stacked it carefully beside the hearth. Then he stood
-silent and respectful, looking at Granny.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[89]</span>Dick had grown taller, Kitty thought, and next time he
-went to camp, as he threatened to do every day or so, it
-wasn&#8217;t likely they&#8217;d send him home for being too young.
-Sometimes he and Timothy went to the cow pasture at the
-foot of Bunker Hill and practiced a little with Timothy&#8217;s gun&mdash;not
-much, though, because they didn&#8217;t want to waste
-powder and ball. Suddenly she realized Dick was speaking.
-He looked at her, but he addressed himself to Granny.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I thank you for bringing me down here, near where I
-wanted to be. But I&#8217;m quitting your service now, Ma&#8217;am
-Greenleaf.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, go get yourself a slice of bread and molasses, and
-you&#8217;ll think better of it,&#8221; said Granny. &#8220;You can put maple
-sugar on it, too,&#8221; she added.</p>
-
-<p>Dick&#8217;s face grew red, and his young voice had an unfamiliar
-harshness in it. &#8220;You&#8217;ve fed me well enough, Ma&#8217;am. It&#8217;s
-not on account of the food and wages I&#8217;m leaving.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What is it then, and what do you think to do?&#8221; asked
-Gran, with an air of rapidly exhausting patience.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Up the Mystic a ways&mdash;in one o&#8217; the swamps there&mdash;some
-men from Gloucester are building fire boats. I been in
-the ship-building trade. They said I could help them.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Fire boats!&#8221; Granny tried to laugh, but there was no
-merriment in the noise she made. It sounded like a cackle.
-&#8220;And what do you think to do with fire boats, pray?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why, what do most folk do with fire? Burn something.
-Maybe one o&#8217; the British schooners, or men-o&#8217;-war, even.
-Maybe burn Boston, for all I know. Whatever our orders
-say.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You can&#8217;t burn Boston,&#8221; retorted Granny severely. &#8220;Boston
-don&#8217;t belong to the British soldiery. Houses and shops and
-all belongs to Americans, as good as you be. True, they&#8217;ve
-most of them fled from it now, but they&#8217;ll be back some day&mdash;when
-this fuss is over, and God send that happen right soon.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[90]</span>
-Now whatever is that drum a-beating for?&#8221; She held up her
-head and listened. &#8220;I&#8217;ve heard fife and drum music enough
-to last me a long time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;ll hear more of it before you hear less, Ma&#8217;am,&#8221;
-muttered Timothy.</p>
-
-<p>Dick hurried to the door and stared up the road that led
-to the Neck, from which the sound came. Kitty went to stand
-beside him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Are you really going back to be with the Army, Dick?&#8221;
-she asked, in one of the brief pauses between the slow beats of
-the drum.</p>
-
-<p>Dick cleared his throat. &#8220;Seems like I have to,&#8221; he murmured.
-&#8220;Would it matter to you, Kit, if I&mdash;&#8221; His voice broke
-off, and his hand just brushed her shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh Kitty! Kitty!&#8221; cried Sally Rose as she came flying
-down the street, her bright hair loose on her shoulders and
-her cheeks flushed with excitement. &#8220;They&#8217;re bringing the
-prisoners! There&#8217;s going to be an exchange! Perhaps Gerry
-will be in it!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She dropped down on the broad doorstone and sat there,
-trying to get back her breath.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How do you know?&#8221; asked Dick quickly. He was not
-looking at Sally Rose, but up the winding street that led to
-Charlestown Neck and the towns beyond it on the mainland.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty looked, too. Down the narrow way between the
-gabled houses came a slowly moving procession. First the
-drummer stepped out, a scrawny lad not much taller than
-Dick. He walked all alone, beating a brass-bound drum, and
-behind him followed a black horse drawing a phaeton with
-two men in it. After the phaeton rode two British officers on
-horseback. She could see nothing more at the moment because
-of a crook in the street. A little crowd was beginning to
-gather in the direction of Market Square. Sally Rose finally
-got back her breath and answered Dick&#8217;s question.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[91]</span>&#8220;When I heard the drum I ran down to Mr. Bassett&#8217;s
-wine shop. He&#8217;s back in town, you know, to cut his hay on the
-Point Road, and I asked him what was happening. He said
-he heard&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The drummer had come even with the Bay and Beagle
-now, and his steady beating drowned out the girl&#8217;s excited
-voice. Sally Rose stopped talking and got to her feet. She and
-Dick and Kitty stood together in the tavern doorway and
-watched the slow procession advance and pass close by them.</p>
-
-<p>The two men who rode in the phaeton behind the drummer
-were in odd contrast to each other, and yet there was the
-same air of dignity and purpose enveloping both of them.
-One was old&mdash;not so old as Timothy, but not young any
-more. He was broad-shouldered and sturdy and had a round,
-good-natured face and a shock of tousled gray hair. He wore
-a blue uniform. His companion was younger, fair-haired and
-blue-eyed, with a ruddy face and a fresh, scrubbed look
-about him. He was not a soldier, apparently, for his coat was
-fawn-colored with a white-fringed waistcoat underneath.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s Old Put,&#8221; said Timothy proudly, for he and Gran
-had come to stand just behind them. &#8220;See! In the blue coat
-there! General Putnam. His wife must ha&#8217; sent him his uniform.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why would she have to do that?&#8221; asked Gran tartly.
-&#8220;Wouldn&#8217;t go off to war without it, would he?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Timothy chuckled. &#8220;That&#8217;s just what he done! When he
-heard about Concord Fight, he was building a stone wall on
-his farm away down in Connecticut. But he come just as he
-was, in leather breeches and apron. Got here at next day&#8217;s
-sunrise, they say.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I guess there was others got here just as quick as he did,&#8221;
-answered Gran. &#8220;Yourself for one.&#8221; She peered over Kitty&#8217;s
-shoulder. &#8220;Who be that by his side?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s Dr. Warren. Best damn man, I say, that ever come<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[92]</span>
-out o&#8217; Boston. Don&#8217;t know how General Ward would run
-Cambridge Camp without him. Figures out how to get supplies,
-and men, and money, and all. He&#8217;s got book learning
-and can talk to anybody. More&#8217;n that, he&#8217;s a good doctor.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where are the prisoners, I wonder?&#8221; asked Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty nudged her, and she subsided.</p>
-
-<p>After the phaeton came two British officers, splendid in
-white and scarlet, and riding sleek horses; then another officer
-in a chaise; then a handful of officers on foot. They were
-escorted by a blue-uniformed guard that Timothy said
-looked to him like Connecticut men. By now the drummer
-had turned into Ferry Street, heading for the wharves at the
-waterside. Here and there stood a little cluster of men, here
-and there a woman&#8217;s head appeared at a gable window, but
-the spectators were few. At the very end of the procession a
-farm cart rattled along, drawn by two plow horses. A group
-of men sprawled on the floor of it, men in tattered British
-uniforms, pale and unshaven, unable to walk, apparently,
-because of wounds or illness. They looked so forlorn and
-miserable that Kitty felt tears start to her eyes.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh,&#8221; she whispered to Sally Rose, &#8220;I&#8217;m sorry for the
-poor lads. I don&#8217;t care if they are British.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If they hadn&#8217;t come out shooting at us, they wouldn&#8217;t be
-in this pickle now,&#8221; growled Timothy. &#8220;Wonder where is
-our boys we&#8217;re supposed to get back in the exchange.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Mr. Bassett says they&#8217;re aboard the <i>Lively</i>,&#8221; said Sally
-Rose. &#8220;Oh&mdash;oh&mdash;Kitty&mdash;&#8221; She clapped her hand over her
-mouth.</p>
-
-<p>For a moment Kitty did not see anything to exclaim about.
-The cart full of prisoners trundled slowly by. Close beside it
-walked a young man in a rough woolen shirt and homespun
-breeches. He carried a knapsack, and a large wooden bottle
-was slung from his shoulder by a leather strap. Just then the
-procession halted a moment. Up ahead, the drummer turned<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[93]</span>
-down Ferry Street on his way to the docks to meet the boats
-from the <i>Lively</i>. The phaeton bent its wheels sharply to
-round the corner. In the pause the young man unstoppered
-the wooden bottle and held it over the side of the cart so one
-of the prisoners could drink. The rear guard, another group
-of blue-coated Connecticut men, halted too. They were apparently
-the last of the procession.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty glanced again at her cousin. Sally Rose stood up
-proud and smiling. The long lashes about her hazel eyes
-flickered provocatively. Sally Rose was watching the young
-man with the bottle. For that reason, and that reason alone,
-Kitty looked closer at him herself.</p>
-
-<p>He turned just then and smiled at them. He had dark hair,
-she saw, and deep-set blue eyes. My, he was certainly handsome!
-Living all her life in Newburyport, she hadn&#8217;t realized
-how many handsome men there were in the world&mdash;drifting
-down the Merrimack on a log raft, walking the road
-that ran past Bunker Hill. They were everywhere, now that
-she had suddenly grown up enough to look at them. Sally
-Rose had always known. Sally Rose was born grown up.</p>
-
-<p>She cast a sudden look at Dick, and knew instinctively that
-she would never kiss him good night again, or if she did, it
-would be with a difference. Their kissing days were over.
-Dick was an old friend now, and only that. Never again
-would he stir in her that strange tremulous feeling that went
-with a new moon and apple blossoms and the first warm
-nights of spring. She knew, but she did not know how it was
-that she knew.</p>
-
-<p>The young man in the leather breeches was still smiling.
-He lifted his hand, oh so slightly, and motioned toward the
-docks. Then the cart wheels began to turn again, and the
-procession plodded on. The little group around the door of
-the Bay and Beagle watched until the last straggler was out
-of sight.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[94]</span>&#8220;Well, that&#8217;s over,&#8221; said Gran briskly, &#8220;It&#8217;s well past
-noon, and I expect we&#8217;ll have custom. If you&#8217;re leaving us,
-Master Dick, you might as well be off, and good luck to you&mdash;the
-same as I&#8217;d wish to the son of any neighbor. Timothy,
-you better bring up another keg of brandy from the cellar.
-You can tend the taps for awhile, Kitty, and Sally Rose&mdash;why,
-where is Sally Rose?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They called and called and searched the bedrooms and the
-attic and the back garden, but the girl was nowhere to be
-found. Dick left, after a bit, taking his spare shirt with him, a
-small ham, and a hunting knife proffered by Timothy. The
-old man went on his errand to the cellar, and Kitty returned
-to polishing glasses. A few men drifted in to drink beer and
-cider and talk about the exchange of prisoners. Gran muttered
-a few dark words about the flightiness of the younger generation
-and went into the kitchen to put the bread to rise and
-make pease porridge for supper. Bread and beer and pease
-porridge folk had to have, thought Kitty, no matter if wars
-came about, and handsome young men went out to be killed
-in them, and girls grew up all too late.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Trade got brisker during the long hot afternoon, and Kitty
-was kept busy filling mugs and glasses. She learned from the
-talk of the men who happened in that the British prisoners
-had been sent out by boat to the great, threatening man-o&#8217;-war
-that swung at anchor in the channel, halfway to Boston.
-The officers in charge of the business had all come into town
-to take some refreshment and expected shortly to return to
-the dock to receive the American lads whose delivery would
-complete the exchange. Everything had been conducted in
-an orderly and courteous fashion.</p>
-
-<p>Gradually the excitement died down. Gran put on her
-second best straw bonnet and went out to look for Sally Rose.
-Timothy had trouble getting the brandy keg up the cellar<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[95]</span>
-stairs. Bees droned loudly in the hollyhocks, and gulls cried
-from the harbor. Slowly the sun moved over to the westward
-side of the roofs and gables. It was a summer afternoon like
-any other summer afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>And then, all of a sudden, Sally Rose was back. She slipped
-in quietly, like a shadow. On her face was that cat-stealing-cream
-look that fitted her so well. She went straight to the
-kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty hastily served a waiting customer, that same Mr.
-Bassett who had come back to Charlestown to cut his hay, and
-then she followed her cousin. Sally Rose stood by the water
-bucket, the dipper lifted to her mouth. She drank thirstily.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My, that tastes good,&#8221; she said, licking her wet red lips.
-&#8220;It was hot down by the dockside. Not a sea breeze anywhere.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;ve been to the docks?&#8221; asked Kitty curiously.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course. Didn&#8217;t you see Gerry wave to me to follow
-him?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gerry?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, of course, Kit!&#8221; Sally Rose&#8217;s voice had a ring of impatience
-in it. &#8220;I tried to make signs to you. I thought by the
-look of your face you understood me. You were surely
-staring at him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Staring at whom?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh Kitty! You saw him! Gerry was the lad in the homespun
-breeches who marched beside the prisoners&#8217; cart. He was
-the only one able to walk, and so he had to wait on them.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But&mdash;but that lad&mdash;he looked like an American. His
-clothes&mdash;I thought&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Of course! Gerry was pretending to be an American when
-we captured him. That&#8217;s why he was looking so shabby. You
-should see him in his captain&#8217;s uniform! He&#8217;s been kept in a
-tent in Cambridge&mdash;a tent made of old sailcloth that the rain
-came through, and guards all around him. But he was exchanged<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[96]</span>
-this afternoon. I went down to the dock and talked
-to him while the boats were putting off. He&#8217;s gone safe to
-his own regiment in Boston now. But he says he&#8217;ll come back
-to see me&mdash;another day.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;That&#8217;s nice,&#8221; said Kitty. &#8220;That&#8217;s very nice indeed.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She felt cross suddenly. It must be the heat, or because
-she had been working so hard, or because she had forgotten
-to eat any dinner. It might be the outrageous behavior of
-Sally Rose. There are many ways to explain such a thing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And you know he said ...&#8221; Sally Rose rattled on.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly there was a hoarse cry from the cellar stairs&mdash;a
-burst of strong language, then a deep groan of pain. The
-girls looked at each other.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, it&#8217;s Timothy!&#8221; gasped Kit. &#8220;He was trying to bring
-up a brandy keg. He must have fallen.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The groans continued. She ran to the head of the cellar
-stairs and looked down. Sure enough, the old man lay on the
-dank earth that served for a flooring, the heavy keg on top
-of his right foot, his left leg bent beneath him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;re coming, Timothy,&#8221; she called. &#8220;We&#8217;ll help you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She gazed desperately around the taproom, but it was
-empty. The last customer had gone. Again she and Sally
-Rose stood looking at each other.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;ll need a doctor,&#8221; murmured Kitty. &#8220;He&#8217;s sure to
-need a doctor. Whether there&#8217;s one left in town or not, I
-don&#8217;t know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly her cousin&#8217;s face lighted. &#8220;Of course there&#8217;s one
-in town,&#8221; she cried. &#8220;Timothy himself pointed one out. That
-kind-looking man who rode in the phaeton with Old Put.
-Dr. Warren of Boston.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh&mdash;of course I remember. But he&#8217;ll be dining with the
-British officers. He&#8217;s an important official, I think, like a
-minister or a judge. He was wearing a fine coat, Sally Rose.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[97]</span>
-He won&#8217;t want to leave his wine and go down in a dirty cellar
-to tend a poor old man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You can&#8217;t tell,&#8221; said Sally Rose. &#8220;You can&#8217;t tell at all. He
-looked kind. I&#8217;m going to try to find him.&#8221; She ran through
-the doorway.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty stepped gingerly down the cellar stairs to see if she
-could help the old man. He could only moan and grunt and
-utter inarticulate sounds when she tried to talk to him, but
-she managed to roll the heavy cask off his foot and drag him
-into a sitting position against the roots of the massive chimney.
-It seemed hours before she heard footsteps on the floor
-overhead, but later she realized it could not have been very
-long.</p>
-
-<p>A moment later the fair-haired doctor in his neat coat and
-breeches stepped nimbly down the stairway. Four of the
-blue-coated Connecticut lads swarmed after.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Warren looked around him in the dim light, at the
-cobwebbed depths of the cellar: at the empty vegetable bins
-waiting for this year&#8217;s harvest, the shelves of preserves and
-jellies in stone crocks, the casks that held the stock in trade
-of the tavern above. He smiled briefly at Kitty, then he went
-down on his knees on the earth floor.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A bad mishap, Timothy,&#8221; he said, bending over the old
-man. There was a note of cheery courage in his voice. Kitty
-felt it, and she knew that Timothy felt it too. The old man
-spoke weakly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, sir. All the brandy in the house be not in that blasted
-keg there. Have the lass to fetch me a swig, if you will, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty did not need to be told again. She ran upstairs to
-fetch a glass of brandy. When she came back, the doctor had
-cut Timothy&#8217;s boot away and bared the flesh beneath it. He
-shook his head, and there was a sober look on his face.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;&#8217;Tis somewhat crushed I fear. Drink up your brandy,
-sir, and I will patch it as best I can. Then the lads will carry<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[98]</span>
-you upstairs&mdash;where there should be a bed waiting.&#8221; He
-looked questioningly at Kitty.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;There will be,&#8221; she assured him tremulously. &#8220;I spoke to
-my cousin, Sally Rose. She&#8217;s getting it ready.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She held the brandy glass to Timothy&#8217;s mouth, and the
-old man sipped feebly. Sometimes he flinched, as the doctor
-worked at the broken foot, reshaping it, applying splints and
-bandages. He did not utter a word, but his breath came in
-painful gasps, and he was shivering. The young soldiers
-stood looking on.</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Warren talked as he worked, hoping, perhaps, to distract
-the old man&#8217;s attention.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, sir,&#8221; he said, &#8220;to tell you the truth, sir, I was glad
-enough when the young lady came to fetch me here. I was in
-the act of quarreling with Old Put as we partook of a roast
-goose and glasses of claret. Somehow, in spite of the present
-triumph of more cautious gentlemen, I fear the General may
-yet have his way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Timothy grinned faintly. &#8220;I be sorry for ye,&#8221; he whispered,
-&#8220;if ye quarreled with Old Put.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, and I felt I was getting the worst of it, though it
-seems that at the moment all the greatest powers in our
-Great American Army be on my side. Steady, Timothy! This
-will take but a minute. There! As I was saying, the whole
-camp has been in an uproar the past month, as to whether or
-not we should fortify Bunker Hill and make a stand against
-the British there. Some say we must fight them, and it better
-be soon rather than late. Old Put and Prescott go with that
-way of thinking.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Fortify Bunker Hill?&#8221; whispered Timothy manfully
-through his pain. &#8220;Why, that be close by!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Very close,&#8221; said the doctor. &#8220;General Ward and I have
-talked much about it. I have been housed at his Cambridge
-headquarters of late, where I can easily visit the Provincial<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[99]</span>
-Congress in Watertown. He and I think our men are not
-yet ready to make a stand. We are against such an incautious
-display of valor. Later, perhaps, but not until we have a
-better equipped and conditioned army.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I wisht,&#8221; muttered Timothy, &#8220;I had displayed less incautious
-valor with that brandy keg. In God&#8217;s mercy, I do,
-sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Dr. Warren tightened the last bandage and got to his feet.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Take him up carefully, lads,&#8221; he said, &#8220;and carry him
-above stairs. The little golden-head will show you where.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty thought fleetingly that even the great doctor had
-been enough like common men so that he had an eye for the
-beauty of Sally Rose. She had hardly noticed what he said
-about a battle on Bunker Hill.</p>
-
-<p>But she thought about it later when she was standing at
-the tavern door in the hot dusk, looking past the roofs of
-Charlestown at the green countryside rising behind it. Gran
-was at home now, alternately tending Timothy and scolding
-Sally Rose. The doctor and the soldiers had long since gone,
-and the exchange of prisoners was probably complete.</p>
-
-<p>Bunker Hill rose smooth and round and green. Breed&#8217;s
-Hill, not so tall, was nearer the point, and the third hill,
-away to the southeast, she could not see. The hills were criss-crossed
-with rail fences and stone walls, divided into orchards,
-gardens, and pasture land. Daisies and buttercups
-bloomed all white and gold in the hayfields. The locust trees
-rose tall, and the elm trees taller. Hard green fruit clung to
-the apple boughs, and tassels were coming on the stalks of
-Indian corn. Gulls cried from the harbor, and a bat swooped
-down from the eaves above her head, and darted off, winging
-its way from side to side of the crooked street.</p>
-
-<p>Away to the eastward a low-lying cloud bank merged with
-the dim sea. There were clouds in the west, too, and thickening
-round the hills and steeples of Boston. But over Bunker<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[100]</span>
-Hill the sky was clear, lighted with one pale star. She took it
-to be a good omen&mdash;that there would be no battle there.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to Kitty the most peaceful landscape she had
-ever seen in her life. And yet, the talk was, &#8220;Fortify Bunker
-Hill! Make a stand against the British there!&#8221; She was glad
-Dr. Warren did not favor it, and she hoped he would have
-his way. She thought maybe she would have liked the young
-man by the prisoners&#8217; cart, if she had ever come to know him.
-But then, she had never dreamed that he was not an American.
-And he had turned out to be her cousin&#8217;s British Gerry.
-He probably wouldn&#8217;t have looked so handsome to her if he
-had been wearing his red coat.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[101]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Ten</i><br />
-
-
-<small>A TRYST WITH THE ENEMY</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;But</span> what makes you so sure he will be there, Sally
-Rose,&#8221; asked Kitty, &#8220;if you haven&#8217;t had any word?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She was curled up in the middle of the four-poster bed
-which she shared with her cousin. Sally Rose sat at the dressing
-table. A candle burned at each side of the mirror, and she
-was studying her reflection in its glass. She wore nothing but
-a thin cambric shift, and her feet were bare.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He told me he would come in a week&#8217;s time, if not before.
-He promised it wouldn&#8217;t be more than that. When he got
-aboard the boat to go to the <i>Lively</i>, he promised me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty stared past Sally Rose&#8217;s golden head into the dark
-street. Their bedroom was over the kitchen, and she could
-hear Gran&#8217;s brisk footsteps trotting about below. Gran was
-roasting mutton to feed tomorrow&#8217;s customers, but she had
-sent the girls upstairs to get their beauty sleep.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ve slipped out to our old meeting place in the graveyard
-every night, but he was never there,&#8221; she went on. &#8220;But tonight
-it&#8217;s Tuesday again, so he has to be. He just has to be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[102]</span>
-there tonight.&#8221; She pulled on a pair of delicate thread stockings,
-and thrust her feet into high-heeled slippers with roses
-on the toes.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty eyed them disapprovingly. &#8220;As I remember the old
-graveyard, it&#8217;s full of holes and hummocks,&#8221; she said.
-&#8220;You&#8217;ll trip and fall in those shoes, if you go walking there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t expect to do much walking,&#8221; said Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Then a mischievous light shone out of her hazel eyes.
-&#8220;Kitty! Wait till you see what I bought today. The shops are
-full of bargains, with all the Tories gone out of town. You&#8217;ll
-have to help me, I think.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She scurried to the clothespress, reached inside it, and
-brought out the most hideous contraption Kitty had ever
-seen. It was a pair of stays, she supposed, but what a pair! A
-long cruel case of whalebone and stiff buckram, high in the
-back, very low in the front, pinched and pointed like the body
-of some vicious insect. That it was covered with white velvet
-and sewn with brilliants did not make it any the less frightening.
-Kitty got a cramp in her stomach as she looked at it. Her
-chest tightened, and for a moment she had trouble in breathing.
-But Sally Rose had a gleam in her eye.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I got this at the staymaker&#8217;s this morning,&#8221; she said. &#8220;He
-ordered it for a rich Tory lady, but she fled away to join the
-British in Boston, so he let me have it cheap.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I should think he might,&#8221; said Kitty. &#8220;Why it&#8217;s hardly a
-foot around the middle. You&#8217;re slender, but not that slender,
-Sally Rose. How do you think to lace it up?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose smiled engagingly and stepped into the dreadful
-garment, dragging it over her hips and around her slight
-form. &#8220;Oh, you&#8217;ll have to lace it for me, Kit,&#8221; she announced.
-&#8220;I&#8217;ll have a truly fashionable figure now. I always wanted
-one. Remember, Gerry&#8217;s been looking at those rich Boston
-ladies all the week long. I don&#8217;t want him to feel disappointed
-when he sees me.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[103]</span>Kitty climbed down from the bed and went to her cousin.
-She picked up the ends of the lacings and began to weave
-them into the metal hooks. Sally Rose stood there beaming,
-holding the stays in place.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hurry and lace them up, Kit,&#8221; she urged. &#8220;It will be
-easier if I can slip out while Gran is still at her work. Before
-she comes upstairs, I mean to be gone.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>With a great effort Kitty drew the stays together at the
-bottom, clamping her cousin&#8217;s slim hips and belly into a
-frighteningly narrow space. The garment had been designed
-for a much taller girl, and came well down over the thigh,
-almost to the knee. It fastened at the bottom with a tiny
-jeweled padlock, and Kitty noted a similar one at the top.
-She hesitated.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Does this unlock with a key?&#8221; she asked.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose held up a tiny bit of gold on a satin ribbon.
-&#8220;Oh, it does, Kitty, and I have the key here. Isn&#8217;t it all deliciously
-clever?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t know,&#8221; muttered Kitty. &#8220;Hold your stomach in.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose compressed herself to the utmost and closed
-her eyes. Kitty fastened the padlock and struggled with the
-lacings.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tighter! Tighter!&#8221; gasped Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty pulled at the strong cord until it almost cut her
-fingers. It was waxed, and it had a toughness about it that
-made her think of wire.</p>
-
-<p>After a moment she shoved Sally Rose up against the wall,
-sat down in a chair in front of her, braced her knees, and
-laboriously threaded and pulled till the task was over and
-she could snap the jeweled padlock at the top. Then she
-stood off to view her work.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose looked like a long white worm standing up on
-its tail&mdash;or like a white candle, if you wanted to be poetic&mdash;but
-more like a worm. Her face was flushed, and she could<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[104]</span>
-take only the shortest, shallowest breaths, but there was
-triumph in her eye.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now my dress and petticoat, Kitty, if you&#8217;ll be so good.
-Oh wait till Gerry sees me! He&#8217;ll be so o&#8217;ercome with admiration
-he&#8217;ll scarce know what to say!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;He&#8217;ll be o&#8217;ercome, I don&#8217;t doubt,&#8221; said Kitty. &#8220;Especially
-if he tries to put his arm around you. You feel like a stick of
-cord wood.&#8221; She fastened the gauze petticoat over the stays
-and then brought the sky-blue muslin gown Sally Rose had
-laid out on a chair.</p>
-
-<p>Was life going to be like this always, she wondered somewhat
-wistfully; helping Sally Rose to dress, letting Sally
-Rose in when the evening was over; herself never dressing
-up, never meeting anyone, never going anywhere? She
-wished that Tom Trask the logger had the daring British
-Gerry had. Gossip said that the New Hampshire men were
-in camp in Medford, and Medford wasn&#8217;t much farther than
-Boston. But he had no way of knowing she was so near him,
-of course. Perhaps when things got quieter after Concord
-Fight, he&#8217;d gone back to Newburyport to return her father&#8217;s
-gun. But now it seemed that battles were threatening again.
-Perhaps&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Now my gold gauze kerchief and my scent bottle,&#8221;
-panted Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty brought them. &#8220;Are you ready now?&#8221; she asked, trying
-to keep the envy from her tone. It wasn&#8217;t Sally Rose&#8217;s
-fault that she felt lonely and neglected, not Sally Rose&#8217;s
-fault at all.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, I&#8217;m ready,&#8221; sighed Sally Rose. &#8220;I&#8217;ll go down the
-back stairs, I think, and through the garden. Good-by,
-dear.&#8221; She held up her soft cheek.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty brushed her lips against it. &#8220;Good-by, Sally Rose,&#8221;
-she said. &#8220;Don&#8217;t get into any trouble, and come home soon.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose laughed a little uneasily and made an awkward<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[105]</span>
-motion to step forward. But she did not step forward. She
-stopped suddenly, twisted her body, or tried to, and put her
-hand to her side.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My, a bone jabbed me,&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>After a moment she tried again to move forward. This
-time she succeeded in taking three little hobbled steps. Then
-she swayed clumsily, tripped, and fell on the rag rug. There
-she lay like an overset turtle, unable to rise.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty stuffed her handkerchief into her mouth to choke
-back her laughter. Then she ran forward and struggled to
-hoist Sally Rose to her feet.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;I don&#8217;t think I can walk in this thing,&#8221; gasped Sally
-Rose. &#8220;It&#8217;s like having two feet in one breeches leg. And the
-bones hurt me. And it&#8217;s getting late. Take it off, Kit. Take it
-off at once. Here&#8217;s the key.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Still trying to keep back her laughter at the other girl&#8217;s
-ridiculous plight, Kitty pulled off the blue dress and the
-petticoat and fitted the tiny key into the jeweled lock. It refused
-to turn, and she twisted it gently.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;ll be in a pickle,&#8221; she muttered, &#8220;if it should break.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you dare break it!&#8221; squealed Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty worked the key this way and that. Below in the
-tavern kitchen Gran&#8217;s voice lifted up the words of an old
-hymn. Through the open window drifted the scent of garden
-flowers in the warm dark. Her hands got sticky with sweat.
-She kept dropping the wretched little key.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hurry!&#8221; pleaded Sally Rose. &#8220;I&#8217;m afraid he&#8217;ll come and
-not find me. I&#8217;m afraid he&#8217;ll go away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Desperately Kitty twisted the bit of metal.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s no use, Sally Rose,&#8221; she said at last. &#8220;I can&#8217;t make
-it work. What will we do?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Cut the lacings, I suppose,&#8221; sighed Sally Rose, &#8220;and I&#8217;ll
-try to wiggle out through the gap in the middle. I don&#8217;t care
-much. I never should have bought it. Maybe the staymaker<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[106]</span>
-will take it back. Get my shears. They&#8217;re in the workbox in
-the top drawer.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But you left your workbox in the kitchen,&#8221; said Kit. &#8220;I
-saw it there when we were scouring the pots after supper. All
-the other shears and knives are there too, and if I went down,
-I&#8217;d have to explain to Gran.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The two girls looked at each other in dismay. Sally Rose
-bit her lip. &#8220;Yes, you would,&#8221; she said. &#8220;And whatever excuse
-you made, she might come back upstairs with you, and then
-I&#8217;d never get away. Can&#8217;t you break the lacings?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I doubt it,&#8221; said Kitty. &#8220;It&#8217;s the toughest cord I ever
-saw.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Try.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>So Kitty yanked and tugged and twisted, but the cord refused
-to break. Sally Rose was hopelessly trapped.</p>
-
-<p>They were silent for a moment. Then she clenched her
-soft hands and stiffened her mouth. &#8220;I&#8217;ll have to go just as I
-am,&#8221; she said, and tried to walk again. Again she fell.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty helped her up and led her to a chair. &#8220;Sit down, Sally
-Rose,&#8221; she said gently. But Sally Rose could not sit down.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I guess it&#8217;s no use,&#8221; she murmured, reluctant, almost
-tearful. &#8220;You&#8217;ll just have to go and tell Gerry I&#8217;m sick, or
-something. Tell him to come back tomorrow night. I&#8217;ll surely
-be there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty hesitated. She didn&#8217;t know quite why. Was it because
-Gerry was British and she disapproved of the British? Or was
-it a deeper, stranger thing&mdash;a sort of foreboding? A fear, and
-yet an eagerness, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Are you sure you want me to, Sally Rose?&#8221; she asked.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose stamped her foot, or tried to, then writhed as
-a whalebone jabbed her. &#8220;Of course I do,&#8221; she cried. &#8220;Go
-quickly, do, and come back and tell me what he has to say.
-Then we&#8217;ll have to get the shears and cut me out of this thing.
-Oh Kitty, go now!&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[107]</span>And so it was that Kitty Greenleaf slipped away to
-Charlestown&#8217;s old graveyard that night to meet her country&#8217;s
-enemy, her cousin&#8217;s exciting young man.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>An eerie little wind was blowing through the town that
-night, a warm wind, and it had the tang of sea salt in it, and
-the heavy sweetness of the new mown hay on Bunker Hill.
-It ruffled Kitty&#8217;s hair and cooled her hot face as she walked
-through the empty streets, past the Two Cranes, the courthouse,
-and the meeting house with its tall white spire rising
-against the dark. Few of the windows were lighted, but down
-by the docks she could hear the familiar cry of the watch, and
-over the bay the lights of Boston shone out bright and clear.
-It was hard for her to remember that Boston was no longer a
-friendly town.</p>
-
-<p>When she reached the graveyard she felt her way along
-the low wall that protected it from the street. Shadow lay
-thick about the grassy mounds inside, and crooked elm
-boughs meeting overhead shut out the thin glow of the starlight.
-There was no moon.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving the wall she blundered forward, now and then
-brushing against one of the old headstones. She knew what
-they looked like well enough: short thick slabs of greenish
-slate with a death&#8217;s head at the top; some of reddish sandstone;
-beyond them the granite tombs where the great families
-lay. But she could not seem to find the path that would
-lead her through. And then, somehow she did find it, and
-groped her way to the wall on the far side with the open
-fields beyond. He was standing there, just as she knew he
-would be.</p>
-
-<p>He carried a dark lantern, half open now to let a little
-light shine through, and he wore the rough shirt and breeches
-of an American farmer. Sally Rose would have been disappointed
-had she hoped to see the scarlet coat. As he heard<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[108]</span>
-her footstep on the worn grass he drew in his breath sharply.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah, Sally Rose!&#8221; he whispered, and turned the lantern
-full upon her.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;I&#8217;m sorry,&#8221; she stammered. &#8220;I&#8217;m her cousin Kitty.
-She sent me to tell you&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And then suddenly, to her own horror, in spite of the awe
-she felt for this handsome young stranger from the enemy
-camp, in spite of the need to keep this tryst in silence and
-secrecy, she began to giggle. She couldn&#8217;t help it when she
-thought of Sally Rose trapped in the stays; of her pretty,
-angry face on top of the body of a pinched white worm. She
-put both hands to her mouth and rocked and rocked with
-stifled mirth.</p>
-
-<p>Then she realized that he was shaking her. &#8220;Stop it, Kitty,
-if that&#8217;s your name,&#8221; he said. His voice was firm but not unkind.
-&#8220;Where&#8217;s Sally Rose? Tell me what you are laughing
-at? I want to laugh, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He had put the lantern down and was holding her by both
-shoulders. She could not see his face, and yet she knew what
-he looked like. She would always remember him, she
-thought, from that day when he marched past the Bay and
-Beagle and she was standing at the door. Suddenly she found
-herself telling him all about the stays and Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>He kept very quiet until she had finished, but then he did
-not laugh as she had expected him to do. When he spoke
-again, his voice had an impatient sound.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ve often heard the men in barracks say&mdash;the married
-men, that is&mdash;that women have no sense at all. And I guess
-they be right. I&#8217;m sorry Sally Rose did such a foolish thing.
-I&mdash;I wanted&mdash;tonight it really mattered that I should see
-her.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;But she will be here tomorrow night, sir,&#8221; answered
-Kitty, not quite sure how one addressed a British officer who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[109]</span>
-pretended not to be a British officer. &#8220;It will be such a little
-time till then.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A little time,&#8221; he muttered, &#8220;but much may happen in it.
-I may be here tomorrow night&mdash;but I trust she will not be.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you mean?&#8221; faltered Kitty.</p>
-
-<p>A bough rustled a few yards off, and he flashed his lantern
-that way and listened. After a moment he spoke again in a
-lower tone.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How does it happen you womenfolk are still in Charlestown?
-I understood that it had been evacuated.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, it has been&mdash;nearly. But Granny says she will not
-abandon my uncle&#8217;s property here until she must. She says
-she will stay and try to keep it intact for him, if she can.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s been known since April that we might burn the town
-any day.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know. But time goes on, and you do not do it, and we
-grow less afraid. And all the while our Army is growing
-larger and more strong.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So is ours,&#8221; he retorted. &#8220;Three new generals arrived
-from England; martial law proclaimed in Boston yesterday.
-General Gage denounced you for rebels and traitors. If you
-don&#8217;t disband and go your ways in peace soon, we&#8217;re coming
-out to make you go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then I suppose there will be a battle,&#8221; sighed Kitty. &#8220;I&#8217;ll
-never know why it is men can&#8217;t settle a squabble without trying
-to kill each other.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Again he flashed the lantern on her face and held it there
-a moment. Then he spoke to her from out of the dark, and
-his voice had a different sound.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You know&mdash;Kitty&mdash;I don&#8217;t think I understand it either.
-I never really wanted to be a soldier.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A captain,&#8221; she corrected him. &#8220;A captain in the Twenty-third.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah yes, a captain. I can hear the watch coming down the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[110]</span>
-street, and we cannot leave here until he is gone. Sit down
-on the grass.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Indeed it was the watch, and she could hear him shouting
-as he turned the corner by the brick well. &#8220;Ten o&#8217; the clock,
-this thirteenth night o&#8217; June, and the weather fair. Town&#8217;s
-empty, Sons o&#8217; Liberty gone to camp, Rogues and Tories to
-Boston!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The young Englishman drew her down in the shadow of a
-flowering quince tree. She sat there straight and proper and
-he sprawled with careless grace beside her, not alarmingly
-near.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, I never meant to bear arms, and how I came to do it
-is no matter, but I, too, wish England and America could
-settle their differences without spilling blood. Do you think
-I am a coward, Kitty?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; she said slowly. &#8220;I do not think that.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The voice of the watch grew louder. He must be passing
-very close by.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I have cursed the Americans, and yet I am not sure I was
-right when I did it. I have gone amongst them some, even
-been kept in gaol by them, and yet I can&#8217;t see that they&#8217;re
-any worse fellows than I. I cannot help thinking that I myself
-might have been an American. Except for a choice a man
-made some hundred and fifty years ago. The right choice, of
-course&mdash;and yet&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty felt her blood stir in a different way now. She had
-been thrilling to his strangeness and his handsomeness, and
-the excitement of this secret meeting. But now she had the
-uncanny feel that there were ghosts about. Mighty ghosts,
-ghosts of countries coming together, here in the dim starlight
-in the shadow of Bunker Hill.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You an American? How?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He settled comfortably in the grass. &#8220;Listen, Kitty, I&#8217;ll
-tell you more of myself than I ever told Sally Rose. I do not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[111]</span>
-know why, unless it is because you are less distractingly fair.
-Alas, I am afraid I like overwell to talk, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So does everyone, it seems,&#8221; murmured Kitty. &#8220;But what
-happened&mdash;a hundred and fifty years ago?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I like to talk, I suppose, because my mother was a strolling
-player, and famous for the way she spoke her lines as
-well as her good looks. She traveled the fairs and market
-towns, and everywhere she was made welcome and a stage
-set up for her. My father was a West Country farmer, and a
-dull husband I think he made her. I cannot recall her too
-well. But it was through his blood that I might have been
-born an American.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The voice of the watch was fading now, down by the tannery
-and the distilleries, but Gerry Malory kept on talking.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My father would shake his head, I remember, whenever
-anyone mentioned America. &#8217;Twas a legend in our family
-that once an old grandsire of ours, about the time I mention,
-had journeyed to Plymouth and watched a shipful of people
-leaving that country to settle in this one. That he thought for
-a time to go with them, but decided against it. Sometimes I
-wonder if he had gone&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The watch was coming back. They saw the light he carried.
-It wavered to and fro. Then it stopped just at the wall of the
-graveyard. Gerry Malory sprang hastily to his feet. &#8220;Kitty,&#8221;
-he whispered, &#8220;go back and tell Sally Rose&mdash;I don&#8217;t know
-when I&#8217;ll see her&mdash;but tell her to get out of Charlestown.
-We&#8217;re getting ready to move against the Americans. I don&#8217;t
-know when. At least by the end of the week. Some say we&#8217;re
-for Dorchester Heights, and some say Bunker Hill. Tell her
-to be gone. And you go with her&mdash;Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He vaulted over the low wall and disappeared in the darkness
-between the fields and the flats along the river. Kitty
-peered after him, but she saw only a scatter of fireflies and
-a light mist rising from the earth. She was not afraid of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[112]</span>
-watch, but he did not challenge her as she crept back to the
-Bay and Beagle. He did not know she had been keeping a
-tryst with the enemy. Well, she had been, and felt herself
-none the worse for it.</p>
-
-<p>She, too, was wondering what would have happened if old
-Grandsire Malory had taken that ship so many years ago.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[113]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Eleven</i><br />
-
-
-<small>A GREAT SECRET</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;We</span> been long enough getting here,&#8221; said Tom Trask, as
-he dragged the prow of a small rowboat up the shaly
-beach. &#8220;Are you sure this be Charlestown Neck, Johnny?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tugging away at the other side of the boat, Johnny Pettengall
-answered him. &#8220;Charlestown, sure enough. Hold on.
-Give me your hand. I got my foot caught in a patch of eel
-grass or summ&#8217;at like.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom did as he was bidden, and in a moment the two were
-climbing up a steep bank into the hayfield above. Just to their
-left loomed a low hill, sharp on its eastern side. A taller,
-more gently rounded hill stood up behind it, and through
-the thick, fragrant grass around them a rail fence wound
-away toward higher ground. Tom could see no lighted windows
-anywhere.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You ever been here before?&#8221; he asked doubtfully.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said Johnny, &#8220;but I come by here yesterday when I
-was aboard our sloop that went up to the Penny Ferry to
-meet the supply carts from the eastward. I had it pointed out
-to me. This is Breed&#8217;s Hill just ahead of us, and Bunker
-Hill&#8217;s behind.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[114]</span>&#8220;Charlestown&#8217;s said to be a village,&#8221; Tom continued to
-object. &#8220;I can see orchards, and what looks like a brick kiln
-over there, and by the smell there&#8217;s clay pits somewhere
-about. But I don&#8217;t see any houses at all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Town&#8217;s the other side of the hill,&#8221; Johnny reassured him.
-&#8220;Come on. We got to get to the Bay and Beagle before
-Ma&#8217;am Greenleaf locks up for the night.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Uncertain and on his guard, Tom followed his companion
-up the slope through the firefly-studded grass. More than a
-week now, he and the Newburyport lad had been sleeping at
-night with their feet toward the same campfire&mdash;when they
-did sleep&mdash;sharing the same ration of salt pork and corn
-meal. He had not gone back to Medford after they burned
-the <i>Diana</i>, for he and Johnny kept telling themselves that
-they would borrow a boat and row over to Charlestown to
-see the girls, but not until tonight had they been able to get
-away. They had not wasted their time, though. They had
-gone with the raiding parties that constantly scoured the
-islands all the way from Chelsea Neck to the deep sea. They
-had helped to burn Tory barns and steal Tory cattle. Tom
-felt he could give a good account of himself when he got back
-to his own company, but he was not so sure Captain Moore
-would consider it a good account. He was even more dubious
-about the attitude of the Colonel, his old friend, Johnny
-Stark. That they were old friends wouldn&#8217;t make any difference
-at all, when there was business in hand.</p>
-
-<p>Yes, tonight after he&#8217;d seen Miss Kitty again and stolen a
-kiss or two, he thought he&#8217;d better make for Medford, with
-or without young Pettengall. Maybe he&#8217;d better ask now
-just what his companion intended to do.</p>
-
-<p>At that moment they reached the crest of Breed&#8217;s Hill and
-paused to look down.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Them lights over there must be Boston,&#8221; Johnny told<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[115]</span>
-him. &#8220;You ever been there, Tom? I heard it&#8217;s the greatest
-city in North America. The best anyway.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Didn&#8217;t know we had any other cities,&#8221; said Tom, grinning
-in the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>Johnny took him seriously. &#8220;Course we have,&#8221; he hastened
-to protest. &#8220;There&#8217;s New York, and Philadelphia where the
-Great Congress meets. Some others further south, I guess,
-and all of &#8217;em sending help to Boston. There&#8217;s talk they&#8217;ll
-even send their soldiers here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Believe it when I see them,&#8221; said Tom skeptically. &#8220;But
-you ask me, and I say no, I never been to Boston. I live a
-sight of a ways off, you know, up the Merrimack.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They stood there together a moment in the starlight and
-cool sea wind, the sweetness of ripe hay.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know,&#8221; said Johnny. &#8220;You didn&#8217;t go back there, ever&mdash;after
-we got news of Concord Fight, did you? Ain&#8217;t you got
-some folks waiting for you to come home?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom shrugged. &#8220;Folks is all dead,&#8221; he told Johnny.
-&#8220;Won&#8217;t nobody miss me. Well&mdash;maybe a girl or two.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Then he spoke more quickly and in a lighter tone. &#8220;But I
-know where I will be missed, I bet, and that&#8217;s back in Medford.
-My company was less than half full strength when I
-left, and I better be getting myself over there. How about
-you?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I ought to be in Cambridge, I guess, with Captain Little&#8217;s
-company.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Moses Little? Heard he&#8217;d been made a colonel, just like
-Stark.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t know. I didn&#8217;t hear.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They were starting down the hill now, toward a cluster of
-roofs and gables with a tall spire in the midst of it, toward a
-shadowy line of wharves along the shore.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know sure enough about Johnny. I was there in the
-tavern when we chose him by a show of hands. They say some<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[116]</span>
-voted twice. I know I did. He was my neighbor up in Derryfield.
-I worked in his sawmill some and went hunting with
-his son Caleb. Caleb&#8217;s a right smart lad.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was harder going down Breed&#8217;s Hill than going up, for
-the western side was as steep as the eastern, and they had to
-hold back. There were stone walls to climb, and the dew-wet
-grass was hard to wade through, but Tom scarcely noticed
-that. Funny, he thought, as he heard his tongue run on, how
-he never had very much to say, unless it was about John
-Stark.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, Johnny&#8217;s the man for you,&#8221; he was saying. &#8220;Once
-when the Indians captured him and put him to hoeing their
-fields, he cut down the corn and left the weeds standing.
-When they made him run the gantlet, he whacked them as
-he went through, instead of t&#8217;other way. Kept singing while
-he ran that he&#8217;d kiss all their women. He never liked the
-British either, after he fought beside them at Quebec. &#8217;Fore
-I was high as a rail fence, I heard him say we&#8217;d have to fight
-against them sometime. There was folks who laughed at him,
-but I guess they ain&#8217;t laughing now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here we be,&#8221; said Johnny as they came to the beginning
-of a street that led past the darkened windows of Charlestown.
-&#8220;I got no idea where the place is. Likely there&#8217;ll be a
-horse and a dog on its sign.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>But Charlestown was no very extensive metropolis, and
-after a little wandering through its dim lanes and uncobbled
-streets, they found the tavern they were seeking. The door
-stood open to let in the night breeze, and the two boys
-stepped uncertainly through.</p>
-
-<p>A few candles burning in iron holders lit the dim taproom.
-Clean mugs and glasses stood neatly on shelves behind the
-bar, and the long brown braid of tobacco leaves hanging near
-it swayed gently in the draft from the open door. Tom
-thought that the braid looked like a cow&#8217;s tail. He made up a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[117]</span>
-face when he remembered the pipeful of tobacco he&#8217;d had to
-smoke the night they burned the <i>Diana</i>. Here was one customer
-of Ma&#8217;am Greenleaf&#8217;s who wouldn&#8217;t ask her to cut off
-a few inches for him, that was sure. But where was Ma&#8217;am
-Greenleaf? Or Kitty? Or the other girl? The room was
-empty, so far as he could see.</p>
-
-<p>Johnny, too, was looking around him. &#8220;Don&#8217;t see where
-they could have gone to,&#8221; he muttered, &#8220;and left the door
-open and the lights burning.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Just at that moment there came an anguished wail from
-somewhere overhead.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Stop it! Oh stop! You&#8217;re killing me!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Robbers!&#8221; gasped Johnny.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Or them British devils!&#8221; cried Tom, looking desperately
-for the staircase. He finally saw it, winding up from a little
-alcove that led to the kitchen, and in a flash he and Johnny
-pounded up the narrow treads, bursting breathlessly into a
-long hall at the top. From a room on the side toward the
-river emerged another half-stifled cry.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;In here!&#8221; shouted Tom, flinging the door open.</p>
-
-<p>Then he stood quite still. The sight before him was such
-a one as he had never seen by the falls of Derryfield.
-Johnny&#8217;s astonished gasp told him that his friend was as taken
-aback as he.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose Townsend sat precariously on the edge of a
-four-poster bed, her face flushed and distorted. Granny
-Greenleaf stood in front of her, her hands busy about the
-girl&#8217;s dress&mdash;except that Sally Rose wore no dress. Her
-shoulders were bare and gleamed whitely in the candlelight,
-but her entire body below her shoulders seemed to be shut up
-in some sort of cage. The cage gapped apart in the middle to
-show an expanse of some white fabric underneath. It was
-gripped firmly together at a point just above the girl&#8217;s waist,
-and again below.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[118]</span>&#8220;It&#8217;s no use, Sally Rose,&#8221; Gran was muttering. &#8220;I can&#8217;t
-get this foolish contrivance apart, and there isn&#8217;t a locksmith
-left in town. I believe there&#8217;s a blacksmith, though. We&#8217;ll
-send Kitty to fetch the blacksmith. Mercy, where is Kitty? I
-never thought of her before. Where has Kitty gone?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Quick! Cover me up, Gran!&#8221; gasped Sally Rose frantically,
-her breath short, her words not quite clear.</p>
-
-<p>Gran glanced backward over her shoulder. Then she
-turned completely round and faced the intruders.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Johnny Pettengall! And you&mdash;&#8221; she peered closer, &#8220;the
-thief who made off with my son&#8217;s musket! What are you
-doing in the bedchamber of a decent lass?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We didn&#8217;t mean no harm, Ma&#8217;am Greenleaf,&#8221; explained
-Johnny. &#8220;We just came from camp to see the girls, and
-walked into the taproom like&mdash;like anybody would. Then we
-heard Sally Rose scream she was being killed&mdash;&#8221; He broke
-off and stared again at the bent golden head of his adored
-one. Sally Rose was beginning to weep tears of embarrassment.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I see,&#8221; replied the old lady grimly. She stood protectingly
-in front of her granddaughter. After a moment she
-seemed to come to a decision. &#8220;Well, since you&#8217;re here, you&#8217;re
-here. And it&#8217;s plain some male critter will have to help us.
-&#8217;Tisn&#8217;t as if the girl weren&#8217;t decently covered underneath.
-Can you boys get her out of that contraption?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Johnny swallowed and made inarticulate sounds.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We can try,&#8221; said Tom. &#8220;What is it? What&#8217;s it made of?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s a pair of stays. An outlandish pair brought from New
-York for some Tory hussy.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My mother&#8217;s stays are laced together,&#8221; said Johnny, his
-embarrassment lessening a little. &#8220;Won&#8217;t they come off if
-you unlace them?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I cut the laces&mdash;first thing I did when I came upstairs and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[119]</span>
-heard her moaning,&#8221; snapped Gran. &#8220;But these are fastened
-with locks at top and bottom. Come and look at them.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gran motioned the boys forward and they gingerly approached
-Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>Tom reached out coolly and fingered the jeweled padlock.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose sucked in her breath and closed her eyes.
-Johnny looked the other way.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I could force it apart,&#8221; said Tom thoughtfully, &#8220;but it&#8217;s
-too small for me to get a grip on. What we need is a file. You
-got one about the place somewhere?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Does your father keep a tool chest handy?&#8221; demanded
-Gran of Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I think&mdash;in the barn&mdash;out the back way through the garden,&#8221;
-Sally Rose whispered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Go find it, Johnny,&#8221; ordered Tom.</p>
-
-<p>Johnny dashed for the stairway, and the Derryfield lad
-walked to the window and stood there with his hands behind
-him, gazing into the summer night. Nothing could be done
-until Johnny came back, and he had no wish to embarrass the
-poor girl further by staring at her.</p>
-
-<p>He looked at the gable windows of the house across the
-street, and then down the narrow way that led to the market
-place. Then he craned his neck at what he saw, and felt a
-little smile crooking the corners of his mouth. Miss Catherine
-Greenleaf was coming hot-foot home from somewhere, and
-he guessed he&#8217;d see she got a proper welcome. He turned
-back to Gran who still stood in front of Sally Rose, tapping
-her slippered foot on the pine floor.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Think I&#8217;ll go help Johnny hunt for the file,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>He stepped into the taproom of the Bay and Beagle just as
-Kitty entered from the street. He had the advantage, for he
-had expected the meeting. She stopped still and gave a little
-gasp, but he spoke calmly enough.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[120]</span>&#8220;You ought to stay to home when you have company, Miss
-Kitty,&#8221; he rebuked her mildly.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty recovered herself quickly, lifted her head, and smiled.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Perhaps I would have,&#8221; she said, &#8220;if I had known.
-Wherever did you come from?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sit here,&#8221; he said, and drew her down beside him on the
-wide ledge that ran under the window. &#8220;I come from Chelsea
-Neck on my way back to the camp in Medford&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&mdash;you&#8217;re going back to camp?&#8221; she interrupted him.</p>
-
-<p>He looked at her keenly. Something was the matter with
-her. She was all upset like, but trying not to let him see. He&#8217;d
-thought to steal a few kisses, but he felt pretty sure she wasn&#8217;t
-in the mood for kissing. Too bad. Well, another night,
-maybe. He shrugged his shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, I think likely they can use me there. I been away
-driving cattle off the islands the last week or two. Met up
-with Johnny Pettengall and he told me you was here. Tonight
-we borrowed a boat and rowed over the Mystic. But I
-didn&#8217;t see you anywheres as I come across Breed&#8217;s Hill and
-through the town. Where you been tonight, Kitty?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She looked at him thoughtfully. &#8220;I don&#8217;t know that&mdash;but
-maybe I ought&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here &#8217;tis!&#8221; cried Johnny triumphantly, rushing into the
-room with a small iron file in his hand. He paid no attention
-to Kitty. &#8220;Come on, Tom! Let&#8217;s go file Sally Rose!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom waved him away with a flippant gesture. &#8220;You go file
-Sally Rose,&#8221; he said. &#8220;She&#8217;s your girl. I got business with
-Kitty.&#8221; He turned his back on the other lad.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty put her hand to her mouth. &#8220;Oh, I forgot!&#8221; she
-gasped. &#8220;Sally Rose is still in the stays!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sure enough she is,&#8221; agreed Tom. &#8220;Johnny&#8217;s got a file,
-and he can shave the lock away. I asked you where you&#8217;d
-been tonight, Kit. Walking out with some other lad, maybe.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[121]</span>
-No moon, but it&#8217;s sweet-aired and warm. A good courting
-night.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty sat twisting her hands in her lap and did not answer.
-Johnny made a pitiful noise of dismay and turned reluctantly
-toward the staircase.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where&#8217;s Gran?&#8221; asked Kitty.</p>
-
-<p>Tom smiled widely. &#8220;With Sally Rose,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Likely
-to stay there awhile, wouldn&#8217;t you think so?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, of course. She wouldn&#8217;t leave Sally Rose like that&mdash;and
-with Johnny. I&mdash;I&mdash;&#8221; she stopped again.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s on your mind, Kitty? Something, I can tell.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes. Yes, there is. I don&#8217;t know&mdash;maybe I should&mdash;or
-maybe I should wait and tell Sally Rose first. But maybe
-you&#8217;re the one.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You better tell me,&#8221; he said, trying to put strength into
-his voice, and a little tenderness, but not too much. He
-didn&#8217;t want her breaking down.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; she said after a moment, lifting her head and looking
-straight into his eyes. &#8220;Yes, I think I should probably tell
-you, for you&#8217;ll know what to do about it. If you&#8217;re going
-back to camp&mdash;it ought to be made known to the officers
-there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I aim to go tonight, not tomorrow morning,&#8221; he said.
-&#8220;Say what&#8217;s got to be said, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well then, I will.&#8221; She was not looking at him now. She
-fixed her eyes on a candle burning in a sconce across the room.
-&#8220;Tonight I went out to meet&mdash;a man&mdash;who was expecting
-Sally Rose. You can see why she couldn&#8217;t go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He grinned. &#8220;Yes,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Sally Rose ain&#8217;t geared right
-now to travel far. Who was the man? Oh&mdash;I bet I know&mdash;that
-redcoat she took such a notion to.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, it was Gerry. Captain Gerald Malory of the Twenty-third.
-I did see him, and he warned me. He told us to get out
-of Charlestown, for the British are about to strike.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[122]</span>Tom leaned forward. &#8220;When?&#8221; he demanded. &#8220;Where?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Any night now. By the end of the week, surely. Here, or
-in Dorchester. Gerry wasn&#8217;t sure. But if it should be Bunker
-Hill&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Bunker Hill would be a right handy site for them to
-hold,&#8221; muttered Tom. &#8220;We thought they was about ready to
-go. But before this we had no real word.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He was silent for a moment. Then he laid his hand over
-hers. Then he stood up.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Guess I better make for camp,&#8221; he said. &#8220;This is important
-information you got here. I&#8217;ll carry the news straight to
-Stark. He&#8217;ll be the man to tell. He&#8217;ll know what steps to
-take. You was smart, Kitty, to tell me. May make a big difference&mdash;to
-both sides. Don&#8217;t suppose you&#8217;ve got a horse
-about?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Indeed we have,&#8221; cried Kitty, relieved that she had told
-her disturbing secret and eager to be of further help, if that
-were possible. &#8220;There are two horses in the barn that belong
-to Uncle Moses Chase. Sally Rose and I brought them from
-Newburyport. Gran says they&#8217;re eating their heads off, but
-she hasn&#8217;t sent them home. But they&#8217;re only plow horses.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Kind I&#8217;m best used to. Like the gun, I&#8217;ll see you get it
-back some day.&#8221; He stroked the blunderbuss that now accompanied
-him everywhere. &#8220;Don&#8217;t know when I&#8217;ll see you again
-Kitty. Not here, likely. If the British are aiming to come this
-way, you folks will have to go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, we will. Just as soon as I can talk to Gran and Sally
-Rose. Back to Newburyport, perhaps. Why don&#8217;t you come
-to see us there?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can&#8217;t tell. Looks like I&#8217;ll have some fighting to do first.
-Glad you took our side and told me that British fellow&#8217;s secret,
-instead of hiding his little plan for him.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A startled look came over Kitty&#8217;s face. &#8220;Why&mdash;why, I did
-betray Gerry, didn&#8217;t I? I&mdash;I never thought of it like that.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[123]</span>&#8220;&#8217;Course you betrayed him. You&#8217;re too good a Yankee to
-do aught else, as I can see. Good-by, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He strode into the kitchen on his way to the garden and the
-barn behind it.</p>
-
-<p>The last thing he heard was a triumphant squeal from
-Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Colonel John Stark of the New Hampshire line was not in
-his quarters that night, but walking among the tents on the
-hillsides above Medford, talking with his men. After the
-long ride from Charlestown, Tom Trask felt weary and
-breathless when he finally caught up with his old neighbor.</p>
-
-<p>The colonel stood in a grove of oak trees where a little
-brook drained down. All along the brook the crude sailcloth
-tents clustered very thick. Campfires were burning low now.
-Some of the men lay sleeping on the ground beside them.
-Others were playing cards, jubilant when they could fling
-down the ace to take the queen. Stark was talking with a
-couple of grizzled veterans who had fought beside him in the
-Indian wars, but he broke off when the younger man came
-panting up.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where you been, lad?&#8221; he asked, and clapped Tom on
-the shoulder. &#8220;Couldn&#8217;t believe it when Moore reported you
-missing. Shut up in gaol, maybe? I know you got some good
-reason for being away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom could not bring himself to look at the keen blue-gray
-eyes and sharp, viselike face.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I been raiding the islands with some of Putnam&#8217;s men,&#8221;
-he muttered. &#8220;But on my way back tonight, I heard a word
-in Charlestown you ought to know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You got no business raiding islands, nor being in Charlestown,&#8221;
-snapped the colonel, all the warmth and friendliness
-gone from his voice. &#8220;Get back to Captain Moore, and tell
-him where you been. He&#8217;ll deal with you.&#8221; He turned away.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[124]</span>Tom nerved himself to step forward and pluck the sleeve
-of Stark&#8217;s new blue uniform.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Colonel Stark, sir,&#8221; he stammered. &#8220;You know what I
-heard in Charlestown? It come straight from a British captain,
-what I heard.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The colonel turned toward him again. &#8220;What was it?&#8221; he
-demanded.</p>
-
-<p>Tom lowered his voice. No use in alarming the men. &#8220;Oh,
-a very great secret it was, told in confidence to a girl. This
-captain said that the British mean to move out of Boston
-before the week&#8217;s end. They mean to seize and fortify either
-Dorchester Heights or Bunker Hill.&#8221; He paused expectantly.</p>
-
-<p>John Stark uttered a mirthless ha-ha.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Seems like you be about the forty-first
-private to come up and tell me that. The word&#8217;s spread wide,
-from here to Jamaica Plain.&#8221; Then he shook his head. &#8220;Too
-bad you done what you done. I&#8217;d ha&#8217; liked to ha&#8217; recommended
-a sergeant&#8217;s knot o&#8217; red for your shoulder when I
-sent you back to Captain Moore.&#8221;</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[125]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Twelve</i><br />
-
-
-<small>THUNDER IN THE AIR</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">The</span> bells were sounding midnight in Medford Steeple,
-turning Tuesday night into Wednesday morning, when
-Tom Trask tied his borrowed horse to a nearby fence and lay
-down beside the dying campfire of his own company. After
-the rebuke by his colonel and another one next day by Captain
-Moore, he hardly expected John Stark to send for him
-within a day or two, but that was what came about.</p>
-
-<p>Stark was holding a conference with a handful of his captains
-in the little hollow between Plowed Hill and Winter
-Hill. It had probably been a green valley once, but now the
-young grass was all trampled away, and so was a field of
-what had started out to be Indian corn. All about stretched
-the tents and crude wooden shelters of the New Hampshire
-men. The colonel was in his shirt sleeves, and his lean face
-looked grimmer than usual. He had no smile of greeting, but
-he did not seem to be angry any more.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;See you brought your horse, Tom, like I said. Was surprised
-when &#8217;twas reported to me you owned such an animal.
-They&#8217;re scarcer&#8217;n hen&#8217;s teeth around here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I only borrowed him, sir,&#8221; replied Tom quickly. &#8220;Borrowed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[126]</span>
-him in Charlestown. He belongs in Newburyport.
-When I can, I mean to return him home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t hurry about it,&#8221; replied the colonel. &#8220;See that cart
-over there?&#8221; He pointed to a heavy wagon, empty, three
-young men standing close by. A horse was fastened between
-the shafts of it, but he was a lank, ill-favored nag and looked
-scarce able to go.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, sir,&#8221; said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then take your critter over to help the other one pull.
-General Ward has promised to issue some lead to us, if we
-send to Cambridge for it. That&#8217;s Peter Christie, Hugh Watts,
-and Asa Senter who are going with you. Good lads. I knew
-their folks in Londonderry before I was grown. Be as quick
-as you can about it, too. We haven&#8217;t got enough powder and
-ball to scare off a herd of deer, let alone the British Army.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, sir,&#8221; said Tom again. He waited for further instructions,
-but none were forthcoming. Colonel Stark turned back
-to his worried-looking officers. After a moment Tom led his
-horse over to the wagon.</p>
-
-<p>The Londonderry men were indeed good fellows, he soon
-found out, used to the same life as he. They had fished in the
-same streams and hunted over the same mountains, knew as
-little about books and high living, as much about how to plant
-corn or cut down a white pine so it would fall the right way.
-And soon they were all singing crude old-fashioned country
-songs as they drove along the winding road.</p>
-
-<p>Tom looked westward across the pleasant farms to the
-faint blue line of hills beyond them, and he thought of the
-unseen army that was supposed to be circling tightly all
-around Boston, an army of men like himself and the Londonderry
-boys. Some said it was ten thousand strong, and
-some said twenty, all the way from Medford River to Jamaica
-Plain. He thought of that other army, swaggering
-through the streets of Boston; men, he supposed, like that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[127]</span>
-redcoat captain he&#8217;d brought home in chains a while back&mdash;and
-nobody knew what strength they had. He remembered
-Kitty&#8217;s warning that the British meant to strike by the week&#8217;s
-end. Well, here it was, Friday, June sixteenth, and the
-weather hotter&#8217;n the burning roof of hell. If the British were
-coming, they&#8217;d better be on their way. Maybe they were on
-their way. Everybody in camp was worn out and restless with
-expecting them, but nobody seemed to know.</p>
-
-<p>Just then his horse gave a neigh, laid back its ears, and
-stood still. Perforce, the other horse halted, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Must ha&#8217; seen a rabbit,&#8221; said Hugh Watts, peering over
-the side of the cart into the thick grass that grew beside the
-road. &#8220;I don&#8217;t see anything but ripe strawberries, though.
-Think we could stop to pick a few?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Asa Senter shook his head. &#8220;Wouldn&#8217;t hardly dare it,&#8221; he
-objected. &#8220;Stark wants us to go and get back. By the look o&#8217;
-the sun, it&#8217;s already six o&#8217;clock, and we still got about another
-mile.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom leaped down from the wagon. &#8220;I don&#8217;t think it was a
-rabbit,&#8221; he said. &#8220;He acts more like there was thunder in the
-air.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not a cloud anywheres that I can see,&#8221; said Peter Christie.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t have to be.&#8221; Tom patted the horse&#8217;s flank and
-started to lead them ahead. &#8220;If there&#8217;s thunder somewheres
-over back, a critter&#8217;ll always know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Feel a bit uneasy myself,&#8221; said Asa, getting down to walk
-beside Tom. &#8220;Look! There&#8217;s a steeple and some roofs sticking
-up through the trees. Cambridge must be just ahead.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>There were a sight of mighty fine houses round Cambridge
-Common, Tom thought, as they approached it. Big square
-mansions, some of them; some with gambrel roofs, mostly
-painted yellow and white. But he didn&#8217;t see any of the sort
-of folk who looked as if they lived in the houses; pretty
-women with flowers and jewels, or gentlemen in velvet<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[128]</span>
-jackets wearing swords. The roads that led to the Common
-were thronged with soldiers like himself, in cowhide shoes,
-leather breeches, and tattered tow-cloth shirts, with bandanas
-round their heads; and all too many, for his taste, had
-a short-stemmed pipe gripped between their teeth. They all
-seemed to be excited about something.</p>
-
-<p>He had no trouble in getting the old Hastings house
-pointed out to him, but he was unable to lead his horse anywhere
-near it because the crowd was so great. They seemed to
-be having some sort of muster on the Common, for men were
-drawn up in rank there, maybe a thousand or so.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s a-going on, Tom?&#8221; Peter demanded.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t know,&#8221; said Tom, &#8220;but I aim to find out. You
-boys stay here with the cart, and I&#8217;ll go over to General
-Ward&#8217;s and ask. We got to go there anyway to get the lead.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He left his companions and made his way forward till he
-reached the rail fence before the dwelling house that had
-been pointed out to him as the headquarters of the Great
-American Army. A row of Lombardy poplar trees stood up
-tall and pointed behind the fence, and just as Tom elbowed
-his way to the gate, a man came out to stand before the wide
-front door.</p>
-
-<p>First there was a loud shouting, and cheers, and then a
-hush. The seething mass of men around Cambridge Common
-stood very still.</p>
-
-<p>The man in the doorway was not General Ward, surely,
-for he wore a long black gown with flowing sleeves and a
-square-topped cap such as Tom had never seen before, with a
-tassel hanging down. But two other men stood behind him in
-blue coats and three-cornered hats, and they were officers,
-right enough.</p>
-
-<p>However it was the black-clad man who spoke, loudly and
-clearly, so that as many as possible might hear.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[129]</span>&#8220;I, Samuel Langdon, President of Harvard College, am
-here to assure you that the hearts of our little community go
-with you in your heroic venture. With you go the hopes of
-Massachusetts, and the future, perhaps, of our whole great
-country. I am here to bless your going out and your coming
-home. May His strength uphold you when your need is greatest,
-His spirit restore you when you falter, and His truth
-abide in you always. My sons, let us pray.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom whipped off his cap, bowed his head, and closed his
-eyes, aware that hundreds of other men were doing the same.
-But his throat tightened and he heard no more of President
-Langdon&#8217;s prayer. This was the beginning, he thought. Concord
-Fight hadn&#8217;t been anything to what this would be. At
-Concord Fight they had all come a-running, just the way
-men come when the word goes out that a house is afire. But
-this was like when a whole town got together by plan and
-moved out against the French or the Indians. Concord Fight
-had been a fight&mdash;just that&mdash;but this wouldn&#8217;t be a fight,
-what was coming now. It would be a battle. It would be a
-war.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;<i>Dulce et decorum est pro patria mori</i>,&#8221; finished Dr.
-Langdon soberly. &#8220;It is sweet and fitting, my sons, to die for
-one&#8217;s country.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He lifted his eyes and stood silent, looking over the heads
-of the company, straight at the small square bell tower of a
-church across the way.</p>
-
-<p>Everyone began to talk at once, it seemed, and in the uproar
-Tom thrust open the gate that led to the Hastings house
-and crossed the lawn to the back door. Lilac trees grew close
-to it, and here, away from the glare of the sinking sun, the
-air was fragrant and cool. A young man in a trim blue coat
-sat at a table just inside the door.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Lead for Colonel Stark?&#8221; he replied to Tom&#8217;s question.
-&#8220;Yes, he&#8217;s to have a supply our men cut out of the organ pipes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[130]</span>
-in the English church across the Common. Trouble is, I can&#8217;t
-think for the minute where &#8217;tis stored. Suppose you come back
-tomorrow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom pulled a tendril off a grape vine that grew on a trellis
-over the door and began to chew it. &#8220;Stark wants me to bring
-it back tonight,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>The young officer sat up and surveyed him insolently.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Stark may not know it, but there&#8217;s a war beginning,&#8221; he
-announced.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; agreed Tom. &#8220;There is. That&#8217;s what he wants the
-lead for.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly they were both laughing.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re right, man,&#8221; answered the young officer in a
-friendlier tone. &#8220;We&#8217;re all on edge, and it takes us different
-ways, I guess. But I still don&#8217;t know where the stuff has got
-to, and I&#8217;m afraid we can&#8217;t do anything till Prescott takes his
-force out of town, which he&#8217;ll do as soon as it&#8217;s dark enough.
-Come back a little after nine.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Where&#8217;s Prescott going?&#8221; Tom asked.</p>
-
-<p>The officer laid his finger across his mouth. &#8220;Prescott
-knows&mdash;and nobody else has any need to. Have you got
-rations, lad?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said Tom, &#8220;we come empty-handed. Three others
-besides me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The officer wrote rapidly on a slip of paper.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here. Take this to the head of the Common when you
-hear them blow a bugle up there. Give it to the mess sergeant,
-and he&#8217;ll see you have some supper.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Thank you, sir,&#8221; said Tom. He went back to where he
-had left his companions.</p>
-
-<p>He found them sitting along the top rail of a fence while
-the horses cropped the wayside grass.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Did you find out what&#8217;s afoot, Tom?&#8221; asked Hugh Watts
-eagerly.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[131]</span>The men in the streets were thinning out, but those on the
-Common, though no longer drawn up at attention, still remained
-there.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh, there&#8217;s a war beginning, and nobody knows where
-the lead is,&#8221; said Tom, flinging himself down on the grass.
-&#8220;Didn&#8217;t find out a thing beyond that.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We did,&#8221; said Asa. &#8220;After the man got through praying,
-we asked around. Seems Colonel Prescott&#8217;s taking out twelve
-hundred men with packs and blankets and a day&#8217;s ration.
-There&#8217;s a fatigue crew along, and picks and shovels like they
-mean to fortify. Nobody knows where.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;ll either be behind Dorchester or Charlestown,&#8221; said
-Tom. He thought fleetingly of Kitty, and the yellow-haired
-minx, and the gallant old woman. He hoped they&#8217;d got safe
-away, but he didn&#8217;t think of them long. &#8220;There&#8217;s the bugle,&#8221;
-he said. &#8220;Let&#8217;s go get supper.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Supper in Cambridge camp that night, for such men as did
-not have regular rations, consisted of a slab of salt fish and a
-hunk of hard, grayish bread, served with a noggin of sour
-beer. After the boys had eaten they walked about the town,
-down to the red brick buildings of the college, filled now with
-soldiers instead of scholars, and into the gray flush-board
-English church to see if by any chance the lead was still there.
-The church was full of Connecticut men who were using it
-for barracks, and they knew nothing about the lead at all.</p>
-
-<p>By nine o&#8217;clock the twilight had gathered thickly about the
-little town, and the men on the Common formed in ranks and
-began their march. Two sergeants walked ahead carrying
-dark lanterns, half open so as to throw the light behind. Then
-came two blue-coated officers, Colonel Prescott and Colonel
-Gridley, then the rest of the detail, made up of Massachusetts
-and Connecticut men. Tom was not surprised when he
-saw that they took the Charlestown Road.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[132]</span>&#8220;Bet they&#8217;re going to fortify Bunker Hill,&#8221; he told his
-friends. &#8220;They&#8217;re carrying entrenchment tools. Wouldn&#8217;t
-bother with them if the British had already struck. Must be
-we mean to get there first and beat them to it. You go back to
-the cart, and I&#8217;ll call round at headquarters again. We got to
-get that lead and start for Winter Hill.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The town had quieted down now, and most of the men remaining
-there had gone to the houses where they were quartered,
-or to their tents in the fields beyond. Nobody would do
-much sleeping, Tom thought. Tense and nervous they all
-felt, trying to tell themselves they were too much men to be
-afraid&mdash;just like any flesh and blood thing when there was
-thunder in the air.</p>
-
-<p>Two lanterns were burning on poles set up in the yard of
-the Hastings house, but the back door was locked when Tom
-rapped on it. So was the front door, when he tried to enter
-there. Through the window he could see candles burning in
-prismed holders, and a group of men sitting around a mahogany
-table, some in uniforms, others in buff and gray and
-bottle green coats. One of the officers stood up to speak. He
-was heavily built, with pointed features and bright eyes, but
-his face had an unhealthy look. Must be Ward himself,
-thought Tom. All the Army knew their leader was a sick
-man.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;When the Committee of Safety advised me this afternoon,&#8221;
-he began, &#8220;that it was deemed best for us to fortify
-Bunker Hill&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Just then a sentry tapped Tom on the shoulder with a gun
-barrel. &#8220;What are ye lurking about for?&#8221; he growled in a
-rough voice.</p>
-
-<p>Tom turned around sharply. The sentry was an oldish
-man, unshaven, with shaggy hair and beard.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I got business here,&#8221; he said. &#8220;I come to get Colonel<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[133]</span>
-Stark&#8217;s lead, and by the great Jehovah, I mean to do the
-same.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The sentry spat. &#8220;Maybe ye&#8217;re honest,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Ye look
-to be. But General Ward&#8217;s a-talking to some important men
-from the Congress o&#8217; Massachusetts right now. Couldn&#8217;t let
-ye in there if ye was King George himself, with the Queen
-tagging along.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;ll wait here till they&#8217;re through then,&#8221; insisted Tom.
-&#8220;I&#8217;ll wait right here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The sentry shrugged. &#8220;Guess there&#8217;s no harm in that,&#8221; he
-muttered, and ambled off.</p>
-
-<p>Tom sat down on the grass with his back against a poplar
-tree and looked up at the stars. They were just as bright as
-they had been when he crossed Breed&#8217;s Hill a few nights
-ago. He wondered if tomorrow he&#8217;d be going back there,
-lugging Kitty&#8217;s old blunderbuss with him. Suddenly he realized
-that he was sleepy. The tension had eased out of him,
-even though there was still thunder in the air, the thunder of
-war about to break. A man could only keep himself keyed up
-for so long. But it wouldn&#8217;t do&mdash;now&mdash;to go&mdash;to sleep. He
-ought to get up and walk&mdash;get&mdash;up&mdash;and&mdash;walk&mdash;</p>
-
-<p>He opened his eyes and shook himself. How did it get to
-be like that&mdash;early morning, the light as broad as day? The
-sky was red and golden over eastward where the sea must lie.
-The grass around him was wet with dew. Smoke was curling
-upward from the chimneys round about, and in somebody&#8217;s
-barnyard he could hear a rooster crow. Lord forgive him,
-he&#8217;d slept all night. They&#8217;d drum him out of camp or at least
-give him forty lashes, and he deserved it, too.</p>
-
-<p>He stood up just as a horse and rider came spurring to the
-gate. The rider dismounted hastily and approached the front
-door. He was a trim, neat man with fair hair, but he looked
-feverish and ill. Almost immediately a pint-sized man came
-out to let him in. The two shook hands.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[134]</span>&#8220;Ah, Elbridge, Elbridge Gerry, my good friend,&#8221; murmured
-the newcomer. &#8220;It is folly to try to seize and hold
-Charlestown. Yet, I must go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah no, Dr. Warren,&#8221; pleaded the smaller man. &#8220;You are
-too well known. You stayed in Boston too long, and the
-British know too well what a great pillar of strength you
-have been to our colonial cause. As surely as you go up
-Bunker Hill, you will be slain.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know,&#8221; answered the doctor tensely. &#8220;I told the friends
-with whom I dined last night that I would go up the Hill
-today and never come off again. I slept wretchedly, and my
-head aches, but after an hour or two&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sirs,&#8221; interrupted Tom politely, &#8220;I am sorry to bother you
-when you&#8217;re about such weighty business, but I been here
-since six o&#8217;clock last night, trying to get some lead for Colonel
-Stark.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Elbridge Gerry gave a snort of impatience, but Dr.
-Warren turned and smiled at the boy.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I am sorry you had the long delay, lad. I myself saw that
-the lead was dispatched to Stark late yesterday afternoon.
-He&#8217;ll know what to do with it, if anybody does. His men will
-have melted it into bullets by now, and may be shooting it at
-the British, for all I know.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He turned again to Mr. Gerry. &#8220;Ah, sir, &#8216;<i>Dulce decorum</i>,&#8217;
-as all men know or must learn. Let us go inside, and send
-someone to lead my horse away, for he is as spent as I.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom walked thoughtfully back to where his comrades
-would still be asleep in the empty cart. &#8216;<i>Dulce decorum</i>&#8217;! He
-knew what the Latin meant, for President Langdon had
-translated it yesterday afternoon. &#8220;It is sweet and fitting to
-die for one&#8217;s country.&#8221; But was it, he wondered. The sun felt
-gloriously warm on his back, and made his blood tingle.
-The birds were singing in the elm trees round the Common.
-Kitty was a pretty girl, and there were other pretty girls.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[135]</span>
-Sweet to die? That sounded like a thing old men would think
-of, tired old men who never had to go out and fight, who
-would die in bed at ninety-three or so. Still, if you had to do
-it, you had to do it, and he guessed he was as ready as he&#8217;d
-ever be.</p>
-
-<p>Over towards Charlestown he heard the boom of a heavy
-gun.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[136]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Thirteen</i><br />
-
-
-<small>THE WORLD TURNED UPSIDE DOWN</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">Gerry Malory</span> was back in Devonshire at daybreak on
-that hot June morning, only it did not seem to him to be
-morning, or any special time of day. He stood in a low valley
-opening toward the sea, and there were little farms all around
-him with hedgerows in between them, and here and there a
-church spire reaching toward the sky. He was not alone, for
-a man stood beside him, a man he had never seen before,
-about his father&#8217;s age, dressed in quaint old-fashioned clothes,
-and carrying an ancient gun. The gun looked like the one
-that belonged to the Yankee that had taken him prisoner in
-the tavern by Ipswich Green. The man was shaking his head
-and scowling. He seemed to be angry about something. Gerry
-was ready to protest that he hadn&#8217;t done anything wrong,
-when suddenly he thought that maybe he had. Maybe he&#8217;d
-been poaching again.</p>
-
-<p>Just then the man spoke. &#8220;It&#8217;s the coming country, lad,&#8221;
-he said. &#8220;Don&#8217;t make the mistake I did in my time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What mistake?&#8221; Gerry murmured, but he thought he
-knew. His words were drowned out by the deep boom of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[137]</span>
-thunder. Again and again the thunder sounded, and the
-echoes rolled over valley and hill and sea.</p>
-
-<p>His body shook like an aspen in a storm wind; his eyelids
-snapped wide apart. He was in the warehouse behind the
-stables near Long Wharf in Boston, Massachusetts, and Sergeant
-Higgs had him by the shoulder. The thunder still
-boomed in his ears, but the Devon landscape had gone back
-into his memory, where it probably came from. He was lying
-on his own blanket on a heap of straw, with the regiment&#8217;s
-goat tethered nearby.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wake up, lad! Don&#8217;t you hear the guns?&#8221; Higgs was
-saying.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry pulled himself erect. He found it hard to come out
-of the dream that had seemed so real to him.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes, I hear them,&#8221; he said. &#8220;Whose guns are they?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Whose would they be?&#8221; scoffed the sergeant. &#8220;Do you
-think the Yankees have guns like that?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No&mdash;no.&#8221; He was wide awake now, wider awake than he
-wanted to be, he thought, for the cannonading sounded ominous
-and near. &#8220;What&#8217;s happening, Jack? Are we marching
-against them? Have we attacked&mdash;or they?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can&#8217;t tell yet,&#8221; said Sergeant Higgs. &#8220;All we know is, we
-hear gunfire. Lieutenant Apthorp has gone to headquarters
-to find out. You better get some breakfast. It&#8217;s best we be
-ready for anything.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>In the cobbled square outside, the men of the Twenty-third
-had built their usual cookfire, just as they did every
-morning, and gathered round it, salt pork spitted on bayonets
-and stale bread handed round by the mess sergeant. Lieutenant
-Apthorp did not come back, and Lieutenant Julian went
-to see what was keeping him. The cannonading went on. It
-was coming from the ships in the river beyond the North
-End, most of the men agreed. Maybe the Yankees had got
-together some sort of raft and were moving by water against<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[138]</span>
-Boston. The Twenty-third seemed more amused than frightened
-at this suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>And then, without any official announcement being made,
-the word was passed from mouth to mouth, and everybody
-knew.</p>
-
-<p>The Yankees had taken the hills above Charlestown in the
-night, and built some sort of entrenchment there. They were
-being fired at from three sides by the British men-o&#8217;-war, but
-it began to seem as if this would not be enough to dislodge
-them, as if a force would have to go out and drive them from
-the hill.</p>
-
-<p>In the town behind him Gerry could hear the rattle of
-artillery carriages, the thud of horses&#8217; hoofs as the dragoons
-galloped here and there. General Gage had called for his officers
-to meet at the Province House, and some of the men
-went off to hover about that grim, narrow structure and get
-the word as soon as it was handed down.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry did not go to the Province House. He went to the
-edge of the wharf and sat there, dangling his legs over the
-side. The sun was getting higher and hotter, and he looked
-up at the sun, and then down at the thick grayish water lapping
-silently round the piers below. He thought about his
-dream, and he thought about the girl called Kitty, who was
-not so distractingly fair as Sally Rose, and wondered if she
-had got safe away. He thought about Captain Blakeslee lying
-dead under the locust tree. True, he had never wanted to be
-a soldier, but once he became one, he&#8217;d expected to bear his
-part well. Once he&#8217;d have been eager to march out when he
-heard firing, but he was none so eager now. Maybe he was
-afraid. Maybe that was a bad omen. He&#8217;d heard around the
-campfire that men who were going into their last battle often
-felt that way. If only he could forget the dream....</p>
-
-<p>The sounds of confusion in the town behind him seemed to
-increase and grow. Now that he thought of it, none of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[139]</span>
-usual daily noises could be heard: not the tapping of the carpenters&#8217;
-hammers, nor the thumping of handlooms, nor the
-creak of wooden machinery. The little Negro boys were nowhere
-about with their cries of &#8220;Sweep oh! Sweep oh!&#8221; He
-suspected that the town of Boston would do no work this day.
-Everywhere men were shouting and bells were ringing:
-Christ&#8217;s Church with its royal peal, the North Church with its
-sour note, and half a dozen more. Just as usual, the breeze
-that blew over Long Wharf smelled of fish and whale oil and
-the nearby stables, of tar, and spice, and wood smoke, but
-now, or did he imagine it, it had an acrid brimstone tang.</p>
-
-<p>At eleven the men came trooping back, and the word was
-out. Every man knew what was to be the order of his day.</p>
-
-<p>At half past eleven the men of Gerry&#8217;s company paraded
-on the Common, splendid in scarlet and white and brass,
-equipped with full kit, blankets, and three days&#8217; rations, and
-drawn up beside them were fifteen hundred more. The ships&#8217;
-guns still roared away, and every now and then a terrible
-blast let go from the battery on Copp&#8217;s Hill.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;They say it&#8217;s only a handful of farmers,&#8221; muttered Jack
-Higgs. &#8220;I&#8217;d not think they could stand such punishment for
-long.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry looked at Boston Common, the rambling field that
-had become so familiar to him in the past year: the crooked
-cowpaths, and the little pond, and the thick clumps of juniper
-and steeplebush, so handy to come upon when you were
-walking in the moonlight with a girl; the gravel strip where
-the officers still raced their horses, in spite of all the town
-fathers could do. He looked at the gabled mansions and
-quaint, crooked houses round, as if he never expected to see
-them any more.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Yankees&#8217;ll take more punishment than you&#8217;d think
-for,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[140]</span>Once on the water, the barges from Long Wharf joined
-with the barges from the North Battery, twenty-eight of
-them moving in two long parallel lines, filled with scarlet-coated
-men. In the leading boats were two polished brass
-field pieces, and the noonday sun struck everywhere on colorful
-banners and gleaming arms. For the Tories in Boston, it
-must have been a splendid sight, but Gerry turned his eyes
-toward the Charlestown peninsula as the troops were rowed
-across the blue bay.</p>
-
-<p>Smoke and flame and awful sound kept pouring forth from
-the great guns of the fleet&mdash;the <i>Somerset</i>, the <i>Falcon</i>, the
-<i>Lively</i>. Dimly through the barrage he could see the little
-village where he had gone drinking at the Bay and Beagle
-and courting in the graveyard under the spring moon. On the
-hill above it, grown up overnight like a mushroom, stood a
-small square earthworks, silent, except for one erratic cannon
-that spoke now and then. Black dots of men moved about the
-earthworks, but no columns issued forth drawn up in battle
-array, no reinforcements poured in from any side.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry&#8217;s spirits rose and he cleared his throat. &#8220;Is that,&#8221; he
-asked the sergeant, &#8220;the great fortification we&#8217;re all ordered
-out to tear down?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The sergeant laughed grimly. &#8220;Don&#8217;t look very fearsome,
-does it?&#8221; he agreed. &#8220;But after the way they run us back
-through Lexington, I don&#8217;t trust them devils.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And I thought it was Bunker Hill instead of Breed&#8217;s
-they&#8217;d be likely to fortify,&#8221; went on Gerry. &#8220;That&#8217;s how we
-would have chosen. But that&#8217;s Bunker Hill, standing up
-behind there, bare as a plate. The little dugout is on Breed&#8217;s
-Hill, below.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Breed&#8217;s or Bunker makes no difference now,&#8221; said Sergeant
-Higgs. &#8220;Keep your cartridges dry in the landing.
-We&#8217;re headed in towards shore.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[141]</span>A few minutes later they were all drawn up in a low-lying
-field where Charlestown peninsula extended, pear-shaped,
-into the sea. Gerry found himself in the front line, far to the
-right, with the light infantry of the Twenty-third and the
-King&#8217;s Own. To the left stood the grenadiers, and behind
-him the Fifty-second and the Fifth. He was feeling cheerful
-and brave now, and as safe as London Tower. It reassured
-him even more when the order came to break ranks and dine
-on the rations in their knapsacks before going farther along.</p>
-
-<p>Sprawled in the hot sun, chewing his beef and biscuit, he
-eyed the landscape round him: the green, sloping fields, some
-cocked hay, and some standing grass; the swamp and brick
-kilns to the left; Breed&#8217;s Hill above, where the black dots
-still crawled around the tiny redoubt. He talked with the
-other men.</p>
-
-<p>All the young lads, he found, were in their glory that the
-attack was to be made straight on, that this detachment of the
-British Army would pound forward full force and set the
-Americans running, or beat them down into their native clay.
-But the old wise sergeants shook their heads and said it was
-a pity Gage hadn&#8217;t ordered them to land at the Neck. They
-could have bottled up the Yankees in Charlestown then, and
-starved them out, and not had to fire a shot.</p>
-
-<p>No, somebody else said, for to do that would have meant
-sending a force between two wings of its enemy, and that was
-a tactic frowned upon long before Caesar marched through
-Gaul. In the end they all agreed that they were well enough
-satisfied with the way things had fallen out. They&#8217;d march
-up that hill in double-quick time, drive the cowardly Yankees
-out of their burrow, and be back drinking beer in Boston
-before the sun went down.</p>
-
-<p>They were beginning to take out packs of dog-eared playing
-cards when the word passed among them that reinforcements
-were disembarking on the fields to the left; that Howe<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[142]</span>
-had sent for the reinforcements because the Americans were
-bringing in more troops, the earthworks had been extended
-far to the left, and he didn&#8217;t like the looks of things at all.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry began to put his uneaten food away in his knapsack.
-There wasn&#8217;t as much room in it as there should have been,
-because at the last moment he had decided to stuff in the
-rough shirt and breeches he wore when he went about the
-Yankee countryside. He smiled now, as he saw them there.
-Didn&#8217;t think he&#8217;d have a need for them, but you never know.
-Just then the bugles sounded and the officers called them to
-attention. Like one man the assembled army was on its feet.
-Gerry could see the newly landed troops drawn up away to
-the left, facing the redoubt.</p>
-
-<p>General Howe, dark, florid and heavily built, stood forth
-and spoke to his men.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gentlemen, I am very happy to have the honor of commanding
-so fine a body.... I do not doubt that you will
-behave like Englishmen and as becometh good soldiers. If
-the enemy will not come from their entrenchments, we must
-drive them out, otherwise the town of Boston will be set on
-fire by them.... I shall not desire one of you to go a step
-further than where I go at your head. Remember, gentlemen,
-we have no recourse, if we lose Boston, but to go on board our
-ships ... which will be very disagreeable to us all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>General Howe stepped a little aside and stood smiling
-proudly round him, his hand on his sword. The troops stood
-tensely, bayonets in hand, waiting the order to move ahead.
-The cannonading from the ships was so steady that they did
-not hear it any more, but the guns of Boston now set up an
-iron clamor that seemed fit to shake the earth. Now the artillery
-rolled toward the redoubt.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry looked up at the serene blue sky, at a cluster of apple
-trees a little way ahead. There were trees like that on his
-father&#8217;s farm in Devon, and he wondered if he&#8217;d ever again<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[143]</span>
-see them growing there. He looked at the hill where spouts
-of dust shot upward as heavy balls hit the turf of the redoubt.
-Suppose they did have to board their ships and sail away?
-Maybe he wouldn&#8217;t sail away, maybe he&#8217;d go and find blue-eyed
-Kitty. Maybe he would....</p>
-
-<p>The artillery seemed to have slowed and faltered, bogged
-down in the miry earth at the swamp edge, crushing the
-blue flag lilies as it moved forward again. At last came the
-order the scarlet host had been waiting for.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry gripped his bayonet and stepped out as he had been
-trained to do. A rippling field of buttercups and daisies lay
-ahead, and beyond it a rail fence, but he saw no likely danger
-there. He glanced toward the redoubt where General Pigot
-was to lead the attack. Howe would march on the rail fence
-that joined a stone wall running to the waterside. Then
-Howe&#8217;s regiments and the light infantry would shatter the
-Yankees&#8217; left and sweep across it, swinging inland to overwhelm
-the earthworks from behind. It seemed like an unbeatable
-plan.</p>
-
-<p>The light infantry, men from the Welsh Fusileers and the
-King&#8217;s Own forged steadily ahead&mdash;but not easily. The day
-was growing hotter. What with ammunition, food, blankets,
-and firelocks, they were weighted down a hundred pounds to a
-man. Gerry felt the sweat burst out on his face. He wished
-he had a drink. He wished he could run his finger under the
-stiff leather stock that gripped his throat. He wished he could
-rip off his beaver hat. Clouds of black smoke with white
-under-edges were billowing up to the west of Breed&#8217;s Hill.
-Looked like Charlestown Village was afire. Well, Admiral
-Graves had wanted to burn it long ago.</p>
-
-<p>He waded through the thick grass, almost to his knees,
-then out on a muddy strip of beach littered with driftwood
-and small dead creatures of the sea. Here they halted briefly
-to re-form.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[144]</span>Grouped now in columns of fours, the Welsh Fusileers in
-the lead, the light infantry advanced along the narrow strip
-of shore. They drew close to the rough fieldstone wall. That
-it had been hastily thrown up, Gerry could see now. Undoubtably
-there would be Yankees behind it. He half lifted
-his bayonet. They drew nearer and nearer. They were ready
-to deploy and charge, when the blast came.</p>
-
-<p>The low stone wall seemed to leap forth at them in a searing
-torrent of fire. Like corn before the scythe, the men on
-both sides of him went down. More from shock than anything
-else. Gerry fell on his knees, but he lifted his gun and
-fired once from there. Where the bullet went, he never knew.
-Crouched in the foul-smelling mud, he tried to load again.
-Wounded men lay all around him. His own company seemed
-to be cut to pieces, but the King&#8217;s Own tried to form a charge
-and went streaming through. Again the tide of flame leaped
-forward. The scarlet line, broken in many places, reeled back.
-Again the officers rallied what was left of them, and again
-the charge came on. The whole world seemed to be dissolved
-in blood and fire, the cries of the wounded, the shouts of the
-officers, and the steady roar of the guns upon the hill.</p>
-
-<p>He tried to pull himself upright, but just then he felt a
-terrible blow against his head. His ears rang. Stars and circles
-swam before his eyes, orange, green, and rainbow-hued. He
-seemed to be no longer a living thing, only one huge dull
-pain sinking into darkness.</p>
-
-<p>He did not know how long it was before the darkness
-streamed past him and away, and he saw the stone wall
-abristle with smoking gun barrels. He lifted his head from
-the mud and gazed in the other direction. To his horror he
-saw the scarlet backs of his comrades fleeing helter-skelter
-toward the barges by the shore. He lay all alone, in the midst
-of the dying and the dead. One man was calling for a drink
-of water, and another man gasped out a prayer. Shattered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[145]</span>
-muskets, ripped knapsacks, and the discarded wigs of the officers
-littered the beach about him.</p>
-
-<p>His head throbbed and seemed to be swelling larger every
-minute, big as the sun itself, the sun that still glared down
-from the pitiless blue sky. He couldn&#8217;t think clear, and he
-knew he&#8217;d have to think clear, if he ever got out of this alive.</p>
-
-<p>Finally he lifted up his head and saw a steepening of the
-river bank just ahead of him that made a sort of bluff he
-could try to crawl under. Inch by inch, painfully, he dragged
-himself among the fallen men. Most of them lay quiet now
-and were not troubled by his passage through. They would
-never be troubled by anything any more. They had not
-beaten the Americans, but they would never board the ships
-and sail away.</p>
-
-<p>Once under the safety of the bluff, he lay there and sipped
-a little of the brackish water which he scooped up in his hands.
-There was blood on his uniform, and blood was trickling
-down from somewhere over his left ear, but he did not put
-his hand up. He did not want to know how badly he was hurt&mdash;not
-right now.</p>
-
-<p>And yet, his own wound wasn&#8217;t the worst of it. The worst
-of it was the sight of the British Army running away. Running
-to the barges, fleeing back to Boston, beaten almost to
-destruction by a mob of American farmers at a stone wall and
-an earthworks on a hill! What was that old tune the band
-played sometimes on parade? <i>The World Turned Upside
-Down!</i></p>
-
-<p>What would happen to him, he wondered, when the
-Yankees found him lying here? They didn&#8217;t have bayonets,
-most of them, so they couldn&#8217;t run him through, but there
-were other ways to kill a man.</p>
-
-<p>But maybe they wouldn&#8217;t, all of them, kill a wounded
-man, any more than he would. He&#8217;d gone among them, traveled
-through their towns, and found there men no worse<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[146]</span>
-than he. And at that he remembered the knapsack and the
-clothing in it. He reached down; yes, it still hung at his side.</p>
-
-<p>Painfully, haltingly, he pulled off the ruined uniform, the
-muddy scarlet and blood-stained white. Then he lay there
-naked in the mud a little while, under the bluff of sun-baked
-clay, till he had gathered strength enough to pull on the
-country clothes, the garb of most of the men behind the
-American line.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Maybe&mdash;if they find me&mdash;they&#8217;ll think I&#8217;m one of
-theirs,&#8221; he muttered, &#8220;take me in with their own wounded
-and bind my head up&mdash;and never know.&#8221; He managed a
-weak smile. The last prank he&#8217;d ever play on the Yankees,
-he guessed, but it was worth a try.</p>
-
-<p>Somehow he managed to crawl up the bank and out on the
-bloody grass. He lifted his eyes toward the redoubt. Could
-he believe what he saw? It had redcoats swarming all over it,
-their bayonets drawn, struggling on the parapet with the
-Americans, leaping down on those below.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So the lads have come back,&#8221; he whispered faintly. &#8220;We
-aren&#8217;t beaten after all. I should have known it couldn&#8217;t be&mdash;not
-Howe and Pigot! Not the Fusileers and the King&#8217;s Own.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He tried to get to his feet, but he couldn&#8217;t because his head
-was too big and heavy. His head was as big as the whole
-world. His head was drifting away on a tide of darkness that
-swept by.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[147]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Fourteen</i><br />
-
-
-<small>THE YOUNG MAY DIE</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">Kitty</span> did not know what time it was or how long she had
-been asleep. She only knew that she was wide awake
-now, somewhere in the empty black middle of the night, and
-she could hear Gran&#8217;s voice from the taproom below.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You may be an officer, young man,&#8221; Gran was saying,
-&#8220;furthermore, you may have come all the way up here from
-Connecticut, but I&#8217;m not impressed with that. I&#8217;m not one of
-your soldiery, nor obliged to take your orders. This is my
-son-in-law&#8217;s house, and the taxes upon it paid. I mean to stay
-here till he orders me from it.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty leaped out of bed and ran to the head of the stairs
-where she could hear better.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s only for your own safety, Ma&#8217;am,&#8221; a harassed young
-voice was explaining. &#8220;There&#8217;s going to be all hell to pay here
-tomorrow morning.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So you&#8217;ve been telling me,&#8221; went on Gran calmly, &#8220;and
-in that case, I&#8217;d better get some sleep to be ready for it. Good
-night, young man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty heard the slamming of the front door. She crept
-downstairs.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[148]</span>Gran was methodically taking all the best silverware out
-of the chest and wrapping each piece separately in flannel.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s the matter, Gran?&#8221; asked Kitty. She drew her
-flimsy nightrail around her and stood there shivering.</p>
-
-<p>Gran went on sorting out porringers and teaspoons.
-&#8220;There&#8217;s going to be trouble, child,&#8221; she said. &#8220;The town&#8217;s
-full of soldiers, and there&#8217;s more soldiers digging some sort
-of burrow above us on the hill. They say by daylight we can
-expect shooting.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Are they British soldiers?&#8221; asked Kitty. After all, Gerry
-Malory had warned her, and she had passed the message on,
-telling Gran it was something she had heard in the street.
-Gran had scoffed at the idea, refused to be driven away.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;British! No! They be still drinking and gambling in Boston,
-and like to stay there till the blast of Gabriel&#8217;s horn, if
-you ask me. These soldiers are our own lads, and they sent
-the word about that since they&#8217;ve entrenched themselves on
-a hill the British wanted, they look for a battle.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If&mdash;if there is a battle, what will we do?&#8221; asked Kitty.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;ll do what is needed,&#8221; said Gran shortly. &#8220;Right now
-I want you to wake Sally Rose. Put on your oldest dresses and
-good stout shoes. No flounces and toothpick heels, mind. Pick
-up whatever valuables you have and bring them to me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose, still sleepy-eyed, was enchanted at the prospect
-of adventure. She brought a whole little chest full of
-trinkets when they returned to the kitchen. Kitty had only
-her mother&#8217;s cameo brooch, and she pinned that inside her
-bodice. Gran held out a willow basket full of the carefully
-wrapped silver.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You girls take this down to the graveyard and bury it,&#8221;
-she ordered. &#8220;If the British come pouring in here tomorrow
-morning, looking for what they can find, new-turned earth
-in a graveyard will occasion no comment.&#8221; Across the lid of
-the basket she laid a wooden shovel.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[149]</span>Carrying the basket between them, the girls picked their
-way through the town in the warm, dim starlight. Here and
-there they passed by little groups of men who seemed to be
-patrolling the streets, who looked at them curiously but uttered
-no challenge. Lights were burning across the river in
-Boston and on the masts of the <i>Somerset</i> lying at anchor in
-mid-channel. Cries of &#8220;All&#8217;s Well!&#8221; sounded faintly at intervals
-from its decks and from the sentries in the town beyond
-it.</p>
-
-<p>There were no lights or sentries apparent on Bunker Hill,
-nor yet on Breed&#8217;s, when they looked that way, but both hillsides
-seemed to be alive with moving masses of shadow; a
-low hum rose above them like the swarming of many hives
-of bees. Now and then there was a tiny flash of light, or a
-clang as a shovel hit against stone.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty dug a shallow pit under the flowering quince tree
-where she had talked with Gerry Malory, and Sally Rose
-helped to cover it over, once the silver and her own treasures
-lay safe inside. Then they hurried back to the Bay and
-Beagle. Gran was trotting about the kitchen, setting many
-pans of bread to rise, pulling down hams from the rafters,
-heating the bake ovens red hot.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Get to work, girls,&#8221; she said as they came in, handing
-Kitty a carving knife and Sally Rose a wooden spoon. &#8220;Can&#8217;t
-tell how many men we may have to feed tomorrow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When they finished the preparations she considered necessary,
-they sank down exhausted on benches drawn to the oak
-table. Kitty noticed that the hands of the tall old clock
-pointed to a quarter past three.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My soul and body,&#8221; said Gran, &#8220;I thought I&#8217;d learned to
-do without it, but a cup of tea would certainly taste good to
-me right now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose smiled and her eyes sparkled in the candlelight.
-&#8220;I can get you tea, Gran,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Father has some hidden<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[150]</span>
-away. He says he keeps it for times of need among womenfolk.
-&#8217;Twas bought long ago before tea-tax time. Put the
-kettle on, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She went flying into the taproom to the secret cache behind
-the bar. A little later they sat down again with steaming cups
-before them.</p>
-
-<p>But Gran&#8217;s face was sober, and she spoke more gently than
-was her wont to do. &#8220;I hope that whatever happens tomorrow,&#8221;
-she said, holding her teacup in her hand, not tasting
-the fragrant liquid, &#8220;you girls will behave in a fitting
-manner, though it may not be easy. There is bound to be
-much danger about in a battle, and many horrible sights to
-be seen. When the soldiers came here first and warned us to
-go away, I thought I would do as they advised me. And then
-I remembered an old great-grandmother of mine. She lived
-in a lonely garrison and when the Indians attacked her home,
-she did not run away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What did she do?&#8221; asked Sally Rose, her eyes wide.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;She poured boiling water out of an upstairs window and
-scalded the varmints,&#8221; snapped Gran, with all her usual
-severity. &#8220;And if she could do that, it came to me that I could
-stay here and do whatever it was needful I should do.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Do you think to pour hot water on the British, Gran?&#8221;
-asked Kitty, trying to suppress a giggle.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Times change,&#8221; said Gran, her eyes fixed on the dwindling
-darkness outside, on the tall hollyhock stems becoming
-visible in the garden, &#8220;and that&#8217;s not what will be expected of
-us, most likely. Only&mdash;it comes to me&mdash;that sometime, a
-good many years from now, all of us, yes, even you, Sally
-Rose, will be great-grandmothers, too.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;With gray hair?&#8221; asked Sally Rose plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;With gray hair&mdash;or no hair at all,&#8221; continued Gran.
-&#8220;And then, at that time, we wouldn&#8217;t want the young folk of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[151]</span>
-our blood to say we were afraid and ran away when the time
-of danger came.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She looked challengingly at the girls.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said Kitty soberly. &#8220;We wouldn&#8217;t want that. But
-what will we do, Gran?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Can&#8217;t tell for certain. But the way I see it, we keep a victualling
-house, and when there&#8217;s a lull in the fight, if a fight
-there be, the men will want food and drink. We&#8217;ll be here to
-provide it for them. All we have to do is the thing we do
-every day&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A low boom like thunder, and yet sharper and more explosive
-than thunder, rolled and echoed in the direction of
-Morton&#8217;s Point. A moment later the windows rattled and
-the tavern shook.</p>
-
-<p>Gran covered her ears and closed her eyes. &#8220;Merciful
-heavens, it&#8217;s begun! I&#8217;ll have to eat my fine words now!
-Under the table, Kitty, Sally Rose!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>In a moment they were huddled together on the floor, with
-the spreading trestles round them and the stout oak planks
-above. The blast was followed by a silence, and in the silence
-they heard a derisive shouting from the crest of Breed&#8217;s Hill.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sounds like the lads up there had suffered no harm from
-it,&#8221; murmured Gran, her voice a little steadier now. &#8220;That
-was a cannon shot, I think; most likely from one of their
-ships. I really doubt they&#8217;ll come ashore. Perhaps it would
-be safe&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The cannon boomed again. Now another cannon spoke out,
-a little to the left. Then another. There were no silences any
-more, only the steady booming, and with every fourth or
-fifth boom, the tavern shook. One after another the windowpanes
-began to shatter. Once they heard a great crash in the
-street.</p>
-
-<p>They did not speak to each other, for no human voice
-could penetrate the din. Kitty watched a streak of sunlight<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[152]</span>
-slowly widen and move across the floor. It told her that time
-was passing, and that this was a clear, bright day.</p>
-
-<p>After awhile a lull did come, and the cannonading died
-out into silence. The silence was broken by a heavy knocking
-on the street door.</p>
-
-<p>Gran&#8217;s eyes snapped and her face hardened. &#8220;&#8217;Pon my
-soul, no stranger is going to catch me hiding under a table,
-cannon or no cannon&mdash;nor my granddaughters, either. Kitty,
-go and see what&#8217;s wanted.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She got to her feet and smoothed her apron. Sally Rose
-followed her and stood still, her eyes wide with fright, her
-lips trembling. Kitty went to open the door.</p>
-
-<p>A gnarled old man stood there, holding a wooden bucket
-in each hand. He pointed to the tavern sign and then opened
-his mouth in a toothless grin.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Lass,&#8221; he inquired, &#8220;are ye doing business today?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes,&#8221; said Kitty steadily. &#8220;I guess we are.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Good. Will ye fill these pails with water for me. The lads
-has need of it on the Hill.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come in,&#8221; said Kitty. She took the two pails through the
-kitchen to the garden well. When she returned with them,
-there were half a dozen other men waiting, and they wanted
-water, too.</p>
-
-<p>The guns began again with a new fury. Gran and Sally
-Rose had stepped into the garden, and when Kitty returned
-there after the men had gone, she found them staring up the
-hill.</p>
-
-<p>A small, square earthworks stood on the green crest that
-had been bare at twilight. Small figures of men were working
-all around it, digging up turf, building it higher, stringing a
-wooden fence in front. Other men passed to and fro over
-Bunker Hill and the highroad that led to the Neck. Every
-now and then a column of dust shot skyward as a cannon ball<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[153]</span>
-plowed into the earth. But the men who were busy about the
-earthworks paid no attention to the cannon balls.</p>
-
-<p>Now and then there would be a moment&#8217;s pause in the
-firing, and that gave Gran and the girls a chance to speak to
-one another.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What&#8217;s going on up there, and where are the British?&#8221;
-demanded Gran. &#8220;Did those water boys bring you any news,
-Kitty?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It&#8217;s just as you thought,&#8221; said Kitty hurriedly, knowing
-that the guns might interrupt her at any moment. &#8220;The ships
-are firing at us from all three sides. The lookouts say there&#8217;s
-a commotion in Boston, but it&#8217;s too early to tell yet what they
-mean to do. They say there are about a hundred people left
-here in the town, but there&#8217;s such heavy firing across the Neck
-they doubt that we can get away.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Just then there came a hail from the kitchen doorway,
-where a man stood with two empty water buckets. Gran went
-to talk with him herself, this time. When he had gone, she
-spoke her mind to the girls.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Nobody up there&#8217;s got time to be hungry, it seems, and
-they&#8217;ve plenty of strong drink amongst them, but two of their
-great hogsheads have been shot open, and the need&#8217;s for
-water. Sally Rose, you stay by the windlass and keep turning.
-Kitty, you carry the pails to the taproom to save the men the
-journey out here. Fill every tub and bucket and keep them
-full. I&#8217;m going to the roof to see for myself whatever there
-is to be seen.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It seemed to the two girls that the morning would last forever,
-as the sun toiled upward toward noon. Sally Rose
-ground at the windlass and swung the heavy buckets over the
-stone curb where Kitty&#8217;s hand received them and carried
-them inside. Round and round, back and forth, round and
-round, less like women of flesh and blood than like two
-parts of some wooden machine. They did not talk much together.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[154]</span>
-They had not the breath for it, nor very much to say.
-Now and then Kitty looked up the hill to the earthworks, the
-tiny, gallant redoubt. The men were still toiling to reinforce
-it, and a man in a blue coat strolled fearlessly along the parapet
-as if he were telling them what to do.</p>
-
-<p>It was about noon by the kitchen clock when Gran came
-down stairs. Her face was grim. &#8220;Girls,&#8221; she said tensely,
-&#8220;leave your work and come with me. I want you to see a
-shameful sight. I want you to see the King&#8217;s soldiers coming
-out with guns against the King&#8217;s loyal people.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The Bay and Beagle was a square-built house of red brick,
-three stories tall, with a white railing about its flat roof. Gran
-led the girls to the side facing Boston, half a mile away. Kitty
-gripped the rail with both hands, though she would have
-liked to put them in her ears, the cannonading had become so
-much louder, the spaces between the blasts so brief and few.
-Sunlight sparkled on the blue river and on the three great
-ships pouring forth constant broadsides of fire. Flames leaped
-forth from Copp&#8217;s Hill, from floating batteries in the ferry
-way, and over all hung a mist of grayish white smoke.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Look there,&#8221; hissed Gran during a quiet interval, quiet
-except for the jangling bells of Boston that were doing their
-best to make their steeples rock.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty and Sally Rose let their glances follow her pointing
-finger, to the docks that lined the opposite shore. Two lines
-of barges were moving out on the full tide, one from Long
-Wharf, and one from the North Battery. They rode low in
-the water, being full to the gunwhales with soldiers clad in
-white and vivid scarlet. The sunlight gleamed on the steel of
-bayonets, on the brass mountings of the great black guns. It
-was a gorgeous and yet a terrible sight.</p>
-
-<p>All Boston seemed to go mad with the frantic clamor of
-bells. Shouts and cheers rose from its crooked streets that
-wandered up hill and down, and somewhere a band was playing.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[155]</span>
-Its rooftops were black with tiny figures who had climbed
-there to watch the King&#8217;s troops move against the King&#8217;s
-people who felt they had always been loyal to him&mdash;so far.</p>
-
-<p>When the two rows of barges reached midstream they
-drew near to each other and then moved forward in two long
-lines, side by side, like pairs of marching men. They seemed
-to be headed for Moulton&#8217;s Point. Kitty watched them till
-they passed out of sight around a curve of the shore. Then
-she turned to face Gran and Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Do&mdash;do you think they&#8217;re going to land?&#8221; she asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Sakes alive, child,&#8221; answered Gran, &#8220;I don&#8217;t know what
-they mean to do, but we&#8217;ll go back downstairs and see if we
-can find out. There are sure to be more men coming after
-water.&#8221; She glanced up the hill toward the redoubt. Only a
-few figures moved about it now, but clouds of dust rose
-everywhere, thrown up by the impact of cannon balls, and
-the smoke from the guns themselves drifted that way. At that
-moment a handful of men appeared on the top of Bunker
-Hill, coming from the direction of the Neck. More men followed
-them, and still more. In orderly fashion they marched
-toward the redoubt where they were greeted with a faint
-cheering.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Looks like more of our lads had come to help,&#8221; said
-Gran, as she led them down the narrow stairs and into the
-taproom. Just as she had suspected, three water carriers
-waited there, and all the pails and tubs were empty.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gran,&#8221; whispered Sally Rose, &#8220;I&mdash;I just don&#8217;t think I
-can turn that windlass any more.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gran looked at her keenly. &#8220;It makes the arms ache, I
-know,&#8221; she said with surprising sympathy. &#8220;Kitty, you go to
-the well for a while, and let Sally Rose carry the buckets.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>And thus their morning chores began all over again,
-though it was already early afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>At the end of her third trip between well and taproom,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[156]</span>
-Sally Rose stopped to talk to Kitty in one of the rare intervals
-when no gun was going off.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Kit,&#8221; she said wanly, &#8220;I&mdash;I&#8217;m frightened, Kit. Do you
-think Gerry&#8217;s coming in one of those barges? Do you think
-he&#8217;ll have to shoot at our lads on the Hill? Do you think he
-might shoot at me?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty had been wondering almost the same thing, but she
-would not tell her cousin so.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;If you&#8217;re going to think about a lad at a time like this,&#8221;
-she said, &#8220;why don&#8217;t you think of Johnny? You&#8217;ve gone about
-with Johnny for a long time, Sally Rose, and Johnny&#8217;s on our
-side. Don&#8217;t you wonder if maybe he isn&#8217;t up there&mdash;in that
-earthworks on the Hill? Right there in the thick of the
-cannon balls?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, I do wonder about Johnny,&#8221; she answered plaintively,
-&#8220;and about Dick, even about that New Hampshire
-boy with no manners&mdash;Tom what&#8217;s his name.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty, too, had wondered about Tom, but not too much.
-There was a cold certainty in her heart that Tom Trask
-would be in the thick of whatever fighting there was to come.
-She knew that as well as if she could see him there.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Girls!&#8221; called Gran&#8217;s voice from the kitchen door. &#8220;Girls!
-come here to me!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty let go the windlass suddenly, and the handle spun
-creaking round. Sally Rose set down her pail.</p>
-
-<p>Just then there was a loud whine somewhere overhead, and
-then a whoosh, a shower of splinters about them, and a roaring
-wind that flung them hard against the turf. For a moment
-they lay there, not daring to move. The smell of burning
-powder filled the air. Then another roaring wind went by,
-but not so close, and higher overhead.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty sat up. A cannon ball was bouncing across the grassy
-yard of the house next door. It had passed through the garden
-and shattered the pointed roof of the well-house where<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[157]</span>
-they stood. She reached out and grasped Sally Rose by the
-shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Quick,&#8221; she gasped. &#8220;Let&#8217;s get inside. They&#8217;re firing
-into the town, not just at the earthworks any more.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Racing into the taproom, they found Gran in talk with a
-tall man who wore an officer&#8217;s coat and three-cornered hat
-and did not carry a pail.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Girls,&#8221; said Gran, her voice frighteningly calm, &#8220;the British
-have landed, and &#8217;tis plain they mean to charge the Hill.
-Whether they can take it or not, we don&#8217;t know. But they&#8217;re
-shooting straight into Charlestown now, iron balls and iron
-cases full of burning trash. The town&#8217;ll soon be in flames over
-our heads. &#8217;Tis time to leave. There&#8217;s nothing more we can
-do.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A moment later they were in the street outside, trailing
-along after a sorry-looking group of men and women, poor
-folk, mostly, who had stayed in town in spite of all the warnings
-of danger, because they had nowhere else to go.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m glad,&#8221; murmured Gran as they plodded over the
-cobblestones, their eyelids smarting and their throats choked
-with the thick smokiness that seemed to be flooding over the
-whole world, &#8220;I&#8217;m glad we sent Timothy to Cambridge, two
-days back&mdash;Timothy and that poor horse, too. At least, we&#8217;re
-leaving no living thing behind to burn.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty thought of all the living things who were left to their
-fate in that tiny fortress on the Hill.</p>
-
-<p>Iron shot blasted the roofs about them, and balls of living
-flame burst in the street. All along their way the old wooden
-houses were beginning to catch fire. Just as they passed out
-of town and into the green country at the rear of Bunker
-Hill, Kitty looked back. Clouds of black smoke billowed upward
-from the docks, the warehouses, the dwellings, the
-shops in the market square. The church steeple lifted up one
-soaring pyramid of fire.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[158]</span>Her eyes hurt suddenly with tears that did not come from
-the smoke.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Come away, child,&#8221; said Gran, putting her arm about the
-girl&#8217;s shoulders, using her other hand to guide the half-blinded
-Sally Rose.</p>
-
-<p>How far they had gone before the little procession came
-to a halt, she did not know, but she did know they toiled a
-long way down the dusty road, constantly shelled by the
-heavy guns of the ships.</p>
-
-<p>When they did stop, it was in the front dooryard of a little
-tavern, The Sign of the Sun. The raggle-taggle company scattered
-themselves about on the grass, but Gran led the girls
-inside.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;They say the firing&#8217;s too heavy for us to cross the Neck
-and flee inland,&#8221; she explained, &#8220;but &#8217;tis to this place they are
-bringing the wounded men. Perhaps we can help here.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The taproom they entered was not unlike the taproom at
-the Bay and Beagle, but tables and benches had been moved
-back to clear the floor. Some dozen men in tattered shirts and
-bloody breeches were lying on the wide pine boards. Some
-moaned, and some lay very still. Three women worked
-among them, and a man in a buff coat, a doctor, most like,
-knelt by one soldier probing a wounded knee.</p>
-
-<p>Gran looked around her. &#8220;There&#8217;s water and bandages on
-the counter over there,&#8221; she said. &#8220;Get to work, Kitty, Sally
-Rose.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>If the morning had seemed long, it seemed that that afternoon
-at the Sign of the Sun would never go. Kitty knelt and
-swabbed and tied bandages and held whiskey to men&#8217;s lips to
-ease their pain when Dr. Eustis&#8217; probe went deep. Sally Rose
-and Gran were doing the same thing, too.</p>
-
-<p>Then the men came in so fast there was no room for them
-in the tavern, so they were laid in the yard, and all about the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[159]</span>
-garden reaching up the hill. The air was full of booming
-sound and smoke, and over all burned the hot, hot sun.</p>
-
-<p>The British had charged the Hill and been driven back,
-she heard from the men she tended. The British had gathered
-themselves together and were about to charge again.</p>
-
-<p>She and Gran and Sally Rose were working over two men
-with shoulder wounds, trying to staunch the flow of blood,
-when Gran suddenly stood up and put her hand to her forehead.
-A strange look came across her face. Then she smiled,
-and the light in her eyes paled out and dimmed away.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The young may die,&#8221; she murmured, &#8220;but the old must.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>She tottered and fell beside the soldiers on the bloody
-grass.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Dead. Stone dead,&#8221; muttered Dr. Eustis, kneeling above
-her a few moments later. &#8220;Her heart failed from the shock
-and strain of this day, I do believe. But she died with her
-hand to the plow. She died like a good soldier.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose crouched on the steps of the tavern, put her
-head in her lap, and burst into uncontrollable weeping. She
-never moved from there the rest of the afternoon. After
-Gran&#8217;s body was carried to a chamber over the taproom, Kitty
-looked desolately about her for a few moments. Then she
-went back to tending the wounded men. She would do what
-it was needful for her to do.</p>
-
-<p>Word came down the hill that the British were driving on
-the redoubt, that powder horns were getting low.</p>
-
-<p>Sometime after that&mdash;she never knew how long&mdash;Kitty
-knelt beside the newest soldier to arrive. His head was
-bloody, and he wore a rough shirt and breeches like all the
-rest, but on his feet were the fine polished boots worn by the
-men in the British Army. When she washed the blood away,
-she found she was bending over Gerry Malory.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[160]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Fifteen</i><br />
-
-
-<small>A TERRIBLE BLACK DAY</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;We be</span> going down this hill now,&#8221; said Colonel John Stark,
-&#8220;to fortify and hold the rail fence there.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He stood out boldly on the bold bare top of Bunker Hill,
-his new blue and buff coat unfastened at the neck, his musket
-held lightly but warily in his hand. His New Hampshire
-troops were drawn up before him, farmers and woodsmen for
-the most part, and dressed as befitted their callings. They
-wore homespun shirts and breeches dyed in the sober colors
-of late autumn, after the red and gold are gone. They carried
-a variety of weapons: here a fowling piece made by a
-village blacksmith; there an ancient queen&#8217;s arm left over
-from the Siege of Louisburg thirty years ago; there a blunderbuss
-older than Plymouth Colony.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Trask, who carried the blunderbuss, looked past his
-colonel at the whole of Charlestown peninsula spread out
-before him in the early afternoon sun. Below, on Breed&#8217;s
-Hill, that Prescott&#8217;s engineers had made the surprise decision
-to fortify, stood the redoubt. He could look down into
-it, just as if he were standing in the top of a tree. The men
-had built wooden platforms to fire from, and they were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[161]</span>
-massed and waiting behind their guns. Farther down, on the
-point of land between the sparkling blue rivers, the scarlet
-pride of the British Army sprawled on the grass eating its
-dinner.</p>
-
-<p>Stark went on, his voice low but piercing, a tenseness in it
-that made a man&#8217;s blood run hot with courage, rather than
-cold with fear. He gestured toward the shores of the Mystic,
-the side of the field away from Boston.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;To the left of the redoubt, lads, you can see a rail fence,
-and Knowlton&#8217;s men have banked it with cut hay. But past the
-rail fence there&#8217;s an open stretch along the river, wide
-enough to drive a team of horses through. We&#8217;ll go down
-there now and build a stone wall across it. Isn&#8217;t a man among
-you don&#8217;t know how to build a stone wall.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He paused and looked proudly around him. &#8220;And when
-it&#8217;s built, we&#8217;ll take our stand there, there and along the
-fence, and fight. If there&#8217;s a man among you don&#8217;t know how
-to do that, he can go home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>The road back to the safety of Medford lay broad and
-smooth behind them, but nobody turned toward that road.
-They started to cheer, but the colonel held up his hand.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Wait till you got something to cheer for, boys,&#8221; he said.
-&#8220;But remember this&mdash;all! Don&#8217;t shoot till they be within
-fifty yards. Pick out the officers. Fire low, and aim at the
-crossing of their belts. Hit for the handsome coats and the
-commanders.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He lifted his head and stepped back. Tom stood close
-enough to see his burning eyes and the unflinching line of his
-mouth. &#8220;I don&#8217;t know how the rest o&#8217; you feel,&#8221; Stark went
-on, &#8220;but for myself, I&#8217;ll fight to the last drop o&#8217; blood in me.
-By the great Jehovah, I mean to live free or die!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Fall in!&#8221; he shouted. He held up his arm and made a
-swooping motion toward the rail fence. The New Hampshire
-regiments followed him down the hill.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[162]</span>Once on the narrow strip of muddy beach beyond the
-fence, they worked desperately to rear a wall across it before
-the British should come on. Some fetched stones from other
-walls that divided the pastures on the hillside. Others toiled
-to heap them in a bulwark straight to the water&#8217;s edge. Tom
-was with those who carried boulders flung from the bank and
-piled them ready to the builder&#8217;s hand. Once he climbed up
-the ledge himself to take a look at the field above.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hey, Caleb,&#8221; he called eagerly, as he noticed a young
-man standing where the rail fence ended, a musket in his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Stark&#8217;s first-born son, sixteen-year-old Caleb,
-turned around and a grin broke over his lean face as he recognized
-his old hunting companion. He stepped forward.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Tom!&#8221; he exclaimed. &#8220;Haven&#8217;t seen you since you left
-for Newburyport with the log raft, back sometime in the
-spring.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No, I ain&#8217;t had a chance to get home. Ever since Concord
-Fight I been in camp. Where you been?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Round home mostly. Just got here this morning. Word&#8217;s
-gone all around the countryside that the British be about to
-attack. Figured my dad could use another man. Say, Tom,
-Jean&#8217;s been asking about you&mdash;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Fife and drum music burst forth from the red-coated
-ranks below the hill, and the bugles uttered an urgent cry.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here they come!&#8221; yelled Tom. He leaped down the
-bank and ran to where he had left his blunderbuss, in the
-center of the stone wall.</p>
-
-<p>Crouched behind it, he watched the British come on. He
-could not see the field above him that sloped upward to the
-redoubt, and &#8217;twas likely the heaviest charge would be there.
-But there were plenty of red coats and white breeches moving
-toward the New Hampshire line. Once the attackers stopped
-and reformed in groups of four. Then on they came.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[163]</span>Just to his right a musket spoke, though they had received
-no order to fire. Tom lifted his own blunderbuss, but before
-he could pull the trigger Colonel Stark strode fearlessly between
-the opposing armies. He had a tree branch in his hand.
-With a sharp stab he thrust it into the earth.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t another man fire till they pass this stake. Whoever
-does, I&#8217;ll knock him down,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>He looked around him to make sure his words were understood.
-Then he walked back to his own line as calmly as if he
-were going down to his sawmill on any summer afternoon.
-Behind him the advancing British fixed their bayonets. He
-leaped down into the shelter of the wall.</p>
-
-<p>When the word came, Tom was ready, and his blunderbuss
-spoke punctually as the British passed the stake. He could
-not tell how many times he fired, and he did not stop to see
-what damage he had done. Aim, fire, load. Aim, fire, load.
-He kept relentlessly on, scarce conscious that all around him
-other men were doing the same. He knew that the ground in
-front of the stone wall was covered with wounded and dying
-redcoats, but their line kept still coming on, and so long as it
-did, he would do nothing but fire, load, aim.</p>
-
-<p>As he had been told, he aimed at the handsome coats and
-the commanders. Once when he lifted his eyes to choose the
-next target, he saw, to his utter amazement, a man he knew.
-Captain Gerald Malory was advancing toward him, bayonet
-in hand. As he looked, his amazement turned to contempt.
-&#8220;Polecat!&#8221; he muttered. &#8220;Said he was captain. Done it to
-dazzle the girls, I&#8217;ll warrant.&#8221; Gerald Malory wore a private&#8217;s
-uniform. Turning away deliberately, Tom leveled his
-gun on a resplendent major. When he looked back again, his
-one-time prisoner was gone.</p>
-
-<p>The British line wavered and fell back. He could hear the
-shouts of the officers trying to rally their men. They lifted<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[164]</span>
-their guns and fired a volley, and Tom heard the shots
-whistle high above.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Gunning for hen hawks, maybe,&#8221; he told himself with a
-grin. &#8220;Won&#8217;t hit nothing else that high in air.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Now the red-coated line was drawing back, retreating
-down the beach toward the point from whence they had come.
-Now there were no redcoats within firing range any more.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Whew!&#8221; said Tom. He put down the blunderbuss and
-mopped his forehead. Now he took time to look around him.</p>
-
-<p>All along the New Hampshire line men were standing up
-to stretch, drinking water out of leather bottles, and beginning
-to move about and talk together. He did not know the
-grizzled oldsters on either side of him, but he soon learned
-they were veterans of the Indian War, and no strangers to
-powder and shot.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Think they&#8217;ll be back?&#8221; he asked, waving his thumb in
-the direction of the retreating British.</p>
-
-<p>His companions nodded. They were starting already to
-reload.</p>
-
-<p>Down at the open end beside the water lay a confused heap
-of wounded. Those who could still stand up and walk were
-helping to carry their less fortunate fellows away. The word
-went round that a hospital had been set up at The Sign of
-the Sun, a tavern on the back side of Bunker Hill.</p>
-
-<p>There came a hail from the bank above. Tom turned that
-way and recognized the shaggy gray head and sturdy figure
-of Old Put. The general was mounted on a horse, and had
-several other blue-coated officers with him. Colonel Stark
-and three of his captains strode over to the bank, and the two
-commanders talked for a long time. Then Stark walked resolutely
-back to the stone wall, with his head lifted, his gaze
-fixed straight before him. Old Put&#8217;s party rode off toward
-the redoubt.</p>
-
-<p>A bugle sounded far down on Morton&#8217;s Point. Once again<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[165]</span>
-the British must be coming on. Tom crouched and leveled
-the blunderbuss. Just then the man on his left leaned over
-and spoke.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Word&#8217;s gone down the line,&#8221; he muttered through a
-thick wad of tobacco, &#8220;that Johnny Stark&#8217;s lost his boy.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Caleb? How?&#8221; gasped Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Stopped a British ball somewheres up by the fence, they
-say.&#8221; The man spat brown juice on the trampled mud. &#8220;Don&#8217;t
-like the look o&#8217; things, lad. My powder horn&#8217;s getting low.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;So&#8217;s mine,&#8221; said Tom numbly. He looked between the
-stones at the oncoming scarlet line. He knew the depth of
-quiet love that lay between that father and son. &#8220;When they
-told Stark&mdash;what did he say?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Said he had no time now to talk o&#8217; private affairs,&#8221;
-answered the veteran. &#8220;Look there, in the front ranks of &#8217;em!
-That&#8217;s General Howe. I fought under him at Quebec in &#8217;59.
-I&#8217;d know him anywhere.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom looked where the other pointed, but he did not see
-the proud pompous figure of the British general leading on
-his men. He saw instead a New Hampshire mountainside in
-the fall, young Caleb Stark walking under the golden beech
-leaves, with his head up, laughing in the crisp air. He saw
-Caleb skating on Dorr&#8217;s Pond in the winter moonlight; pitching
-hay on a summer afternoon. And now at the rail fence
-Caleb lay dead. By Jehovah, he&#8217;d fix the British for doing
-that to his friend.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Here they come, lad,&#8221; warned the man at his side.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&#8217;m ready,&#8221; said Tom. He gripped the blunderbuss, and
-all his rage and vengeance sounded in the roar of it as it
-spoke.</p>
-
-<p>The British were not so easily beaten back this time. Stepping
-over their fallen comrades they marched up to the wall,
-staggered back at the withering blast of fire, and came on
-again. But at last their officers could no longer urge them forward.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[166]</span>
-Once more Tom found himself staring at the redcoats
-fleeing away.</p>
-
-<p>It was a long time before they formed again, and the whole
-American line was jubilant. It began to seem as if a handful
-of farmers with nothing but courage and gunpowder had
-turned back the British Army. Tom climbed up the bank in
-the interval and took a look at the redoubt. It was untaken,
-and there were still, red-clad forms lying all over the
-slope before it, and the gleaming brass of abandoned artillery.
-In front of his own line the dead lay as thick as sheep in a fold.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We ought to send for more powder,&#8221; he muttered, as he
-went back to his place and loaded the blunderbuss. &#8220;More
-men, maybe.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Prescott already sent for more men,&#8221; growled his neighbor.
-&#8220;Been sending for &#8217;em all day. Ward keeps &#8217;em all close
-to Cambridge because he thinks they&#8217;re in danger there. As for
-powder, there was only &#8217;leven barrels in the whole camp this
-morning. Bet there&#8217;s powerful little of it left by now.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I got three more loadings,&#8221; said Tom. &#8220;I&#8217;ll give &#8217;em that.
-Then I&#8217;ll have to bash their skulls if I bring &#8217;em down.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Bash their skulls then,&#8221; said the older man. &#8220;That&#8217;s as
-good a way as any for the varmints to go.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>When the British made their third charge, they sent only
-a token force against the rail fence. Their main attack was
-directed at the redoubt. Tom fired his last charge of powder
-and then flung himself over the bank to the field above.
-Many other New Hampshire men were doing the same, their
-powder likewise being gone.</p>
-
-<p>At his side he saw Hugh Watts, who had driven with him
-to Cambridge after the lead.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Bad news for the colonel,&#8221; said Watts.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye. Bad news for everyone who knew young Caleb,&#8221;
-answered Tom with a gulp. &#8220;He was a friend of mine.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hope they got enough powder up there on the Hill,&#8221;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[167]</span>
-the Londonderry man went on. &#8220;Don&#8217;t seem as if they&#8217;re
-firing as lively as they should.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom looked again at the redoubt. Black smoke was pouring
-up the sky from over Charlestown way. The main
-force of the British was driving toward the little fortress,
-coming dangerously near. Now they passed the wooden fence.
-Now a handful of them began to swarm up a locust tree that
-stood in one corner of the earthen wall.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Great Jehovah!&#8221; gasped Hugh Watts. &#8220;They&#8217;re going
-in!&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>It was true. A last frantic burst of firing came from the redoubt,
-and then its guns were still. The British poured over
-the low walls in a triumphant scarlet wave.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No more powder. Or they&#8217;re all dead,&#8221; said Tom grimly.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Out, lads!&#8221; he heard Captain Moore calling behind him.
-&#8220;Spread over the field from Bunker Hill to the river and
-cover the retreat!&#8221;</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Tramping back across Charlestown Neck in the sunset with
-the last straggling ranks of the Great American Army, Tom
-Trask slowly began to realize that he was not the same Tom
-Trask who had marched out so confidently to Bunker Hill.
-He had seen and heard too much that afternoon to remain the
-same. He had seen the King&#8217;s troops firing at him, and he
-had fired back, and he wanted no more of England and the
-King.</p>
-
-<p>When the bells began to ring in Newburyport last April
-and he heard the news of Concord Fight, he had gone to
-camp because all the other men were going. Only a cripple or
-a coward would stay at home. But he hadn&#8217;t thought much
-about it, much about why there had been this Concord Fight.</p>
-
-<p>He&#8217;d learned a little more from the talk around the campfire
-at Winter Hill, but nobody seemed to be sure whether
-they were fighting to make the King treat them better, or to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[168]</span>
-get the country away from the King. Well, for himself, he
-was sure now. He knew when he heard John Stark say, &#8220;I
-mean to live free or die.&#8221; For that was the way he meant to
-live. He knew it for sure when he heard the news that Caleb
-had been shot.</p>
-
-<p>And he had good hopes that the time would come when
-he could live that way. Hadn&#8217;t he seen the British Army turn
-and run&mdash;turn and run away twice?</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&#8217;ll fight them from now till Judgment,&#8221; he muttered
-to himself. &#8220;But we&#8217;re going to be free.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A little group of his dusty, tattered fellows came toiling
-up and overtook him where he plodded along, trailing the
-empty blunderbuss. One of them hailed him, and he saw that
-it was Johnny Pettengall.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Hey, Tom! We almost licked &#8217;em, didn&#8217;t we?&#8221; he called.
-&#8220;If our powder&#8217;d lasted one more time.... Where was you?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;At the rail fence and along the wall,&#8221; said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I was in the redoubt.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We got slaughtered there,&#8221; said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye, many slaughtered,&#8221; agreed Johnny, falling into
-step beside him. &#8220;We was bayoneted like so many cattle.
-This&#8217;ll be remembered forever in New England as a terrible
-black day.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I guess it will,&#8221; Tom said.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I saw them shoot Dr. Warren,&#8221; continued Johnny. &#8220;Shot
-him in the head just as he was leaving the redoubt.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I seen him once in Cambridge,&#8221; muttered Tom. &#8220;He was
-a good man, I guess. It&#8217;s worse for me that we lost young
-Caleb Stark.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;The Colonel&#8217;s son?&#8221; asked Johnny, and his face brightened.
-&#8220;Oh no! That was a false report, Tom. I heard Putnam
-himself telling Prescott that. Said he was sorry the boy&#8217;s
-father ever got the word&mdash;but it didn&#8217;t make no difference in
-the way he led his men. He said Stark&#8217;s a soldier all the way<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[169]</span>
-through. Likely you and Caleb will be drinking beer together
-tonight on Winter Hill.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Tom drew a long breath. He looked out at the blue hills
-to the west, with the red hot ball of the setting sun behind
-them. He was glad that his friend was alive, but the good
-news hadn&#8217;t changed his mind about one thing. He still
-wanted to live free.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[170]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak"><i>Chapter Sixteen</i><br />
-
-
-<small>HANGING AND WIVING</small></h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap"><span class="smcap">&#8220;Do</span> you feel afraid now we&#8217;re really here?&#8221; asked Kitty.
-She put her hand to Gerald Malory&#8217;s sleeve with a
-light, possessive touch and looked up into his face anxiously.
-Gerry smiled down at her.</p>
-
-<p>He still wore his country clothes and a bandage round his
-head, but the healthy color was coming back into his face
-now. She had tended him for a week at the field hospital
-below Medford Bridge, and for a week after that he had been
-able to go walking with her in the sunshine every afternoon.
-She and Sally Rose slept at the house of Mrs. Fulton who directed
-the hospital. But Sally Rose was making new friends,
-and spent less and less time among the wounded men, even
-though Gerry himself was there.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not half so afraid as I was that night we went back to
-Charlestown to dig up the silver,&#8221; Gerry said.</p>
-
-<p>They stood in the highroad in front of the old Royall
-House where Colonel Stark had his headquarters. In a few
-moments they would go in. Gerry would confess that he was
-not a New Hampshire man who had got knocked on the head
-at the rail fence and couldn&#8217;t remember what company he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[171]</span>
-came from. He would admit that he was Gerald Malory of
-the Twenty-third. But they would not go in just yet. It was
-a soft summer night with the fragrance of garden flowers in
-the air. He drew her down beside him on the low brick wall.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What were you afraid of that night?&#8221; she asked him.
-&#8220;When we went to The Sign of the Sun to get a pass from
-the British major so we could go into town, I thought he
-seemed like a very kind man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry grinned down at her. &#8220;He was kind to you, certainly.
-From the look in his eye, he&#8217;d have given you Boston Common
-and Long Wharf too, if you&#8217;d asked for them. You&#8217;ve
-a way with us menfolk, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty let her long lashes fall across her cheek, then she
-looked up at him suddenly and smiled. &#8220;Do you know, it&#8217;s
-the strangest thing, I do seem to have a way with them lately.
-But before I knew you, I never had any way with them at
-all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He cleared his throat and looked away from her. &#8220;Yes,
-you&#8217;re blooming out, my girl,&#8221; he said.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty sighed happily. &#8220;Oh I do hope so! For so many years
-nobody noticed me at all beside Sally Rose.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Ah, Sally Rose!&#8221; he muttered. &#8220;Honestly, I feel guilty
-there. How am I ever going to tell her that I&mdash;that I&mdash;have
-taken a fancy to you, Kitty?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Is a fancy all you&#8217;ve taken?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A deep down kind of fancy.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh!&#8221; She was silent for a moment, and then she said, &#8220;If
-you feel guilty about Sally Rose, how do you think I feel
-about Tom Trask, the New Hampshire boy? How am I
-going to tell him I&#8217;ve taken a fancy to you?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He did not answer, and after a moment she repeated her
-earlier question. &#8220;What were you afraid of when we went to
-Charlestown that night? It was sad, really, but I didn&#8217;t see
-any reason to be afraid.&#8221;</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[172]</span>She remembered the forlorn look of the town, its cellar
-holes still smoking, only a few old houses left near the millpond,
-the moss on the gravestones scorched away. But they
-had found and brought back the silverware.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I was afraid I might be recognized and sent to rejoin my
-regiment. You know I don&#8217;t want that to happen to me,
-Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty slipped out of his encircling arm and jumped to her
-feet. &#8220;I know,&#8221; she said. &#8220;That&#8217;s why I coaxed you to come
-and tell the whole thing to Colonel Stark. If he says you can
-stay here and be an American, then you&#8217;ll have no more cause
-to be afraid.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Suppose he says I&#8217;m a deserter and an enemy, and ought
-to be hanged on Cambridge Common? He may even think
-I&#8217;m a spy, Kitty.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He stood up and held out both his hands. &#8220;I don&#8217;t think
-he&#8217;ll do that,&#8221; said Kitty slowly. &#8220;Colonel Stark ought to
-understand any man who wants to be an American. You can&#8217;t
-go on pretending always&mdash;always being afraid.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>They heard a throat cleared sharply on the other side of
-the low wall.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t you young folks have any other place to do your
-courting?&#8221; asked Colonel Stark.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry turned quickly round, and Kitty drew a deep breath.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We&mdash;we were on our way to consult you, Colonel&mdash;about
-a small matter.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Stark inclined his head. &#8220;Come inside then,&#8221; he
-ordered. &#8220;I trust the young woman has no complaint against
-you.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Oh no!&#8221; cried Kitty in embarrassment and alarm.</p>
-
-<p>The three of them walked together up the broad graveled
-path between the boxwood hedges, and in at the wide front
-door. Kitty had heard much about Isaac Royall, the owner
-of the house, a rich Tory who had fled to Boston, but she was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[173]</span>
-not prepared for the carved elegance and panelled wainscot of
-the great hall. She had never before seen a room like the
-white and gold parlor where Colonel Stark seated them. It
-reassured her a little to see his somewhat battered musket
-leaning against the rosewood desk, a cartridge box flung down
-on a brocade chair.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;O&#8217;erlook the disorder if you will,&#8221; he said, picking up the
-cartridge box. &#8220;I been at Cambridge all day, and Molly&#8217;s
-housemaids are forbidden to meddle with my field equipment.
-Well, lad,&#8221; and he turned to Gerry, his mouth severe,
-but a twinkle in his cold blue eye. &#8220;You say you come here
-to see me about some matter.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes sir,&#8221; said Gerry, clenching his fists and leaning forward.
-&#8220;Colonel Stark, sir, I been abed in your field hospital
-ever since the battle at Charlestown. I said to all that I came
-from New Hampshire, but since I was wounded I couldn&#8217;t
-remember my town or the name of my captain. I told a lie,
-sir. I am Gerald Malory of the Twenty-third.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I know it,&#8221; said Stark quietly. The twinkle in his eye
-deepened.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&mdash;you know it? How?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Haven&#8217;t forgotten you was our prisoner after the Ipswich
-Fright, have you? I won&#8217;t question you about the Fright too
-much. That&#8217;s water under the bridge. Might have enjoyed it
-myself, when I was a lad.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry hung his head, and the Colonel went on. &#8220;You was
-recognized by more&#8217;n a dozen men when we carted you back
-from the Hill.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then&mdash;why?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Why didn&#8217;t we clap you back in gaol again? Well, maybe
-we should have. I decided instead to have you watched. I
-wanted to find out your game.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I haven&#8217;t any game,&#8221; said Gerry miserably.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[174]</span>&#8220;So it was beginning to seem,&#8221; agreed Stark. &#8220;What are
-you? Tired of fighting? A deserter?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I&mdash;I suppose so,&#8221; said Gerry. &#8220;I never meant to be a soldier.
-But after I got in trouble at home, it seemed the best
-way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Stark cleared his throat. &#8220;You got a father?&#8221; he asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;A father? Yes, sir.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;At home in England?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Yes.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;How do you think he&#8217;d feel if he knew you was behaving
-so?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t believe he&#8217;d care,&#8221; said Gerry. &#8220;After my mother
-died, he took a young wife and has other sons. New one every
-year. &#8217;Twas getting so there was no room at home for me.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gradually, under the Colonel&#8217;s shrewd questioning, Gerry
-Malory&#8217;s whole story came clear. Kitty had heard much of
-it before, but not all. He told about his mother, the strolling
-player; how after her death he had left grammar school, and
-ranged with a wild group of friends about the farms and the
-town. Then he was taken up for poaching in the squire&#8217;s
-woodland&mdash;caught the first unlucky time he set a bit of a
-rabbit snare. And the recruiting sergeant came by in the thick
-of the trouble, and there you were. No, he wasn&#8217;t a captain
-and never had been. He never thought pretending to be one
-was a dishonest trick, since he never gained thereby. He
-thought it was like taking a part in a play, and better to
-choose a leading part. He wasn&#8217;t even twenty years old, as
-he had said; wouldn&#8217;t be eighteen till next December came.</p>
-
-<p>Stark pondered. &#8220;All that I can see,&#8221; he murmured. &#8220;I
-been a lad myself, though, thank God, none such a foolhardy
-one. But after the battle&mdash;what did you do with the boots you
-wore when they brought you in, the boots that went with
-your British uniform?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My boots?&#8221; asked Gerry. He looked down at his feet.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[175]</span>
-He was wearing a pair of cowhide shoes Kitty had bought for
-him at a shop in Medford Square. &#8220;Why, I don&#8217;t know what
-became of my boots.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I hid them,&#8221; said Kitty defiantly. &#8220;I was afraid&mdash;if the
-doctors thought he was British&mdash;they&#8217;d just let him die. I
-pulled them off, and took them outside, and threw them
-down the well.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Stark slapped his knee and laughed with a quiet,
-wry kind of mirth. &#8220;So I suppose from now on the water at
-The Sign of the Sun will taste o&#8217; British leather,&#8221; he said.
-Then he turned to Gerry. &#8220;Well, a spirited lass is none so bad
-to have for a wife. I got one myself. Do you mean to marry
-her for her kindness to you&mdash;if you don&#8217;t have to hang, of
-course?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Not for her kindness,&#8221; said Gerry Malory firmly, his eyes
-lighting. &#8220;I mean to marry her&mdash;well, because I mean to
-marry her.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well enough said,&#8221; agreed the colonel. &#8220;But I mentioned
-the other, the hanging matter. Can you think of any reason
-against it?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>A tragic look came over Gerry&#8217;s face, and his voice took
-on a deep vibrant note of pleading. It seemed to Kitty that
-she could see and hear his actress mother there.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You wouldn&#8217;t hang a man for a mistake, would you,
-Colonel? A mistake that was made a hundred and fifty years
-ago?&#8221; He paused and shut his eyes dramatically.</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Stark gave Kitty a slow, solemn wink, and she
-knew that he was thinking of the actress mother, too.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What was the mistake, lad,&#8221; he demanded, &#8220;and who
-made it? You weren&#8217;t making mistakes a hundred and fifty
-years ago. Yours were all ahead of you then.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;It was an old ancestor of mine, sir, who went down to
-the docks in Plymouth and thought to sail with the folk who
-came here to found your own Plymouth Colony. He thought<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[176]</span>
-he would come with them and be an American, but he
-changed his mind and went back to Barnstaple, and the
-family&#8217;s been there ever since. That was the mistake he made.
-If it hadn&#8217;t been for him&mdash;I might ha&#8217; been fighting on your
-side in this war.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Colonel Stark gazed sharply at the young man and saw
-what Kitty hoped he would see: that for all the pretentious
-manner, the words were true. Then he turned away for a
-moment and stared through the window where the moonlight
-was turning white flowered stalks to silver in the garden.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;My folks didn&#8217;t make that mistake,&#8221; he said abruptly.
-&#8220;They come here on a ship, like all the rest of us, except
-those who be Injun bred. Come out o&#8217; Scotland, my folks.
-Had five young ones die on the voyage, and raised another
-five to replace &#8217;em. Yes, your ancestor made a mistake, lad.
-But how do you think to right it? Peace time, you could come
-here like other Englishmen always did, and settle down and
-be one of us. But not now, now that we be at war.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Couldn&#8217;t I, Colonel? That was what I was hoping for.
-It&#8217;s not that I&#8217;m afraid of fighting. But I don&#8217;t want to fight
-against you. And I can&#8217;t fight against my own.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;And what would you do, Private Malory, if I said, &#8216;Go
-to! Clear out of my camp and make your way as best you
-can?&#8217;&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Gerry&#8217;s face lit up, and there was no play-acting about him
-this time. &#8220;Why, I&#8217;d thought about that, Colonel. Do you
-know what I&#8217;d do? I sailed from Plymouth myself, for my
-regiment took ship there, so for old times&#8217; sake, I&#8217;d take the
-highroad and go down to your Plymouth in Massachusetts,
-and see if I could make my way there and settle in, and
-become a Plymouth man.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;We got a Plymouth in New Hampshire,&#8221; said Stark
-thoughtfully. &#8220;I don&#8217;t know whether all the land be taken
-there or no.&#8221; Then the lines in his face hardened.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[177]</span>&#8220;I got the power tonight to send you on your way,&#8221; he
-said. &#8220;Tomorrow, I may be plain Johnny Stark, headed back
-to the sawmill again. We got a new commander coming up
-from the South to take over the whole army. Name o&#8217; Washington.
-A Virginia man. Can&#8217;t tell what he&#8217;ll do.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>On that July night the name of Washington meant nothing
-to Kitty Greenleaf and Gerald Malory.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Then let me go, Colonel Stark. Let me go tonight,&#8221;
-Gerry pleaded.</p>
-
-<p>The colonel looked down at the rich woven rug on the
-floor. His eyes seemed to be tracing the scrollwork pattern.
-Then he turned to Gerry again. &#8220;There&#8217;s only one thing still
-bothers me, Private Malory,&#8221; he said. &#8220;I believe you when
-you say you&#8217;d like to be an American, and settle down in
-America and make your way there, and do no harm to anyone.
-I commend you for it. But how do you feel toward your
-own people? Don&#8217;t you believe in Parliament and the King?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I believe in them&mdash;over there,&#8221; said Gerry slowly. &#8220;But
-not over here. They rule fine in England, it seems to me. But
-in America&mdash;the way I&#8217;ve come to see America&mdash;they don&#8217;t
-know what they&#8217;re doing at all.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Stark&#8217;s grin told Kitty that he had heard the answer he
-wanted to hear, but he had one more word of caution. &#8220;Remember,
-you been knocked in the head, lad. Are you sure you
-know what you&#8217;re about? That you won&#8217;t wake up in a daze
-some morning and wish you was back with the Twenty-third?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;No,&#8221; said Gerry. &#8220;I won&#8217;t wish myself back.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Stark got to his feet. &#8220;Might happen,&#8221; he said mildly, &#8220;if
-you was to slip out of camp long about midnight, sentry
-would be looking the other way.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Thank you, sir,&#8221; said Gerry fervently.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Thank me in ten years,&#8221; said Stark, &#8220;if you still want to
-then. It&#8217;s a crazy venture, and we can&#8217;t tell how it&#8217;ll turn out.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[178]</span>
-But if it&#8217;s what you want, get on with it. They say hanging
-and wiving goes by destiny. And I guess you&#8217;re lucky in both
-o&#8217; them matters, lad.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He led them toward the front door, and as they passed by
-a small parlor opening off the hall, Kitty caught sight of a
-couple inside it. They sat on a peacock-colored sofa, locked
-in a deep embrace. Startled at the sound of footsteps, they
-drew apart. Stark shot a quick look in their direction and
-grinned widely. &#8220;No harm in it,&#8221; he said, &#8220;they&#8217;re a betrothed
-pair.&#8221; He would have kept on down the hall, but
-Kitty stood still, gasping.</p>
-
-<p>The man on the blue sofa was Tom Trask, and the girl was
-a stranger to her; small and delicately formed, with a beautiful
-cameo face and shining red hair. Under their scrutiny
-Tom stood up. Some men would have been embarrassed, but
-not he. He scooped the girl to her feet and led her forward.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well,&#8221; he greeted them, &#8220;so it&#8217;s Kit herself, and <i>Private</i>
-Malory. I&#8217;d like you to meet Jeanie Morrison.&#8221; He looked
-down at the red-haired girl, and there was a tender merriment
-in his eye.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I kissed with all the girls some,&#8221; he continued. &#8220;But I
-always knew I&#8217;d marry Jean.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Listen to the man!&#8221; trilled Jeanie. She gave him an enchanting
-smile that showed a dimple in her cheek.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Jeanie come down from Derryfield with my wife a few
-days back,&#8221; explained the colonel, sensing some tension in the
-air he could not understand. &#8220;She came to see Tom and bring
-him his gun. A Brown Bess, British made, one of the best guns
-in the army.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Aye,&#8221; said Tom mockingly. &#8220;I got my own gun. You
-can have your blunderbuss back, Kitty. I&#8217;ll bring it to the
-hospital tomorrow.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Don&#8217;t bother,&#8221; said Kitty, but Gerry&#8217;s eyes lighted.</p>
-
-
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[179]</span>&#8220;Is there any way we could get it tonight?&#8221; he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty knew what he was thinking, and she saw the rightness
-of it. He meant to go to Plymouth, armed with the Plymouth
-blunderbuss.</p>
-
-<p>Tom shrugged, &#8220;If you want it that bad,&#8221; he said. &#8220;As a
-matter of fact, I brought it with me. You&#8217;ll find it standing
-among the lilacs to the right of the front door.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>After they had retrieved the old weapon and taken their
-leave of Colonel Stark, they walked quietly through the
-streets of Medford hand in hand.</p>
-
-<p>Kitty should have been relieved that she would have no
-painful scene with Tom, but she could not help feeling rueful
-at the knowledge that he had preferred red-haired Jeanie
-all the time.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;You&#8217;re lucky,&#8221; Gerry assured her. &#8220;I wish&mdash;I wish I
-could get out of it so easy with Sally Rose.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>He kissed her on the steps of the Fulton house.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I don&#8217;t know when I&#8217;ll be back, Kitty,&#8221; he said. &#8220;It may
-take me a long time to make my own way. And you&mdash;now
-your grandmother&#8217;s dead, where will you go?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;I think I&#8217;ll go back to her old house and wait till you
-come for me. You&#8217;ve never been to Newburyport, but you
-can find the way. You&#8217;ll be gone tomorrow, and I&#8217;m going to
-Cambridge and get old Timothy and take him home.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Will Sally Rose go with you?&#8221; he asked.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;What do you think?&#8221; said Kitty. &#8220;Look there!&#8221; She
-pointed to the parlor window just to the left of the front
-door.</p>
-
-<p>Sally Rose was standing inside the parlor. She was smiling
-up into the eyes of a tall young captain who wore the blue
-and white of the Connecticut line. She let her lashes veil her
-eyes and opened her pretty lips. &#8220;We&#8217;ve none such handsome
-lads in Massachusetts&mdash;&#8221; she said.</p>
-
-<p>Gerry Malory swallowed. Then he began to laugh.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[180]</span>
-&#8220;Where, oh where,&#8221; he exclaimed, &#8220;have I heard those
-words before?&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>After he had left her, Kitty slipped into the house and up
-to the little chamber that she shared with Sally Rose. She
-went to the window and stood there, looking at the still town,
-and the moonlit river, the campfires on Winter Hill, the
-lights of the warships far down the dim bay.</p>
-
-<p>Less than three months back, it was, that they had all
-played hide-and-seek in Newburyport, but they would never
-play hide-and-seek again. Never again would they be that
-young.</p>
-
-<p>Even she and Sally Rose, Gran had said, would be great-grandmothers
-some day. How glad she was that Gran had
-had that last cup of tea.</p>
-
-<p>She turned from the window and began to undress, laughing
-as she remembered the struggle to get Sally Rose out of
-the stays. Never again, she thought, would they be as young
-as that.</p>
-
-<p>She was just climbing into bed when Sally Rose opened
-the chamber door.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Kitty,&#8221; she said, &#8220;there&#8217;s going to be handsome men in
-uniform about for ages. Captain Davenport was just telling
-me that he expects a long war. He says that since Bunker
-Hill, the word&#8217;s been in everybody&#8217;s mouth that we&#8217;re going
-to live free or die&mdash;and that will take a long time.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Live free or die? What does that mean?&#8221; asked Kitty,
-bewildered.</p>
-
-<p>&#8220;Well, I don&#8217;t understand it myself,&#8221; said Sally Rose,
-taking the ribbon out of her curls, &#8220;but I have an idea of one
-man who might know. I think you&#8217;ll be likely to find out if
-you go and speak to Tom Trask.&#8221;</p>
-
-<p>Kitty lay in the wide bed and watched her cousin slip out
-of her dainty garments and fling them carelessly across a
-chair. Yes, she thought, there was, after all, some sort of unconscious<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[181]</span>
-wisdom about the pretty featherbrain. Hanging and
-wiving goes by destiny, Colonel Stark had said, and she had
-known that Gerry was her destiny, almost from the day she
-had seen him first from the door of the Bay and Beagle as
-he marched past with the prisoners&#8217; cart. And she would not
-have it otherwise, for she loved Gerry. He would be as good
-an American as most others, some day. He had many virtues,
-and she would rejoice and be proud of them all her life,
-most likely. But when it came to a matter of living free, Sally
-Rose was right. Tom Trask was the man who would know.</p>
-
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop" />
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="ph2">TRANSCRIBER&#8217;S NOTES:</p>
-
-
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.</p>
-
-<p>The cover image for this eBook was created by the transcriber and is entered into the public domain.</p>
-</div></div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE ROAD TO BUNKER HILL ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin:0.83em 0; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE<br />
-<span style='font-size:smaller'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br />
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</span>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &bull; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/66623-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/66623-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a463302..0000000
--- a/old/66623-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66623-h/images/i_colophon.jpg b/old/66623-h/images/i_colophon.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index c42a67b..0000000
--- a/old/66623-h/images/i_colophon.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/66623-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/66623-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index d96180d..0000000
--- a/old/66623-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ